The Project Gutenberg Etext of A Tale of Two Cities, by
Dickens
Please take a look at the important information in this
header. We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk,
keeping an electronic path open for the next readers. Do not
remove this.
**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic
Texts**
**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since
1971**
*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and
Donations*
Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get
Etexts, and further information is included below. We need your
donations.
A Tale of Two Cities, by Charles Dickens [A story of the
French Revolution]
January, 1994 [Etext #98]
The Project Gutenberg Etext of A Tale of Two Cities, by
Dickens *****This file should be named 2city11.txt or
2city11.zip******
Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER,
2city12.txt. VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER,
2city10a.txt.
This etext was created by Judith Boss, Omaha, Nebraska.
The equipment: an IBM-compatible 486/50, a Hewlett-Packard
ScanJet IIc flatbed scanner, and a copy of Calera Recognition
Systems' M/600 Series Professional OCR software and RISC
accelerator board donated by Calera.
For more information about this, ask about:
M/Series Profesional Software M/Series Accelerator Card
Calera Recognition Systems 475 Potrero Sunnyvale, CA 94086
1-408-720-8300
mikel@calera.com Mike Lynch
The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts
is at Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated
month. A preliminary version may often be posted for
suggestion, comment and editing by those who wish to do so. To
be sure you have an up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx]
please check file sizes in the first week of the next month.
Since our ftp program has a bug in it that scrambles the date
[tried to fix and failed] a look at the file size will have to
do, but we will try to see a new copy has at least one byte
more or less.
Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
We produce about two million dollars for each hour we
work. The fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long
it we take to get any etext selected, entered, proofread,
edited, copyright searched and analyzed, the copyright letters
written, etc. This projected audience is one hundred million
readers. If our value per text is nominally estimated at one
dollar, then we produce 2 million dollars per hour this year
we, will have to do four text files per month: thus upping our
productivity from one million. The Goal of Project Gutenberg is
to Give Away One Trillion Etext Files by the December 31, 2001.
[10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion] This is ten thousand titles
each to one hundred million readers, which is 10% of the
expected number of computer users by the end of the year
2001.
We need your donations more than ever!
All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC",
and are tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is
Illinois Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper
newsletter go to IBC, too)
For these and other matters, please mail to:
Project Gutenberg P. O. Box 2782 Champaign, IL
61825
When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart,
Executive Director: hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet)
hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
We would prefer to send you this information by email
(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
****** If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives: [Mac users, do
NOT point and click. . .type]
ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu login: anonymous password:
your@login cd etext/etext91 or cd etext92 or cd etext93 [for
new books] [now also in cd etext/etext93] or cd etext/articles
[get suggest gut for more information] dir [to see files] get
or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files] GET 0INDEX.GUT
for a list of books and GET NEW GUT for general information and
MGET GUT* for newsletters.
**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal
advisor** (Three Pages)
***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN
ETEXTS**START*** Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You
know: lawyers. They tell us you might sue us if there is
something wrong with your copy of this etext, even if you got
it for free from someone other than us, and even if what's
wrong is not our fault. So, among other things, this "Small
Print!" statement disclaims most of our liability to you. It
also tells you how you can distribute copies of this etext if
you want to.
*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT By using or reading
any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, you indicate that
you understand, agree to and accept this "Small Print!"
statement. If you do not, you can receive a refund of the money
(if any) you paid for this etext by sending a request within 30
days of receiving it to the person you got it from. If you
received this etext on a physical medium (such as a disk), you
must return it with your request.
ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS This PROJECT
GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG- tm etexts, is
a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart
through the Project Gutenberg Association at Illinois
Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other things, this
means that no one owns a United States copyright on or for this
work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and distribute it in
the United States without permission and without paying
copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth below, apply if
you wish to copy and distribute this etext under the Project's
"PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk
or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that
damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES But for the
"Right of Replacement or Refund" described below, [1] the
Project (and any other party you may receive this etext from as
a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all liability to you
for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees, and [2]
YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR UNDER STRICT LIABILITY,
OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL
DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGES.
If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that time
to the person you received it from. If you received it on a
physical medium, you must return it with your note, and such
person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement copy.
If you received it electronically, such person may choose to
alternatively give you a second opportunity to receive it
electronically.
THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of consequential
damages, so the above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply
to you, and you may have other legal rights.
INDEMNITY You will indemnify and hold the Project, its
directors, officers, members and agents harmless from all
liability, cost and expense, including legal fees, that arise
directly or indirectly from any of the following that you do or
cause: [1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration,
modification, or addition to the etext, or [3] any
Defect.
DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm" You may
distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by disk,
book or any other medium if you either delete this "Small
Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
or:
[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things,
this requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the etext
or this "small print!" statement. You may however, if you wish,
distribute this etext in machine readable binary, compressed,
mark-up, or proprietary form, including any form resulting from
conversion by word pro- cessing or hypertext software, but only
so long as *EITHER*:
[*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
does *not* contain characters other than those intended by the
author of the work, although tilde (~), asterisk (*) and
underline (_) characters may be used to convey punctuation
intended by the author, and additional characters may be used
to indicate hypertext links; OR
[*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent form by the
program that displays the etext (as is the case, for instance,
with most word processors); OR
[*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the etext in its
original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC or other equivalent
proprietary form).
[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of
this "Small Print!" statement.
[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of
the net profits you derive calculated using the method you
already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you don't
derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are payable to
"Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois Benedictine College"
within the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were
legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent
periodic) tax return.
WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE
TO? The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money,
time, scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts,
royalty free copyright licenses, and every other sort of
contribution you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project
Gutenberg Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN
ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
Original markup by Davey Leslie. 2/4/2000 Changes
Changes to the original E-text: "&how how" to "show
how"; "THE Substance" to "The Substance"
A production of Project Gutenberg and the HTML
Writers Guild. E-text by Judith Boss. Markup by Davey
Leslie
A Tale of Two Cities
Charles Dickens
CONTENTS
Book the First--Recalled to Life
- Chapter I The Period
- Chapter II The Mail
- Chapter III The Night Shadows
- Chapter IV The Preparation
- Chapter V The Wine-shop
- Chapter VI The Shoemaker
Book the Second--the Golden Thread
- Chapter I Five Years Later
- Chapter II A Sight
- Chapter III A Disappointment
- Chapter IV Congratulatory
- Chapter V The Jackal
- Chapter VI Hundreds of People
- Chapter VII Monseigneur in Town
- Chapter VIII Monseigneur in the Country
- Chapter IX The Gorgon's Head
- Chapter X Two Promises
- Chapter XI A Companion Picture
- Chapter XII The Fellow of Delicacy
- Chapter XIII The Fellow of no Delicacy
- Chapter XIV The Honest Tradesman
- Chapter XV Knitting
- Chapter XVI Still Knitting
- Chapter XVII One Night
- Chapter XVIII Nine Days
- Chapter XIX An Opinion
- Chapter XX A Plea
- Chapter XXI Echoing Footsteps
- Chapter XXII The Sea still Rises
- Chapter XXIII Fire Rises
- Chapter XXIV Drawn to the Loadstone Rock
Book the Third--the Track of a Storm
- Chapter I In Secret
- Chapter II The Grindstone
- Chapter III The Shadow
- Chapter IV Calm in Storm
- Chapter V The Wood-sawyer
- Chapter VI Triumph
- Chapter VII A Knock at the Door
- Chapter VIII A Hand at Cards
- Chapter IX The Game Made
- Chapter X The Substance of the Shadow
- Chapter XI Dusk
- Chapter XII Darkness
- Chapter XIII Fifty-two
- Chapter XIV The Knitting Done
- Chapter XV The Footsteps die out For ever
Book the First--Recalled to Life
I
The Period
It was the best of times, it was the worst of
times, it was the age of wisdom, it was the age of
foolishness, it was the epoch of belief, it was the epoch
of incredulity, it was the season of Light, it was the
season of Darkness, it was the spring of hope, it was the
winter of despair, we had everything before us, we had
nothing before us, we were all going direct to Heaven, we
were all going direct the other way--in short, the period
was so far like the present period, that some of its
noisiest authorities insisted on its being received, for
good or for evil, in the superlative degree of comparison
only.
There were a king with a large jaw and a queen with
a plain face, on the throne of England; there were a king
with a large jaw and a queen with a fair face, on the
throne of France. In both countries it was clearer than
crystal to the lords of the State preserves of loaves and
fishes, that things in general were settled for
ever.
It was the year of Our Lord one thousand seven
hundred and seventy-five. Spiritual revelations were
conceded to England at that favoured period, as at this.
Mrs. Southcott had recently attained her
five-and-twentieth blessed birthday, of whom a prophetic
private in the Life Guards had heralded the sublime
appearance by announcing that arrangements were made for
the swallowing up of London and Westminster. Even the
Cock-lane ghost had been laid only a round dozen of
years, after rapping out its messages, as the spirits of
this very year last past (supernaturally deficient in
originality) rapped out theirs. Mere messages in the
earthly order of events had lately come to the English
Crown and People, from a congress of British subjects in
America: which, strange to relate, have proved more
important to the human race than any communications yet
received through any of the chickens of the Cock-lane
brood.
France, less favoured on the whole as to matters
spiritual than her sister of the shield and trident,
rolled with exceeding smoothness down hill, making paper
money and spending it. Under the guidance of her
Christian pastors, she entertained herself, besides, with
such humane achievements as sentencing a youth to have
his hands cut off, his tongue torn out with pincers, and
his body burned alive, because he had not kneeled down in
the rain to do honour to a dirty procession of monks
which passed within his view, at a distance of some fifty
or sixty yards. It is likely enough that, rooted in the
woods of France and Norway, there were growing trees,
when that sufferer was put to death, already marked by
the Woodman, Fate, to come down and be sawn into boards,
to make a certain movable framework with a sack and a
knife in it, terrible in history. It is likely enough
that in the rough outhouses of some tillers of the heavy
lands adjacent to Paris, there were sheltered from the
weather that very day, rude carts, bespattered with
rustic mire, snuffed about by pigs, and roosted in by
poultry, which the Farmer, Death, had already set apart
to be his tumbrils of the Revolution. But that Woodman
and that Farmer, though they work unceasingly, work
silently, and no one heard them as they went about with
muffled tread: the rather, forasmuch as to entertain any
suspicion that they were awake, was to be atheistical and
traitorous.
In England, there was scarcely an amount of order
and protection to justify much national boasting. Daring
burglaries by armed men, and highway robberies, took
place in the capital itself every night; families were
publicly cautioned not to go out of town without removing
their furniture to upholsterers' warehouses for security;
the highwayman in the dark was a City tradesman in the
light, and, being recognised and challenged by his
fellow- tradesman whom he stopped in his character of
"the Captain," gallantly shot him through the head and
rode away; the mall was waylaid by seven robbers, and the
guard shot three dead, and then got shot dead himself by
the other four, "in consequence of the failure of his
ammunition:" after which the mall was robbed in peace;
that magnificent potentate, the Lord Mayor of London, was
made to stand and deliver on Turnham Green, by one
highwayman, who despoiled the illustrious creature in
sight of all his retinue; prisoners in London gaols
fought battles with their turnkeys, and the majesty of
the law fired blunderbusses in among them, loaded with
rounds of shot and ball; thieves snipped off diamond
crosses from the necks of noble lords at Court
drawing-rooms; musketeers went into St. Giles's, to
search for contraband goods, and the mob fired on the
musketeers, and the musketeers fired on the mob, and
nobody thought any of these occurrences much out of the
common way. In the midst of them, the hangman, ever busy
and ever worse than useless, was in constant requisition;
now, stringing up long rows of miscellaneous criminals;
now, hanging a housebreaker on Saturday who had been
taken on Tuesday; now, burning people in the hand at
Newgate by the dozen, and now burning pamphlets at the
door of Westminster Hall; to-day, taking the life of an
atrocious murderer, and to-morrow of a wretched pilferer
who had robbed a farmer's boy of sixpence.
All these things, and a thousand like them, came to
pass in and close upon the dear old year one thousand
seven hundred and seventy-five. Environed by them, while
the Woodman and the Farmer worked unheeded, those two of
the large jaws, and those other two of the plain and the
fair faces, trod with stir enough, and carried their
divine rights with a high hand. Thus did the year one
thousand seven hundred and seventy-five conduct their
Greatnesses, and myriads of small creatures--the
creatures of this chronicle among the rest--along the
roads that lay before them.
II
The Mail
It was the Dover road that lay, on a Friday night
late in November, before the first of the persons with
whom this history has business. The Dover road lay, as to
him, beyond the Dover mail, as it lumbered up Shooter's
Hill. He walked up hill in the mire by the side of the
mail, as the rest of the passengers did; not because they
had the least relish for walking exercise, under the
circumstances, but because the hill, and the harness, and
the mud, and the mail, were all so heavy, that the horses
had three times already come to a stop, besides once
drawing the coach across the road, with the mutinous
intent of taking it back to Blackheath. Reins and whip
and coachman and guard, however, in combination, had read
that article of war which forbade a purpose otherwise
strongly in favour of the argument, that some brute
animals are endued with Reason; and the team had
capitulated and returned to their duty.
With drooping heads and tremulous tails, they
mashed their way through the thick mud, floundering and
stumbling between whiles, as if they were falling to
pieces at the larger joints. As often as the driver
rested them and brought them to a stand, with a wary
"Wo-ho! so-ho- then!" the near leader violently shook his
head and everything upon it--like an unusually emphatic
horse, denying that the coach could be got up the hill.
Whenever the leader made this rattle, the passenger
started, as a nervous passenger might, and was disturbed
in mind.
There was a steaming mist in all the hollows, and
it had roamed in its forlornness up the hill, like an
evil spirit, seeking rest and finding none. A clammy and
intensely cold mist, it made its slow way through the air
in ripples that visibly followed and overspread one
another, as the waves of an unwholesome sea might do. It
was dense enough to shut out everything from the light of
the coach-lamps but these its own workings, and a few
yards of road; and the reek of the labouring horses
steamed into it, as if they had made it all.
Two other passengers, besides the one, were
plodding up the hill by the side of the mail. All three
were wrapped to the cheekbones and over the ears, and
wore jack-boots. Not one of the three could have said,
from anything he saw, what either of the other two was
like; and each was hidden under almost as many wrappers
from the eyes of the mind, as from the eyes of the body,
of his two companions. In those days, travellers were
very shy of being confidential on a short notice, for
anybody on the road might be a robber or in league with
robbers. As to the latter, when every posting-house and
ale-house could produce somebody in "the Captain's" pay,
ranging from the landlord to the lowest stable
non-descript, it was the likeliest thing upon the cards.
So the guard of the Dover mail thought to himself, that
Friday night in November, one thousand seven hundred and
seventy-five, lumbering up Shooter's Hill, as he stood on
his own particular perch behind the mail, beating his
feet, and keeping an eye and a hand on the arm-chest
before him, where a loaded blunderbuss lay at the top of
six or eight loaded horse-pistols, deposited on a
substratum of cutlass.
The Dover mail was in its usual genial position
that the guard suspected the passengers, the passengers
suspected one another and the guard, they all suspected
everybody else, and the coachman was sure of nothing but
the horses; as to which cattle he could with a clear
conscience have taken his oath on the two Testaments that
they were not fit for the journey.
"Wo-ho!" said the coachman. "So, then! One more
pull and you're at the top and be damned to you, for I
have had trouble enough to get you to it!--Joe!"
"Halloa!" the guard replied.
"What o'clock do you make it, Joe?"
"Ten minutes, good, past eleven."
"My blood!" ejaculated the vexed coachman, "and not
atop of Shooter's yet! Tst! Yah! Get on with you!
"
The emphatic horse, cut short by the whip in a most
decided negative, made a decided scramble for it, and the
three other horses followed suit. Once more, the Dover
mail struggled on, with the jack-boots of its passengers
squashing along by its side. They had stopped when the
coach stopped, and they kept close company with it. If
any one of the three had had the hardihood to propose to
another to walk on a little ahead into the mist and
darkness, he would have put himself in a fair way of
getting shot instantly as a highwayman.
The last burst carried the mail to the summit of
the hill. The horses stopped to breathe again, and the
guard got down to skid the wheel for the descent, and
open the coach-door to let the passengers in.
"Tst! Joe!" cried the coachman in a warning voice,
looking down from his box.
"What do you say, Tom?"
They both listened.
"I say a horse at a canter coming up, Joe."
"_I_ say a horse at a gallop, Tom," returned the
guard, leaving his hold of the door, and mounting nimbly
to his place. "Gentlemen! In the kings name, all of
you!"
With this hurried adjuration, he cocked his
blunderbuss, and stood on the offensive.
The passenger booked by this history, was on the
coach-step, getting in; the two other passengers were
close behind him, and about to follow. He remained on the
step, half in the coach and half out of; they re-mained
in the road below him. They all looked from the coachman
to the guard, and from the guard to the coachman, and
listened. The coachman looked back and the guard looked
back, and even the emphatic leader pricked up his ears
and looked back, without contradicting.
The stillness consequent on the cessation of the
rumbling and and labouring of the coach, added to the
stillness of the night, made it very quiet indeed. The
panting of the horses communicated a tremulous motion to
the coach, as if it were in a state of agitation. The
hearts of the passengers beat loud enough perhaps to be
heard; but at any rate, the quiet pause was audibly
expressive of people out of breath, and holding the
breath, and having the pulses quickened by
expectation.
The sound of a horse at a gallop came fast and
furiously up the hill.
"So-ho!" the guard sang out, as loud as he could
roar. "Yo there! Stand! I shall fire!"
The pace was suddenly checked, and, with much
splashing and floundering, a man's voice called from the
mist, "Is that the Dover mail?"
"Never you mind what it is!" the guard retorted.
"What are you?"
"IS that the Dover mail?"
"Why do you want to know?"
"I want a passenger, if it is."
"What passenger?"
"Mr. Jarvis Lorry."
Our booked passenger showed in a moment that it was
his name. The guard, the coachman, and the two other
passengers eyed him distrustfully.
"Keep where you are," the guard called to the voice
in the mist, "because, if I should make a mistake, it
could never be set right in your lifetime. Gentleman of
the name of Lorry answer straight."
"What is the matter?" asked the passenger, then,
with mildly quavering speech. "Who wants me? Is it
Jerry?"
("I don't like Jerry's voice, if it is Jerry,"
growled the guard to himself. "He's hoarser than suits
me, is Jerry.")
"Yes, Mr. Lorry."
"What is the matter?"
"A despatch sent after you from over yonder. T. and
Co."
"I know this messenger, guard," said Mr. Lorry,
getting down into the road--assisted from behind more
swiftly than politely by the other two passengers, who
immediately scrambled into the coach, shut the door, and
pulled up the window. "He may come close; there's nothing
wrong."
"I hope there ain't, but I can't make so 'Nation
sure of that," said the guard, in gruff soliloquy. "Hallo
you!"
"Well! And hallo you!" said Jerry, more hoarsely
than before.
"Come on at a footpace! d'ye mind me? And if you've
got holsters to that saddle o' yourn, don't let me see
your hand go nigh 'em. For I'm a devil at a quick
mistake, and when I make one it takes the form of Lead.
So now let's look at you."
The figures of a horse and rider came slowly
through the eddying mist, and came to the side of the
mail, where the passenger stood. The rider stooped, and,
casting up his eyes at the guard, handed the passenger a
small folded paper. The rider's horse was blown, and both
horse and rider were covered with mud, from the hoofs of
the horse to the hat of the man.
"Guard!" said the passenger, in a tone of quiet
business confidence.
The watchful guard, with his right hand at the
stock of his raised blunderbuss, his left at the barrel,
and his eye on the horseman, answered curtly,
"Sir."
"There is nothing to apprehend. I belong to
Tellson's Bank. You must know Tellson's Bank in London. I
am going to Paris on business. A crown to drink. I may
read this?"
"If so be as you're quick, sir."
He opened it in the light of the coach-lamp on that
side, and read--first to himself and then aloud: "`Wait
at Dover for Mam'selle.' It's not long, you see, guard.
Jerry, say that my answer was, RECALLED TO LIFE."
Jerry started in his saddle. "That's a Blazing
strange answer, too," said he, at his hoarsest.
"Take that message back, and they will know that I
received this, as well as if I wrote. Make the best of
your way. Good night."
With those words the passenger opened the
coach-door and got in; not at all assisted by his
fellow-passengers, who had expeditiously secreted their
watches and purses in their boots, and were now making a
general pretence of being asleep. With no more definite
purpose than to escape the hazard of originating any
other kind of action.
The coach lumbered on again, with heavier wreaths
of mist closing round it as it began the descent. The
guard soon replaced his blunderbuss in his arm-chest,
and, having looked to the rest of its contents, and
having looked to the supplementary pistols that he wore
in his belt, looked to a smaller chest beneath his seat,
in which there were a few smith's tools, a couple of
torches, and a tinder-box. For he was furnished with that
completeness that if the coach-lamps had been blown and
stormed out, which did occasionally happen, he had only
to shut himself up inside, keep the flint and steel
sparks well off the straw, and get a light with tolerable
safety and ease (if he were lucky) in five
minutes.
"Tom!" softly over the coach roof.
"Hallo, Joe."
"Did you hear the message?"
"I did, Joe."
"What did you make of it, Tom?"
"Nothing at all, Joe."
"That's a coincidence, too," the guard mused, "for
I made the same of it myself."
Jerry, left alone in the mist and darkness,
dismounted meanwhile, not only to ease his spent horse,
but to wipe the mud from his face, and shake the wet out
of his hat-brim, which might be capable of holding about
half a gallon. After standing with the bridle over his
heavily-splashed arm, until the wheels of the mail were
no longer within hearing and the night was quite still
again, he turned to walk down the hill.
"After that there gallop from Temple Bar, old lady,
I won't trust your fore-legs till I get you on the
level," said this hoarse messenger, glancing at his mare.
"`Recalled to life.' That's a Blazing strange message.
Much of that wouldn't do for you, Jerry! I say, Jerry!
You'd be in a Blazing bad way, if recalling to life was
to come into fashion, Jerry!"
III
The Night Shadows
A Wonderful fact to reflect upon, that every human
creature is constituted to be that profound secret and
mystery to every other. A solemn consideration, when I
enter a great city by night, that every one of those
darkly clustered houses encloses its own secret; that
every room in every one of them encloses its own secret;
that every beating heart in the hundreds of thousands of
breasts there, is, in some of its imaginings, a secret to
the heart nearest it! Something of the awfulness, even of
Death itself, is referable to this. No more can I turn
the leaves of this dear book that I loved, and vainly
hope in time to read it all. No more can I look into the
depths of this unfathomable water, wherein, as momentary
lights glanced into it, I have had glimpses of buried
treasure and other things submerged. It was appointed
that the book should shut with a a spring, for ever and
for ever, when I had read but a page. It was appointed
that the water should be locked in an eternal frost, when
the light was playing on its surface, and I stood in
ignorance on the shore. My friend is dead, my neighbour
is dead, my love, the darling of my soul, is dead; it is
the inexorable consolidation and perpetuation of the
secret that was always in that individuality, and which I
shall carry in mine to my life's end. In any of the
burial-places of this city through which I pass, is there
a sleeper more inscrutable than its busy inhabitants are,
in their innermost personality, to me, or than I am to
them?
As to this, his natural and not to be alienated
inheritance, the messenger on horseback had exactly the
same possessions as the King, the first Minister of
State, or the richest merchant in London. So with the
three passengers shut up in the narrow compass of one
lumbering old mail coach; they were mysteries to one
another, as complete as if each had been in his own coach
and six, or his own coach and sixty, with the breadth of
a county between him and the next.
The messenger rode back at an easy trot, stopping
pretty often at ale-houses by the way to drink, but
evincing a tendency to keep his own counsel, and to keep
his hat cocked over his eyes. He had eyes that assorted
very well with that decoration, being of a surface black,
with no depth in the colour or form, and much too near
together--as if they were afraid of being found out in
something, singly, if they kept too far apart. They had a
sinister expression, under an old cocked-hat like a
three-cornered spittoon, and over a great muffler for the
chin and throat, which descended nearly to the wearer's
knees. When he stopped for drink, he moved this muffler
with his left hand, only while he poured his liquor in
with his right; as soon as that was done, he muffled
again.
"No, Jerry, no!" said the messenger, harping on one
theme as he rode. "It wouldn't do for you, Jerry. Jerry,
you honest tradesman, it wouldn't suit YOUR line of
business! Recalled--! Bust me if I don't think he'd been
a drinking!"
His message perplexed his mind to that degree that
he was fain, several times, to take off his hat to
scratch his head. Except on the crown, which was raggedly
bald, he had stiff, black hair, standing jaggedly all
over it, and growing down hill almost to his broad, blunt
nose. It was so like Smith's work, so much more like the
top of a strongly spiked wall than a head of hair, that
the best of players at leap-frog might have declined him,
as the most dangerous man in the world to go over.
While he trotted back with the message he was to
deliver to the night watchman in his box at the door of
Tellson's Bank, by Temple Bar, who was to deliver it to
greater authorities within, the shadows of the night took
such shapes to him as arose out of the message, and took
such shapes to the mare as arose out of HER private
topics of uneasiness. They seemed to be numerous, for she
shied at every shadow on the road.
What time, the mail-coach lumbered, jolted,
rattled, and bumped upon its tedious way, with its three
fellow-inscrutables inside. To whom, likewise, the
shadows of the night revealed themselves, in the forms
their dozing eyes and wandering thoughts
suggested.
Tellson's Bank had a run upon it in the mail. As
the bank passenger-- with an arm drawn through the
leathern strap, which did what lay in it to keep him from
pounding against the next passenger, and driving him into
his corner, whenever the coach got a special jolt--nodded
in his place, with half-shut eyes, the little
coach-windows, and the coach-lamp dimly gleaming through
them, and the bulky bundle of opposite passenger, became
the bank, and did a great stroke of business. The rattle
of the harness was the chink of money, and more drafts
were honoured in five minutes than even Tellson's, with
all its foreign and home connection, ever paid in thrice
the time. Then the strong-rooms underground, at
Tellson's, with such of their valuable stores and secrets
as were known to the passenger (and it was not a little
that he knew about them), opened before him, and he went
in among them with the great keys and the feebly-burning
candle, and found them safe, and strong, and sound, and
still, just as he had last seen them.
But, though the bank was almost always with him,
and though the coach (in a confused way, like the
presence of pain under an opiate) was always with him,
there was another current of impression that never ceased
to run, all through the night. He was on his way to dig
some one out of a grave.
Now, which of the multitude of faces that showed
themselves before him was the true face of the buried
person, the shadows of the night did not indicate; but
they were all the faces of a man of five-and- forty by
years, and they differed principally in the passions they
expressed, and in the ghastliness of their worn and
wasted state. Pride, contempt, defiance, stubbornness,
submission, lamentation, succeeded one another; so did
varieties of sunken cheek, cadaverous colour, emaciated
hands and figures. But the face was in the main one face,
and every head was prematurely white. A hundred times the
dozing passenger inquired of this spectre:
"Buried how long?"
The answer was always the same: "Almost eighteen
years."
"You had abandoned all hope of being dug
out?"
"Long ago."
"You know that you are recalled to life?"
"They tell me so."
"I hope you care to live?"
"I can't say."
"Shall I show her to you? Will you come and see
her?"
The answers to this question were various and
contradictory. Sometimes the broken reply was, "Wait! It
would kill me if I saw her too soon." Sometimes, it was
given in a tender rain of tears, and then it was, "Take
me to her." Sometimes it was staring and bewildered, and
then it was, "I don't know her. I don't
understand."
After such imaginary discourse, the passenger in
his fancy would dig, and dig, dig--now with a spade, now
with a great key, now with his hands--to dig this
wretched creature out. Got out at last, with earth
hanging about his face and hair, he would suddenly fan
away to dust. The passenger would then start to himself,
and lower the window, to get the reality of mist and rain
on his cheek.
Yet even when his eyes were opened on the mist and
rain, on the moving patch of light from the lamps, and
the hedge at the roadside retreating by jerks, the night
shadows outside the coach would fall into the train of
the night shadows within. The real Banking-house by
Temple Bar, the real business of the past day, the real
strong rooms, the real express sent after him, and the
real message returned, would all be there. Out of the
midst of them, the ghostly face would rise, and he would
accost it again.
"Buried how long?"
"Almost eighteen years."
"I hope you care to live?"
"I can't say."
Dig--dig--dig--until an impatient movement from one
of the two passengers would admonish him to pull up the
window, draw his arm securely through the leathern strap,
and speculate upon the two slumbering forms, until his
mind lost its hold of them, and they again slid away into
the bank and the grave.
"Buried how long?"
"Almost eighteen years."
"You had abandoned all hope of being dug
out?"
"Long ago."
The words were still in his hearing as just
spoken--distinctly in his hearing as ever spoken words
had been in his life--when the weary passenger started to
the consciousness of daylight, and found that the shadows
of the night were gone.
He lowered the window, and looked out at the rising
sun. There was a ridge of ploughed land, with a plough
upon it where it had been left last night when the horses
were unyoked; beyond, a quiet coppice-wood, in which many
leaves of burning red and golden yellow still remained
upon the trees. Though the earth was cold and wet, the
sky was clear, and the sun rose bright, placid, and
beautiful.
"Eighteen years!" said the passenger, looking at
the sun. "Gracious Creator of day! To be buried alive for
eighteen years!"
IV
The Preparation
When the mail got successfully to Dover, in the
course of the forenoon, the head drawer at the Royal
George Hotel opened the coach-door as his custom was. He
did it with some flourish of ceremony, for a mail journey
from London in winter was an achievement to congratulate
an adventurous traveller upon.
By that time, there was only one adventurous
traveller left be congratulated: for the two others had
been set down at their respective roadside destinations.
The mildewy inside of the coach, with its damp and dirty
straw, its disageeable smell, and its obscurity, was
rather like a larger dog-kennel. Mr. Lorry, the
passenger, shaking himself out of it in chains of straw,
a tangle of shaggy wrapper, flapping hat, and muddy legs,
was rather like a larger sort of dog.
"There will be a packet to Calais, tomorrow,
drawer?"
"Yes, sir, if the weather holds and the wind sets
tolerable fair. The tide will serve pretty nicely at
about two in the afternoon, sir. Bed, sir?"
"I shall not go to bed till night; but I want a
bedroom, and a barber."
"And then breakfast, sir? Yes, sir. That way, sir,
if you please. Show Concord! Gentleman's valise and hot
water to Concord. Pull off gentleman's boots in Concord.
(You will find a fine sea-coal fire, sir.) Fetch barber
to Concord. Stir about there, now, for Concord!"
The Concord bed-chamber being always assigned to a
passenger by the mail, and passengers by the mail being
always heavily wrapped up from bead to foot, the room had
the odd interest for the establishment of the Royal
George, that although but one kind of man was seen to go
into it, all kinds and varieties of men came out of it.
Consequently, another drawer, and two porters, and
several maids and the landlady, were all loitering by
accident at various points of the road between the
Concord and the coffee-room, when a gentleman of sixty,
formally dressed in a brown suit of clothes, pretty well
worn, but very well kept, with large square cuffs and
large flaps to the pockets, passed along on his way to
his breakfast.
The coffee-room had no other occupant, that
forenoon, than the gentleman in brown. His
breakfast-table was drawn before the fire, and as he sat,
with its light shining on him, waiting for the meal, he
sat so still, that he might have been sitting for his
portrait.
Very orderly and methodical he looked, with a hand
on each knee, and a loud watch ticking a sonorous sermon
under his flapped waist-coat, as though it pitted its
gravity and longevity against the levity and evanescence
of the brisk fire. He had a good leg, and was a little
vain of it, for his brown stockings fitted sleek and
close, and were of a fine texture; his shoes and buckles,
too, though plain, were trim. He wore an odd little sleek
crisp flaxen wig, setting very close to his head: which
wig, it is to be presumed, was made of hair, but which
looked far more as though it were spun from filaments of
silk or glass. His linen, though not of a fineness in
accordance with his stockings, was as white as the tops
of the waves that broke upon the neighbouring beach, or
the specks of sail that glinted in the sunlight far at
sea. A face habitually suppressed and quieted, was still
lighted up under the quaint wig by a pair of moist bright
eyes that it must have cost their owner, in years gone
by, some pains to drill to the composed and reserved
expression of Tellson's Bank. He had a healthy colour in
his cheeks, and his face, though lined, bore few traces
of anxiety. But, perhaps the confidential bachelor clerks
in Tellson's Bank were principally occupied with the
cares of other people; and perhaps second-hand cares,
like second-hand clothes, come easily off and on.
Completing his resemblance to a man who was sitting
for his portrait, Mr. Lorry dropped off to sleep. The
arrival of his breakfast roused him, and he said to the
drawer, as he moved his chair to it:
"I wish accommodation prepared for a young lady who
may come here at any time to-day. She may ask for Mr.
Jarvis Lorry, or she may only ask for a gentleman from
Tellson's Bank. Please to let me know."
"Yes, sir. Tellson's Bank in London, sir?"
"Yes."
"Yes, sir. We have oftentimes the honour to
entertain your gentlemen in their travelling backwards
and forwards betwixt London and Paris, sir. A vast deal
of travelling, sir, in Tellson and Company's
House."
"Yes. We are quite a French House, as well as an
English one."
"Yes, sir. Not much in the habit of such travelling
yourself, I think, sir?"
"Not of late years. It is fifteen years since
we--since I-- came last from France."
"Indeed, sir? That was before my time here, sir.
Before our people's time here, sir. The George was in
other hands at that time, sir."
"I believe so."
"But I would hold a pretty wager, sir, that a House
like Tellson and Company was flourishing, a matter of
fifty, not to speak of fifteen years ago?"
"You might treble that, and say a hundred and
fifty, yet not be far from the truth."
"Indeed, sir!"
Rounding his mouth and both his eyes, as he stepped
backward from the table, the waiter shifted his napkin
from his right arm to his left, dropped into a
comfortable attitude, and stood surveying the guest while
he ate and drank, as from an observatory or watchtower.
According to the immemorial usage of waiters in all
ages.
When Mr. Lorry had finished his breakfast, he went
out for a stroll on the beach. The little narrow, crooked
town of Dover hid itself away from the beach, and ran its
head into the chalk cliffs, like a marine ostrich. The
beach was a desert of heaps of sea and stones tumbling
wildly about, and the sea did what it liked, and what it
liked was destruction. It thundered at the town, and
thundered at the cliffs, and brought the coast down,
madly. The air among the houses was of so strong a
piscatory flavour that one might have supposed sick fish
went up to be dipped in it, as sick people went down to
be dipped in the sea. A little fishing was done in the
port, and a quantity of strolling about by night, and
looking seaward: particularly at those times when the
tide made, and was near flood. Small tradesmen, who did
no business whatever, sometimes unaccountably realised
large fortunes, and it was remarkable that nobody in the
neighbourhood could endure a lamplighter.
As the day declined into the afternoon, and the
air, which had been at intervals clear enough to allow
the French coast to be seen, became again charged with
mist and vapour, Mr. Lorry's thoughts seemed to cloud
too. When it was dark, and he sat before the coffee-room
fire, awaiting his dinner as he had awaited his
breakfast, his mind was busily digging, digging, digging,
in the live red coals.
A bottle of good claret after dinner does a digger
in the red coals no harm, otherwise than as it has a
tendency to throw him out of work. Mr. Lorry had been
idle a long time, and had just poured out his last
glassful of wine with as complete an appearance of
satisfaction as is ever to be found in an elderly
gentleman of a fresh complexion who has got to the end of
a bottle, when a rattling of wheels came up the narrow
street, and rumbled into the inn-yard.
He set down his glass untouched. "This is
Mam'selle!" said he.
In a very few minutes the waiter came in to
announce that Miss Manette had arrived from London, and
would be happy to see the gentleman from
Tellson's.
"So soon?"
Miss Manette had taken some refreshment on the
road, and required none then, and was extremely anxious
to see the gentleman from Tellson's immediately, if it
suited his pleasure and convenience.
The gentleman from Tellson's had nothing left for
it but to empty his glass with an air of stolid
desperation, settle his odd little flaxen wig at the
ears, and follow the waiter to Miss Manette's apartment.
It was a large, dark room, furnished in a funereal manner
with black horsehair, and loaded with heavy dark tables.
These had been oiled and oiled, until the two tall
candles on the table in the middle of the room were
gloomily reflected on every leaf; as if THEY were buried,
in deep graves of black mahogany, and no light to speak
of could be expected from them until they were dug
out.
The obscurity was so difficult to penetrate that
Mr. Lorry, picking his way over the well-worn Turkey
carpet, supposed
Miss Manette to be, for the moment, in some
adjacent room, until, having got past the two tall
candles, he saw standing to receive him by the table
between them and the fire, a young lady of not more than
seventeen, in a riding-cloak, and still holding her straw
travelling- hat by its ribbon in her hand. As his eyes
rested on a short, slight, pretty figure, a quantity of
golden hair, a pair of blue eyes that met his own with an
inquiring look, and a forehead with a singular capacity
(remembering how young and smooth it was), of rifting and
knitting itself into an expression that was not quite one
of perplexity, or wonder, or alarm, or merely of a bright
fixed attention, though it included all the four
expressions-as his eyes rested on these things, a sudden
vivid likeness passed before him, of a child whom he had
held in his arms on the passage across that very Channel,
one cold time, when the hail drifted heavily and the sea
ran high. The likeness passed away, like a breath along
the surface of the gaunt pier-glass behind her, on the
frame of which, a hospital procession of negro cupids,
several headless and all cripples, were offering black
baskets of Dead Sea fruit to black divinities of the
feminine gender-and he made his formal bow to Miss
Manette.
"Pray take a seat, sir." In a very clear and
pleasant young voice; a little foreign in its accent, but
a very little indeed.
"I kiss your hand, miss," said Mr. Lorry, with the
manners of an earlier date, as he made his formal bow
again, and took his seat.
"I received a letter from the Bank, sir, yesterday,
informing me that some intelligence--or
discovery--"
"The word is not material, miss; either word will
do."
"--respecting the small property of my poor father,
whom I never saw--so long dead--"
Mr. Lorry moved in his chair, and cast a troubled
look towards the hospital procession of negro cupids. As
if THEY had any help for anybody in their absurd
baskets!
"--rendered it necessary that I should go to Paris,
there to communicate with a gentleman of the Bank, so
good as to be despatched to Paris for the
purpose."
"Myself."
"As I was prepared to hear, sir."
She curtseyed to him (young ladies made curtseys in
those days), with a pretty desire to convey to him that
she felt how much older and wiser he was than she. He
made her another bow.
"I replied to the Bank, sir, that as it was
considered necessary, by those who know, and who are so
kind as to advise me, that I should go to France, and
that as I am an orphan and have no friend who could go
with me, I should esteem it highly if I might be
permitted to place myself, during the journey, under that
worthy gentleman's protection. The gentleman had left
London, but I think a messenger was sent after him to beg
the favour of his waiting for me here."
"I was happy," said Mr. Lorry, "to be entrusted
with the charge. I shall be more happy to execute
it."
"Sir, I thank you indeed. I thank you very
gratefully. It was told me by the Bank that the gentleman
would explain to me the details of the business, and that
I must prepare myself to find them of a surprising
nature. I have done my best to prepare myself, and I
naturally have a strong and eager interest to know what
they are."
"Naturally," said Mr. Lorry. "Yes--I--"
After a pause, he added, again settling the crisp
flaxen wig at the ears, "It is very difficult to
begin."
He did not begin, but, in his indecision, met her
glance. The young forehead lifted itself into that
singular expression--but it was pretty and
characteristic, besides being singular--and she raised
her hand, as if with an involuntary action she caught at,
or stayed some passing shadow.
"Are you quite a stranger to me, sir?"
"Am I not?" Mr. Lorry opened his hands, and
extended them outwards with an argumentative
smile.
Between the eyebrows and just over the little
feminine nose, the line of which was as delicate and fine
as it was possible to be, the expression deepened itself
as she took her seat thoughtfully in the chair by which
she had hitherto remained standing. He watched her as she
mused, and the moment she raised her eyes again, went
on:
"In your adopted country, I presume, I cannot do
better than address you as a young English lady, Miss
Manette?"
"If you please, sir."
"Miss Manette, I am a man of business. I have a
business charge to acquit myself of. In your reception of
it, don't heed me any more than if I was a speaking
machine-truly, I am not much else. I will, with your
leave, relate to you, miss, the story of one of our
customers."
"Story!"
He seemed wilfully to mistake the word she had
repeated, when he added, in a hurry, "Yes, customers; in
the banking business we usually call our connection our
customers. He was a French gentleman; a scientific
gentleman; a man of great acquirements-- a
Doctor."
"Not of Beauvais?"
"Why, yes, of Beauvais. Like Monsieur Manette, your
father, the gentleman was of Beauvais. Like Monsieur
Manette, your father, the gentleman was of repute in
Paris. I had the honour of knowing him there. Our
relations were business relations, but confidential. I
was at that time in our French House, and had been--oh!
twenty years."
"At that time--I may ask, at what time,
sir?"
"I speak, miss, of twenty years ago. He married--an
English lady--and I was one of the trustees. His affairs,
like the affairs of many other French gentlemen and
French families, were entirely in Tellson's hands. In a
similar way I am, or I have been, trustee of one kind or
other for scores of our customers. These are mere
business relations, miss; there is no friendship in them,
no particular interest, nothing like sentiment. I have
passed from one to another, in the course of my business
life, just as I pass from one of our customers to another
in the course of my business day; in short, I have no
feelings; I am a mere machine. To go on--"
"But this is my father's story, sir; and I begin to
think" --the curiously roughened forehead was very intent
upon him--"that when I was left an orphan through my
mother's surviving my father only two years, it was you
who brought me to England. I am almost sure it was
you."
Mr. Lorry took the hesitating little hand that
confidingly advanced to take his, and he put it with some
ceremony to his lips. He then conducted the young lady
straightway to her chair again, and, holding the
chair-back with his left hand, and using his right by
turns to rub his chin, pull his wig at the ears, or point
what he said, stood looking down into her face while she
sat looking up into his.
"Miss Manette, it WAS I. And you will see how truly
I spoke of myself just now, in saying I had no feelings,
and that all the relations I hold with my
fellow-creatures are mere business relations, when you
reflect that I have never seen you since. No; you have
been the ward of Tellson's House since, and I have been
busy with the other business of Tellson's House since.
Feelings! I have no time for them, no chance of them. I
pass my whole life, miss, in turning an immense pecuniary
Mangle."
After this odd description of his daily routine of
employment, Mr. Lorry flattened his flaxen wig upon his
head with both hands (which was most unnecessary, for
nothing could be flatter than its shining surface was
before), and resumed his former attitude.
"So far, miss (as you have remarked), this is the
story of your gretted father. Now comes the difference.
If your father had not died when he did--Don't be
frightened! How you start!"
She did, indeed, start. And she caught his wrist
with both her hands.
"Pray," said Mr. Lorry, in a soothing tone,
bringing his left hand from the back of the chair to lay
it on the supplicatory fingers that clasped him in so
violent a tremble: "pray control your agitation-- a
matter of business. As I was saying--"
Her look so discomposed him that he stopped,
wandered, and began anew:
"As I was saying; if Monsieur Manette had not died;
if he had suddenly and silently disappeared; if he had
been spirited away; if it had not been difficult to guess
to what dreadful place, though no art could trace him; if
he had an enemy in some compatriot who could exercise a
privilege that I in my own time have known the boldest
people afraid to speak of in a whisper, across the water
there; for instance, the privilege of filling up blank
forms for the consignment of any one to the oblivion of a
prison for any length of time; if his wife had implored
the king, the queen, the court, the clergy, for any
tidings of him, and all quite in vain;--then the history
of your father would have been the history of this
unfortunate gentleman, the Doctor of Beauvais."
"I entreat you to tell me more, sir."
"I will. I am going to. You can bear it?"
"I can bear anything but the uncertainty you leave
me in at this moment."
"You speak collectedly, and you--ARE collected.
That's good!" (Though his manner was less satisfied than
his words.) "A matter of business. Regard it as a matter
of business-business that must be done. Now if this
doctor's wife, though a lady of great courage and spirit,
had suffered so intensely from this cause before her
little child was born--"
"The little child was a daughter, sir."
"A daughter. A-a-matter of business--don't be
distressed. Miss, if the poor lady had suffered so
intensely before her little child was born, that she came
to the determination of sparing the poor child the
inheritance of any part of the agony she had known the
pains of, by rearing her in the belief that her father
was dead-- No, don't kneel! In Heaven's name why should
you kneel to me!"
"For the truth. O dear, good, compassionate sir,
for the truth!"
"A-a matter of business. You confuse me, and how
can I transact business if I am confused? Let us be
clear-headed. If you could kindly mention now, for
instance, what nine times ninepence are, or how many
shillings in twenty guineas, it would be so encouraging.
I should be so much more at my ease about your state of
mind."
Without directly answering to this appeal, she sat
so still when he had very gently raised her, and the
hands that had not ceased to clasp his wrists were so
much more steady than they had been, that she
communicated some reassurance to Mr. Jarvis Lorry.
"That's right, that's right. Courage! Business! You
have business before you; useful business. Miss Manette,
your mother took this course with you. And when she
died--I believe broken-hearted-- having never slackened
her unavailing search for your father, she left you, at
two years old, to grow to be blooming, beautiful, and
happy, without the dark cloud upon you of living in
uncertainty whether your father soon wore his heart out
in prison, or wasted there through many lingering
years."
As he said the words he looked down, with an
admiring pity, on the flowing golden hair; as if he
pictured to himself that it might have been already
tinged with grey.
"You know that your parents had no great
possession, and that what they had was secured to your
mother and to you. There has been no new discovery, of
money, or of any other property; but--"
He felt his wrist held closer, and he stopped. The
expression in the forehead, which had so particularly
attracted his notice, and which was now immovable, had
deepened into one of pain and horror.
"But he has been-been found. He is alive. Greatly
changed, it is too probable; almost a wreck, it is
possible; though we will hope the best. Still, alive.
Your father has been taken to the house of an old servant
in Paris, and we are going there: I, to identify him if I
can: you, to restore him to life, love, duty, rest,
comfort."
A shiver ran through her frame, and from it through
his. She said, in a low, distinct, awe-stricken voice, as
if she were saying it in a dream,
"I am going to see his Ghost! It will be his
Ghost--not him!"
Mr. Lorry quietly chafed the hands that held his
arm. "There, there, there! See now, see now! The best and
the worst are known to you, now. You are well on your way
to the poor wronged gentleman, and, with a fair sea
voyage, and a fair land journey, you will be soon at his
dear side."
She repeated in the same tone, sunk to a whisper,
"I have been free, I have been happy, yet his Ghost has
never haunted me!"
"Only one thing more," said Mr. Lorry, laying
stress upon it as a wholesome means of enforcing her
attention: "he has been found under another name; his
own, long forgotten or long concealed. It would be worse
than useless now to inquire which; worse than useless to
seek to know whether he has been for years overlooked, or
always designedly held prisoner. It would be worse than
useless now to make any inquiries, because it would be
dangerous. Better not to mention the subject, anywhere or
in any way, and to remove him--for a while at all
events-- out of France. Even I, safe as an Englishman,
and even Tellson's, important as they are to French
credit, avoid all naming of the matter. I carry about me,
not a scrap of writing openly referring to it. This is a
secret service altogether. My credentials, entries, and
memoranda, are all comprehended in the one line,
`Recalled to Life;' which may mean anything. But what is
the matter! She doesn't notice a word! Miss
Manette!"
Perfectly still and silent, and not even fallen
back in her chair, she sat under his hand, utterly
insensible; with her eyes open and fixed upon him, and
with that last expression looking as if it were carved or
branded into her forehead. So close was her hold upon his
arm, that he feared to detach himself lest he should hurt
her; therefore he called out loudly for assistance
without moving.
A wild-looking woman, whom even in his agitation,
Mr. Lorry observed to be all of a red colour, and to have
red hair, and to be dressed in some extraordinary
tight-fitting fashion, and to have on her head a most
wonderful bonnet like a Grenadier wooden measure, and
good measure too, or a great Stilton cheese, came running
into the room in advance of the inn servants, and soon
settled the question of his detachment from the poor
young lady, by laying a brawny hand upon his chest, and
sending him flying back against the nearest wall.
("I really think this must be a man!" was Mr.
Lorry's breathless reflection, simultaneously with his
coming against the wall.)
"Why, look at you all!" bawled this figure,
addressing the inn servants. "Why don't you go and fetch
things, instead of standing there staring at me? I am not
so much to look at, am I? Why don't you go and fetch
things? I'll let you know, if you don't bring
smelling-salts, cold water, and vinegar, quick, I
will."
There was an immediate dispersal for these
restoratives, and she softly laid the patient on a sofa,
and tended her with great skill and gentleness: calling
her "my precious!" and "my bird!" and spreading her
golden hair aside over her shoulders with great pride and
care.
"And you in brown!" she said, indignantly turning
to Mr. Lorry; couldn't you tell her what you had to tell
her, without frightening her to death? Look at her, with
her pretty pale face and her cold hands. Do you call THAT
being a Banker?"
Mr. Lorry was so exceedingly disconcerted by a
question so hard to answer, that he could only look on,
at a distance, with much feebler sympathy and humility,
while the strong woman, having banished the inn servants
under the mysterious penalty of "letting them know"
something not mentioned if they stayed there, staring,
recovered her charge by a regular series of gradations,
and coaxed her to lay her drooping head upon her
shoulder.
"I hope she will do well now," said Mr.
Lorry.
"No thanks to you in brown, if she does. My darling
pretty!"
"I hope," said Mr. Lorry, after another pause of
feeble sympathy and humility, "that you accompany Miss
Manette to France?"
"A likely thing, too!" replied the strong woman.
"If it was ever intended that I should go across salt
water, do you suppose Providence would have cast my lot
in an island?"
This being another question hard to answer, Mr.
Jarvis Lorry withdrew to consider it.
V
The Wine-shop
A large cask of wine had been dropped and broken,
in the street. The accident had happened in getting it
out of a cart; the cask had tumbled out with a run, the
hoops had burst, and it lay on the stones just outside
the door of the wine-shop, shattered like a
walnut-shell.
All the people within reach had suspended their
business, or their idleness, to run to the spot and drink
the wine. The rough, irregular stones of the street,
pointing every way, and designed, one might have thought,
expressly to lame all living creatures that approached
them, had dammed it into little pools; these were
surrounded, each by its own jostling group or crowd,
according to its size. Some men kneeled down, made scoops
of their two hands joined, and sipped, or tried to help
women, who bent over their shoulders, to sip, before the
wine had all run out between their fingers. Others, men
and women, dipped in the puddles with little mugs of
mutilated earthenware, or even with handkerchiefs from
women's heads, which were squeezed dry into infants'
mouths; others made small mud- embankments, to stem the
wine as it ran; others, directed by lookers-on up at high
windows, darted here and there, to cut off little streams
of wine that started away in new directions; others
devoted themselves to the sodden and lee-dyed pieces of
the cask, licking, and even champing the moister
wine-rotted fragments with eager relish. There was no
drainage to carry off the wine, and not only did it all
get taken up, but so much mud got taken up along with it,
that there might have been a scavenger in the street, if
anybody acquainted with it could have believed in such a
miraculous presence.
A shrill sound of laughter and of amused
voices--voices of men, women, and children--resounded in
the street while this wine game lasted. There was little
roughness in the sport, and much playfulness. There was a
special companionship in it, an observable inclination on
the part of every one to join some other one, which led,
especially among the luckier or lighter-hearted, to
frolicsome embraces, drinking of healths, shaking of
hands, and even joining of hands and dancing, a dozen
together. When the wine was gone, and the places where it
had been most abundant were raked into a gridiron-pattern
by fingers, these demonstrations ceased, as suddenly as
they had broken out. The man who had left his saw
sticking in the firewood he was cutting, set it in motion
again; the women who had left on a door-step the little
pot of hot ashes, at which she had been trying to soften
the pain in her own starved fingers and toes, or in those
of her child, returned to it; men with bare arms, matted
locks, and cadaverous faces, who had emerged into the
winter light from cellars, moved away, to descend again;
and a gloom gathered on the scene that appeared more
natural to it than sunshine.
The wine was red wine, and had stained the ground
of the narrow street in the suburb of Saint Antoine, in
Paris, where it was spilled. It had stained many hands,
too, and many faces, and many naked feet, and many wooden
shoes. The hands of the man who sawed the wood, left red
marks on the billets; and the forehead of the woman who
nursed her baby, was stained with the stain of the old
rag she wound about her head again. Those who had been
greedy with the staves of the cask, had acquired a
tigerish smear about the mouth; and one tall joker so
besmirched, his head more out of a long squalid bag of a
nightcap than in it, scrawled upon a wall with his finger
dipped in muddy wine-lees--BLOOD.
The time was to come, when that wine too would be
spilled on the street-stones, and when the stain of it
would be red upon many there.
And now that the cloud settled on Saint Antoine,
which a momentary gleam had driven from his sacred
countenance, the darkness of it was heavy-cold, dirt,
sickness, ignorance, and want, were the lords in waiting
on the saintly presence-nobles of great power all of
them; but, most especially the last. Samples of a people
that had undergone a terrible grinding and regrinding in
the mill, and certainly not in the fabulous mill which
ground old people young, shivered at every corner, passed
in and out at every doorway, looked from every window,
fluttered in every vestige of a garment that the wind
shook. The mill which had worked them down, was the mill
that grinds young people old; the children had ancient
faces and grave voices; and upon them, and upon the grown
faces, and ploughed into every furrow of age and coming
up afresh, was the sigh, Hunger. It was prevalent
everywhere. Hunger was pushed out of the tall houses, in
the wretched clothing that hung upon poles and lines;
Hunger was patched into them with straw and rag and wood
and paper; Hunger was repeated in every fragment of the
small modicum of firewood that the man sawed off; Hunger
stared down from the smokeless chimneys, and started up
from the filthy street that had no offal, among its
refuse, of anything to eat. Hunger was the inscription on
the baker's shelves, written in every small loaf of his
scanty stock of bad bread; at the sausage-shop, in every
dead-dog preparation that was offered for sale. Hunger
rattled its dry bones among the roasting chestnuts in the
turned cylinder; Hunger was shred into atomics in every
farthing porringer of husky chips of potato, fried with
some reluctant drops of oil.
Its abiding place was in all things fitted to it. A
narrow winding street, full of offence and stench, with
other narrow winding streets diverging, all peopled by
rags and nightcaps, and all smelling of rags and
nightcaps, and all visible things with a brooding look
upon them that looked ill. In the hunted air of the
people there was yet some wild-beast thought of the
possibility of turning at bay. Depressed and slinking
though they were, eyes of fire were not wanting among
them; nor compressed lips, white with what they
suppressed; nor foreheads knitted into the likeness of
the gallows-rope they mused about enduring, or
inflicting. The trade signs (and they were almost as many
as the shops) were, all, grim illustrations of Want. The
butcher and the porkman painted up, only the leanest
scrags of meat; the baker, the coarsest of meagre loaves.
The people rudely pictured as drinking in the wine-shops,
croaked over their scanty measures of thin wine and beer,
and were gloweringly confidential together. Nothing was
represented in a flourishing condition, save tools and
weapons; but, the cutler's knives and axes were sharp and
bright, the smith's hammers were heavy, and the
gunmaker's stock was murderous. The crippling stones of
the pavement, with their many little reservoirs of mud
and water, had no footways, but broke off abruptly at the
doors. The kennel, to make amends, ran down the middle of
the street--when it ran at all: which was only after
heavy rains, and then it ran, by many eccentric fits,
into the houses. Across the streets, at wide intervals,
one clumsy lamp was slung by a rope and pulley; at night,
when the lamplighter had let these down, and lighted, and
hoisted them again, a feeble grove of dim wicks swung in
a sickly manner overhead, as if they were at sea. Indeed
they were at sea, and the ship and crew were in peril of
tempest.
For, the time was to come, when the gaunt
scarecrows of that region should have watched the
lamplighter, in their idleness and hunger, so long, as to
conceive the idea of improving on his method, and hauling
up men by those ropes and pulleys, to flare upon the
darkness of their condition. But, the time was not come
yet; and every wind that blew over France shook the rags
of the scarecrows in vain, for the birds, fine of song
and feather, took no warning.
The wine-shop was a corner shop, better than most
others in its appearance and degree, and the master of
the wine-shop had stood outside it, in a yellow waistcoat
and green breeches, looking on at the struggle for the
lost wine. "It's not my affair," said he, with a final
shrug of the shoulders. "The people from the market did
it. Ut them bring another."
There, his eyes happening to catch the tall joker
writing up his joke, he called to him across the
way:
"Say, then, my Gaspard, what do you do
there?"
The fellow pointed to his joke with immense
significance, as is often the way with his tribe. It
missed its mark, and completely failed, as is often the
way with his tribe too.
"What now? Are you a subject for the mad hospital?"
said the wine-shop keeper, crossing the road, and
obliterating the jest with a handful of mud, picked up
for the purpose, and smeared over it. "Why do you write
in the public streets? Is there--tell me thou--is there
no other place to write such words in?"
In his expostulation he dropped his cleaner hand
(perhaps accidentally, perhaps not) upon the joker's
heart. The joker rapped it with his own, took a nimble
spring upward, and came down in a fantastic dancing
attitude, with one of his stained shoes jerked off his
foot into his hand, and held out. A joker of an
extremely, not to say wolfishly practical character, he
looked, under those circumstances.
"Put it on, put it on," said the other. "Call wine,
wine; and finish there." With that advice, he wiped his
soiled hand upon the joker's dress, such as it was--quite
deliberately, as having dirtied the hand on his account;
and then recrossed the road and entered the
wine-shop.
This wine-shop keeper was a bull-necked,
martial-looking man of thirty, and he should have been of
a hot temperament, for, although it was a bitter day, he
wore no coat, but carried one slung over his shoulder.
His shirt-sleeves were rolled up, too, and his brown arms
were bare to the elbows. Neither did he wear anything
more on his head than his own crisply-curling short dark
hair. He was a dark man altogether, with good eyes and a
good bold breadth between them. Good-humoured looking on
the whole, but implacable-looking, too; evidently a man
of a strong resolution and a set purpose; a man not
desirable to be met, rushing down a narrow pass with a
gulf on either side, for nothing would turn the
man.
Madame Defarge, his wife, sat in the shop behind
the counter as he came in. Madame Defarge was a stout
woman of about his own age, with a watchful eye that
seldom seemed to look at anything, a large hand heavily
ringed, a steady face, strong features, and great
composure of manner. There was a character about Madame
Defarge, from which one might have predicated that she
did not often make mistakes against herself in any of the
reckonings over which she presided. Madame Defarge being
sensitive to cold, was wrapped in fur, and had a quantity
of bright shawl twined about her head, though not to the
concealment of her large earrings. Her knitting was
before her, but she had laid it down to pick her teeth
with a toothpick. Thus engaged, with her right elbow
supported by her left hand, Madame Defarge said nothing
when her lord came in, but coughed just one grain of
cough. This, in combination with the lifting of her
darkly defined eyebrows over her toothpick by the breadth
of a line, suggested to her husband that he would do well
to look round the shop among the customers, for any new
customer who had dropped in while he stepped over the
way.
The wine-shop keeper accordingly rolled his eyes
about, until they rested upon an elderly gentleman and a
young lady, who were seated in a corner. Other company
were there: two playing cards, two playing dominoes,
three standing by the counter lengthening out a short
supply of wine. As he passed behind the counter, he took
notice that the elderly gentleman said in a look to the
young lady, "This is our man."
"What the devil do YOU do in that galley there?"
said Monsieur Defarge to himself; "I don't know
you."
But, he feigned not to notice the two strangers,
and fell into discourse with the triumvirate of customers
who were drinking at the counter.
"How goes it, Jacques?" said one of these three to
Monsieur Defarge. "Is all the spilt wine
swallowed?"
"Every drop, Jacques," answered Monsieur
Defarge.
When this interchange of Christian name was
effected, Madame Defarge, picking her teeth with her
toothpick, coughed another grain of cough, and raised her
eyebrows by the breadth of another line.
"It is not often," said the second of the three,
addressing Monsieur Defarge, "that many of these
miserable beasts know the taste of wine, or of anything
but black bread and death. Is it not so, Jacques?"
"It is so, Jacques," Monsieur Defarge
returned.
At this second interchange of the Christian name,
Madame Defarge, still using her toothpick with profound
composure, coughed another grain of cough, and raised her
eyebrows by the breadth of another line.
The last of the three now said his say, as he put
down his empty drinking vessel and smacked his
lips.
"Ah! So much the worse! A bitter taste it is that
such poor cattle always have in their mouths, and hard
lives they live, Jacques. Am I right, Jacques?"
"You are right, Jacques," was the response of
Monsieur Defarge.
This third interchange of the Christian name was
completed at the moment when Madame Defarge put her
toothpick by, kept her eyebrows up, and slightly rustled
in her seat.
"Hold then! True!" muttered her husband.
"Gentlemen--my wife!"
The three customers pulled off their hats to Madame
Defarge, with three flourishes. She acknowledged their
homage by bending her head, and giving them a quick look.
Then she glanced in a casual manner round the wine-shop,
took up her knitting with great apparent calmness and
repose of spirit, and became absorbed in it.
"Gentlemen," said her husband, who had kept his
bright eye observantly upon her, "good day. The chamber,
furnished bachelor- fashion, that you wished to see, and
were inquiring for when I stepped out, is on the fifth
floor. The doorway of the staircase gives on the little
courtyard close to the left here," pointing with his
hand, "near to the window of my establishment. But, now
that I remember, one of you has already been there, and
can show the way. Gentlemen, adieu!"
They paid for their wine, and left the place. The
eyes of Monsieur Defarge were studying his wife at her
knitting when the elderly gentleman advanced from his
corner, and begged the favour of a word.
"Willingly, sir," said Monsieur Defarge, and
quietly stepped with him to the door.
Their conference was very short, but very decided.
Almost at the first word, Monsieur Defarge started and
became deeply attentive. It had not lasted a minute, when
he nodded and went out. The gentleman then beckoned to
the young lady, and they, too, went out. Madame Defarge
knitted with nimble fingers and steady eyebrows, and saw
nothing.
Mr. Jarvis Lorry and Miss Manette, emerging from
the wine-shop thus, joined Monsieur Defarge in the
doorway to which he had directed his own company just
before. It opened from a stinking little black courtyard,
and was the general public entrance to a great pile of
houses, inhabited by a great number of people. In the
gloomy tile- paved entry to the gloomy tile-paved
staircase, Monsieur Defarge bent down on one knee to the
child of his old master, and put her hand to his lips. It
was a gentle action, but not at all gently done; a very
remarkable transformation had come over him in a few
seconds. He had no good-humour in his face, nor any
openness of aspect left, but had become a secret, angry,
dangerous man.
"It is very high; it is a little difficult. Better
to begin slowly." Thus, Monsieur Defarge, in a stem
voice, to Mr. Lorry, as they began ascending the
stairs.
"Is he alone?" the latter whispered.
"Alone! God help him, who should be with him!" said
the other, in the same low voice.
"Is he always alone, then?"
"Yes."
"Of his own desire?"
"Of his own necessity. As he was, when I first saw
him after they found me and demanded to know if I would
take him, and, at my peril be discreet--as he was then,
so he is now."
"He is greatly changed?"
"Changed!"
The keeper of the wine-shop stopped to strike the
wall with his hand, and mutter a tremendous curse. No
direct answer could have been half so forcible. Mr.
Lorry's spirits grew heavier and heavier, as he and his
two companions ascended higher and higher.
Such a staircase, with its accessories, in the
older and more crowded parts of Paris, would be bad
enough now; but, at that time, it was vile indeed to
unaccustomed and unhardened senses. Every little
habitation within the great foul nest of one high
building--that is to say, the room or rooms within every
door that opened on the general staircase--left its own
heap of refuse on its own landing, besides flinging other
refuse from its own windows. The uncontrollable and
hopeless mass of decomposition so engendered, would have
polluted the air, even if poverty and deprivation had not
loaded it with their intangible impurities; the two bad
sources combined made it almost insupportable. Through
such an atmosphere, by a steep dark shaft of dirt and
poison, the way lay. Yielding to his own disturbance of
mind, and to his young companion's agitation, which
became greater every instant, Mr. Jarvis Lorry twice
stopped to rest. Each of these stoppages was made at a
doleful grating, by which any languishing good airs that
were left uncorrupted, seemed to escape, and all spoilt
and sickly vapours seemed to crawl in. Through the rusted
bars, tastes, rather than glimpses, were caught of the
jumbled neighbourhood; and nothing within range, nearer
or lower than the summits of the two great towers of
Notre-Dame, had any promise on it of healthy life or
wholesome aspirations.
At last, the top of the staircase was gained, and
they stopped for the third time. There was yet an upper
staircase, of a steeper inclination and of contracted
dimensions, to be ascended, before the garret story was
reached. The keeper of the wine-shop, always going a
little in advance, and always going on the side which Mr.
Lorry took, as though he dreaded to be asked any question
by the young lady, turned himself about here, and,
carefully feeling in the pockets of the coat he carried
over his shoulder, took out a key.
"The door is locked then, my friend?" said Mr.
Lorry, surprised.
"Ay. Yes," was the grim reply of Monsieur
Defarge.
"You think it necessary to keep the unfortunate
gentleman so retired?"
"I think it necessary to turn the key." Monsieur
Defarge whispered it closer in his ear, and frowned
heavily.
"Why?"
"Why! Because he has lived so long, locked up, that
he would be frightened-rave-tear himself to
pieces-die-come to I know not what harm--if his door was
left open."
"Is it possible!" exclaimed Mr. Lorry.
"Is it possible!" repeated Defarge, bitterly. "Yes.
And a beautiful world we live in, when it IS possible,
and when many other such things are possible, and not
only possible, but done--done, see you!--under that sky
there, every day. Long live the Devil. Let us go
on."
This dialogue had been held in so very low a
whisper, that not a word of it had reached the young
lady's ears. But, by this time she trembled under such
strong emotion, and her face expressed such deep anxiety,
and, above all, such dread and terror, that Mr. Lorry
felt it incumbent on him to speak a word or two of
reassurance.
"Courage, dear miss! Courage! Business! The worst
will be over in a moment; it is but passing the
room-door, and the worst is over. Then, all the good you
bring to him, all the relief, all the happiness you bring
to him, begin. Let our good friend here, assist you on
that side. That's well, friend Defarge. Come, now.
Business, business!"
They went up slowly and softly. The staircase was
short, and they were soon at the top. There, as it had an
abrupt turn in it, they came all at once in sight of
three men, whose heads were bent down close together at
the side of a door, and who were intently looking into
the room to which the door belonged, through some chinks
or holes in the wall. On hearing footsteps close at hand,
these three turned, and rose, and showed themselves to be
the three of one name who had been drinking in the
wine-shop.
"I forgot them in the surprise of your visit,"
explained Monsieur Defarge. "Leave us, good boys; we have
business here."
The three glided by, and went silently down.
There appearing to be no other door on that floor,
and the keeper of the wine-shop going straight to this
one when they were left alone, Mr. Lorry asked him in a
whisper, with a little anger:
"Do you make a show of Monsieur Manette?"
"I show him, in the way you have seen, to a chosen
few."
"Is that well?"
"_I_ think it is well."
"Who are the few? How do you choose them?"
"I choose them as real men, of my name--Jacques is
my name--to whom the sight is likely to do good. Enough;
you are English; that is another thing. Stay there, if
you please, a little moment."
With an admonitory gesture to keep them back, he
stooped, and looked in through the crevice in the wall.
Soon raising his head again, he struck twice or thrice
upon the door--evidently with no other object than to
make a noise there. With the same intention, he drew the
key across it, three or four times, before he put it
clumsily into the lock, and turned it as heavily as he
could.
The door slowly opened inward under his hand, and
he looked into the room and said something. A faint voice
answered something. Little more than a single syllable
could have been spoken on either side.
He looked back over his shoulder, and beckoned them
to enter. Mr. Lorry got his arm securely round the
daughter's waist, and held her; for he felt that she was
sinking.
"A-a-a-business, business!" he urged, with a
moisture that was not of business shining on his cheek.
"Come in, come in!"
"I am afraid of it," she answered,
shuddering.
"Of it? What?"
"I mean of him. Of my father."
Rendered in a manner desperate, by her state and by
the beckoning of their conductor, he drew over his neck
the arm that shook upon his shoulder, lifted her a
little, and hurried her into the room. He sat her down
just within the door, and held her, clinging to
him.
Defarge drew out the key, closed the door, locked
it on the inside, took out the key again, and held it in
his hand. All this he did, methodically, and with as loud
and harsh an accompaniment of noise as he could make.
Finally, he walked across the room with a measured tread
to where the window was. He stopped there, and faced
round.
The garret, built to be a depository for firewood
and the like, was dim and dark: for, the window of dormer
shape, was in truth a door in the roof, with a little
crane over it for the hoisting up of stores from the
street: unglazed, and closing up the middle in two
pieces, like any other door of French construction. To
exclude the cold, one half of this door was fast closed,
and the other was opened but a very little way. Such a
scanty portion of light was admitted through these means,
that it was difficult, on first coming in, to see
anything; and long habit alone could have slowly formed
in any one, the ability to do any work requiring nicety
in such obscurity. Yet, work of that kind was being done
in the garret; for, with his back towards the door, and
his face towards the window where the keeper of the
wine-shop stood looking at him, a white-haired man sat on
a low bench, stooping forward and very busy, making
shoes.
VI
The Shoemaker
"Good day!" said Monsieur Defarge, looking down at
the white head that bent low over the shoemaking.
It was raised for a moment, and a very faint voice
responded to the salutation, as if it were at a
distance:
"Good day!"
"You are still hard at work, I see?"
After a long silence, the head was lifted for
another moment, and the voice replied, "Yes--I am
working." This time, a pair of haggard eyes had looked at
the questioner, before the face had dropped again.
The faintness of the voice was pitiable and
dreadful. It was not the faintness of physical weakness,
though confinement and hard fare no doubt had their part
in it. Its deplorable peculiarity was, that it was the
faintness of solitude and disuse. It was like the last
feeble echo of a sound made long and long ago. So
entirely had it lost the life and resonance of the human
voice, that it affected the senses like a once beautiful
colour faded away into a poor weak stain. So sunken and
suppressed it was, that it was like a voice underground.
So expressive it was, of a hopeless and lost creature,
that a famished traveller, wearied out by lonely
wandering in a wilderness, would have remembered home and
friends in such a tone before lying down to die.
Some minutes of silent work had passed: and the
haggard eyes had looked up again: not with any interest
or curiosity, but with a dull mechanical perception,
beforehand, that the spot where the only visitor they
were aware of had stood, was not yet empty.
"I want," said Defarge, who had not removed his
gaze from the shoemaker, "to let in a little more light
here. You can bear a little more?"
The shoemaker stopped his work; looked with a
vacant air of listening, at the floor on one side of him;
then similarly, at the floor on the other side of him;
then, upward at the speaker.
"What did you say?"
"You can bear a little more light?"
"I must bear it, if you let it in." (Laying the
palest shadow of a stress upon the second word.)
The opened half-door was opened a little further,
and secured at that angle for the time. A broad ray of
light fell into the garret, and showed the workman with
an unfinished shoe upon his lap, pausing in his labour.
His few common tools and various scraps of leather were
at his feet and on his bench. He had a white beard,
raggedly cut, but not very long, a hollow face, and
exceedingly bright eyes. The hollowness and thinness of
his face would have caused them to look large, under his
yet dark eyebrows and his confused white hair, though
they had been really otherwise; but, they were naturally
large, and looked unnaturally so. His yellow rags of
shirt lay open at the throat, and showed his body to be
withered and worn. He, and his old canvas frock, and his
loose stockings, and all his poor tatters of clothes,
had, in a long seclusion from direct light and air, faded
down to such a dull uniformity of parchment-yellow, that
it would have been hard to say which was which.
He had put up a hand between his eyes and the
light, and the very bones of it seemed transparent. So he
sat, with a steadfastly vacant gaze, pausing in his work.
He never looked at the figure before him, without first
looking down on this side of himself, then on that, as if
he had lost the habit of associating place with sound; he
never spoke, without first wandering in this manner, and
forgetting to speak.
"Are you going to finish that pair of shoes
to-day?" asked Defarge, motioning to Mr. Lorry to come
forward.
"What did you say?"
"Do you mean to finish that pair of shoes
to-day?"
"I can't say that I mean to. I suppose so. I don't
know."
But, the question reminded him of his work, and he
bent over it again.
Mr. Lorry came silently forward, leaving the
daughter by the door. When he had stood, for a minute or
two, by the side of Defarge, the shoemaker looked up. He
showed no surprise at seeing another figure, but the
unsteady fingers of one of his hands strayed to his lips
as he looked at it (his lips and his nails were of the
same pale lead- colour), and then the hand dropped to his
work, and he once more bent over the shoe. The look and
the action had occupied but an instant.
"You have a visitor, you see," said Monsieur
Defarge.
"What did you say?"
"Here is a visitor."
The shoemaker looked up as before, but without
removing a hand from his work.
"Come!" said Defarge. "Here is monsieur, who knows
a well-made shoe when he sees one. Show him that shoe you
are working at. Take it, monsieur."
Mr. Lorry took it in his hand.
"Tell monsieur what kind of shoe it is, and the
maker's name."
There was a longer pause than usual, before the
shoemaker replied:
"I forget what it was you asked me. What did you
say?"
"I said, couldn't you describe the kind of shoe,
for monsieur's information?"
"It is a lady's shoe. It is a young lady's
walking-shoe. It is in the present mode. I never saw the
mode. I have had a pattern in my hand." He glanced at the
shoe with some little passing touch of pride.
"And the maker's name?" said Defarge.
Now that he had no work to hold, he laid the
knuckles of the right hand in the hollow of the left, and
then the knuckles of the left hand in the hollow of the
right, and then passed a hand across his bearded chin,
and so on in regular changes, without a moment's
intermission. The task of recalling him from the vagrancy
into which he always sank when he had spoken, was like
recalling some very weak person from a swoon, or
endeavouring, in the hope of some disclosure, to stay the
spirit of a fast-dying man.
"Did you ask me for my name?"
"Assuredly I did."
"One Hundred and Five, North Tower."
"Is that all?"
"One Hundred and Five, North Tower."
With a weary sound that was not a sigh, nor a
groan, he bent to work again, until the silence was again
broken.
"You are not a shoemaker by trade?" said Mr. Lorry,
looking steadfastly at him.
His haggard eyes turned to Defarge as if he would
have transferred the question to him: but as no help came
from that quarter, they turned back on the questioner
when they had sought the ground.
"I am not a shoemaker by trade? No, I was not a
shoemaker by trade. I-I learnt it here. I taught myself.
I asked leave to--"
He lapsed away, even for minutes, ringing those
measured changes on his hands the whole time. His eyes
came slowly back, at last, to the face from which they
had wandered; when they rested on it, he started, and
resumed, in the manner of a sleeper that moment awake,
reverting to a subject of last night.
"I asked leave to teach myself, and I got it with
much difficulty after a long while, and I have made shoes
ever since."
As he held out his hand for the shoe that had been
taken from him, Mr. Lorry said, still looking steadfastly
in his face:
"Monsieur Manette, do you remember nothing of
me?"
The shoe dropped to the ground, and he sat looking
fixedly at the questioner.
"Monsieur Manette"; Mr. Lorry laid his hand upon
Defarge's arm; "do you remember nothing of this man? Look
at him. Look at me. Is there no old banker, no old
business, no old servant, no old time, rising in your
mind, Monsieur Manette?"
As the captive of many years sat looking fixedly,
by turns, at Mr. Lorry and at Defarge, some long
obliterated marks of an actively intent intelligence in
the middle of the forehead, gradually forced themselves
through the black mist that had fallen on him. They were
overclouded again, they were fainter, they were gone; but
they had been there. And so exactly was the expression
repeated on the fair young face of her who had crept
along the wall to a point where she could see him, and
where she now stood looking at him, with hands which at
first had been only raised in frightened compassion, if
not even to keep him off and shut out the sight of him,
but which were now extending towards him, trembling with
eagerness to lay the spectral face upon her warm young
breast, and love it back to life and hope--so exactly was
the expression repeated (though in stronger characters)
on her fair young face, that it looked as though it had
passed like a moving light, from him to her.
Darkness had fatten on him in its place. He looked
at the two, less and less attentively, and his eyes in
gloomy abstraction sought the ground and looked about him
in the old way. Finally, with a deep long sigh, he took
the shoe up, and resumed his work.
"Have you recognised him, monsieur?" asked Defarge
in a whisper.
"Yes; for a moment. At first I thought it quite
hopeless, but I have unquestionably seen, for a single
moment, the face that I once knew so well. Hush! Let us
draw further back. Hush!"
She had moved from the wall of the garret, very
near to the bench on which he sat. There was something
awful in his unconsciousness of the figure that could
have put out its hand and touched him as he stooped over
his labour.
Not a word was spoken, not a sound was made. She
stood, like a spirit, beside him, and he bent over his
work.
It happened, at length, that he had occasion to
change the instrument in his hand, for his shoemaker's
knife. It lay on that side of him which was not the side
on which she stood. He had taken it up, and was stooping
to work again, when his eyes caught the skirt of her
dress. He raised them, and saw her face. The two
spectators started forward, but she stayed them with a
motion of her hand. She had no fear of his striking at
her with the knife, though they had.
He stared at her with a fearful look, and after a
while his lips began to form some words, though no sound
proceeded from them. By degrees, in the pauses of his
quick and laboured breathing, he was heard to say:
"What is this?"
With the tears streaming down her face, she put her
two hands to her lips, and kissed them to him; then
clasped them on her breast, as if she laid his ruined
head there.
"You are not the gaoler's daughter?"
She sighed "No."
"Who are you?"
Not yet trusting the tones of her voice, she sat
down on the bench beside him. He recoiled, but she laid
her hand upon his arm. A strange thrill struck him when
she did so, and visibly passed over his frame; he laid
the knife down' softly, as he sat staring at her.
Her golden hair, which she wore in long curls, had
been hurriedly pushed aside, and fell down over her neck.
Advancing his hand by little and little, he took it up
and looked at it. In the midst of the action he went
astray, and, with another deep sigh, fell to work at his
shoemaking.
But not for long. Releasing his arm, she laid her
hand upon his shoulder. After looking doubtfully at it,
two or three times, as if to be sure that it was really
there, he laid down his work, put his hand to his neck,
and took off a blackened string with a scrap of folded
rag attached to it. He opened this, carefully, on his
knee, and it contained a very little quantity of hair:
not more than one or two long golden hairs, which he had,
in some old day, wound off upon his finger.
He took her hair into his hand again, and looked
closely at it. "It is the same. How can it be! When was
it! How was it!"
As the concentrated expression returned to his
forehead, he seemed to become conscious that it was in
hers too. He turned her full to the light, and looked at
her.
"She had laid her head upon my shoulder, that night
when I was summoned out--she had a fear of my going,
though I had none--and when I was brought to the North
Tower they found these upon my sleeve. 'You will leave me
them? They can never help me to escape in the body,
though they may in the spirit.' Those were the words I
said. I remember them very well."
He formed this speech with his lips many times
before he could utter it. But when he did find spoken
words for it, they came to him coherently, though
slowly.
"How was this?--WAS IT YOU?"
Once more, the two spectators started, as he turned
upon her with a frightful suddenness. But she sat
perfectly still in his grasp, and only said, in a low
voice, "I entreat you, good gentlemen, do not come near
us, do not speak, do not move!"
"Hark!" he exclaimed. "Whose voice was
that?"
His hands released her as he uttered this cry, and
went up to his white hair, which they tore in a frenzy.
It died out, as everything but his shoemaking did die out
of him, and he refolded his little packet and tried to
secure it in his breast; but he still looked at her, and
gloomily shook his head.
"No, no, no; you are too young, too blooming. It
can't be. See what the prisoner is. These are not the
hands she knew, this is not the face she knew, this is
not a voice she ever heard. No, no. She was--and He
was--before the slow years of the North Tower--ages ago.
What is your name, my gentle angel?"
Hailing his softened tone and manner, his daughter
fell upon her knees before him, with her appealing hands
upon his breast.
"O, sir, at another time you shall know my name,
and who my mother was, and who my father, and how I never
knew their hard, hard history. But I cannot tell you at
this time, and I cannot tell you here. All that I may
tell you, here and now, is, that I pray to you to touch
me and to bless me. Kiss me, kiss me! O my dear, my
dear!"
His cold white head mingled with her radiant hair,
which warmed and lighted it as though it were the light
of Freedom shining on him.
"If you hear in my voice--I don't know that it is
so, but I hope it is--if you hear in my voice any
resemblance to a voice that once was sweet music in your
ears, weep for it, weep for it! If you touch, in touching
my hair, anything that recalls a beloved head that lay on
your breast when you were young and free, weep for it,
weep for it! If, when I hint to you of a Home that is
before us, where I will be true to you with all my duty
and with all my faithful service, I bring back the
remembrance of a Home long desolate, while your poor
heart pined away, weep for it, weep for it!"
She held him closer round the neck, and rocked him
on her breast like a child.
"If, when I tell you, dearest dear, that your agony
is over, and that I have come here to take you from it,
and that we go to England to be at peace and at rest, I
cause you to think of your useful life laid waste, and of
our native France so wicked to you, weep for it, weep for
it! And if, when I shall tell you of my name, and of my
father who is living, and of my mother who is dead, you
learn that I have to kneel to my honoured father, and
implore his pardon for having never for his sake striven
all day and lain awake and wept all night, because the
love of my poor mother hid his torture from me, weep for
it, weep for it! Weep for her, then, and for me! Good
gentlemen, thank God! I feel his sacred tears upon my
face, and his sobs strike against my heart. O, see! Thank
God for us, thank God!"
He had sunk in her arms, and his face dropped on
her breast: a sight so touching, yet so terrible in the
tremendous wrong and suffering which had gone before it,
that the two beholders covered their faces.
When the quiet of the garret had been long
undisturbed, and his heaving breast and shaken form had
long yielded to the calm that must follow all
storms--emblem to humanity, of the rest and silence into
which the storm called Life must hush at last--they came
forward to raise the father and daughter from the ground.
He had gradually dropped to the floor, and lay there in a
lethargy, worn out. She had nestled down with him, that
his head might lie upon her arm; and her hair drooping
over him curtained him from the light.
"If, without disturbing him," she said, raising her
hand to Mr. Lorry as he stooped over them, after repeated
blowings of his nose, "all could be arranged for our
leaving Paris at once, so that, from the, very door, he
could be taken away--"
"But, consider. Is he fit for the journey?" asked
Mr. Lorry.
"More fit for that, I think, than to remain in this
city, so dreadful to him."
"It is true," said Defarge, who was kneeling to
look on and hear. "More than that; Monsieur Manette is,
for all reasons, best out of France. Say, shall I hire a
carriage and post-horses?"
"That's business," said Mr. Lorry, resuming on the
shortest notice his methodical manners; "and if business
is to be done, I had better do it."
"Then be so kind," urged Miss Manette, "as to leave
us here. You see how composed he has become, and you
cannot be afraid to leave him with me now. Why should you
be? If you will lock the door to secure us from
interruption, I do not doubt that you will find him, when
you come back, as quiet as you leave him. In any case, I
will take care of him until you return, and then we will
remove him straight."
Both Mr. Lorry and Defarge were rather disinclined
to this course, and in favour of one of them remaining.
But, as there were not only carriage and horses to be
seen to, but travelling papers; and as time pressed, for
the day was drawing to an end, it came at last to their
hastily dividing the business that was necessary to be
done, and hurrying away to do it.
Then, as the darkness closed in, the daughter laid
her head down on the hard ground close at the father's
side, and watched him. The darkness deepened and
deepened, and they both lay quiet, until a light gleamed
through the chinks in the wall.
Mr. Lorry and Monsieur Defarge had made all ready
for the journey, and had brought with them, besides
travelling cloaks and wrappers, bread and meat, wine, and
hot coffee. Monsieur Defarge put this provender, and the
lamp he carried, on the shoemaker's bench (there was
nothing else in the garret but a pallet bed), and he and
Mr. Lorry roused the captive, and assisted him to his
feet.
No human intelligence could have read the mysteries
of his mind, in the scared blank wonder of his face.
Whether he knew what had happened, whether he recollected
what they had said to him, whether he knew that he was
free, were questions which no sagacity could have solved.
They tried speaking to him; but, he was so confused, and
so very slow to answer, that they took fright at his
bewilderment, and agreed for the time to tamper with him
no more. He had a wild, lost manner of occasionally
clasping his head in his hands, that had not been seen in
him before; yet, he had some pleasure in the mere sound
of his daughter's voice, and invariably turned to it when
she spoke.
In the submissive way of one long accustomed to
obey under coercion, he ate and drank what they gave him
to eat and drink, and put on the cloak and other
wrappings, that they gave him to wear. He readily
responded to his daughter's drawing her arm through his,
and took--and kept--her hand in both his own.
They began to descend; Monsieur Defarge going first
with the lamp, Mr. Lorry closing the little procession.
They had not traversed many steps of the long main
staircase when he stopped, and stared at the roof and
round at the wails.
"You remember the place, my father? You remember
coming up here?"
"What did you say?"
But, before she could repeat the question, he
murmured an answer as if she had repeated it.
"Remember? No, I don't remember. It was so very
long ago."
That he had no recollection whatever of his having
been brought from his prison to that house, was apparent
to them. They heard him mutter, "One Hundred and Five,
North Tower;" and when he looked about him, it evidently
was for the strong fortress-walls which had long
encompassed him. On their reaching the courtyard he
instinctively altered his tread, as being in expectation
of a drawbridge; and when there was no drawbridge, and he
saw the carriage waiting in the open street, he dropped
his daughter's hand and clasped his head again.
No crowd was about the door; no people were
discernible at any of the many windows; not even a chance
passerby was in the street. An unnatural silence and
desertion reigned there. Only one soul was to be seen,
and that was Madame Defarge--who leaned against the
door-post, knitting, and saw nothing.
The prisoner had got into a coach, and his daughter
had followed him, when Mr. Lorry's feet were arrested on
the step by his asking, miserably, for his shoemaking
tools and the unfinished shoes. Madame Defarge
immediately called to her husband that she would get
them, and went, knitting, out of the lamplight, through
the courtyard. She quickly brought them down and handed
them in;--and immediately afterwards leaned against the
door-post, knitting, and saw nothing.
Defarge got upon the box, and gave the word "To the
Barrier!" The postilion cracked his whip, and they
clattered away under the feeble over-swinging
lamps.
Under the over-swinging lamps--swinging ever
brighter in the better streets, and ever dimmer in the
worse--and by lighted shops, gay crowds, illuminated
coffee-houses, and theatre-doors, to one of the city
gates. Soldiers with lanterns, at the guard-house there.
"Your papers, travellers!" "See here then, Monsieur the
Officer," said Defarge, getting down, and taking him
gravely apart, "these are the papers of monsieur inside,
with the white head. They were consigned to me, with him,
at the--" He dropped his voice, there was a flutter among
the military lanterns, and one of them being handed into
the coach by an arm in uniform, the eyes connected with
the arm looked, not an every day or an every night look,
at monsieur with the white head. "It is well. Forward!"
from the uniform. "Adieu!" from Defarge. And so, under a
short grove of feebler and feebler over-swinging lamps,
out under the great grove of stars.
Beneath that arch of unmoved and eternal lights;
some, so remote from this little earth that the learned
tell us it is doubtful whether their rays have even yet
discovered it, as a point in space where anything is
suffered or done: the shadows of the night were broad and
black. All through the cold and restless interval, until
dawn, they once more whispered in the ears of Mr. Jarvis
Lorry--sitting opposite the buried man who had been dug
out, and wondering what subtle powers were for ever lost
to him, and what were capable of restoration--the old
inquiry:
"I hope you care to be recalled to life?"
And the old answer:
"I can't say."
The end of the first book.
Book the Second-the Golden Thread
I
Five Years Later
Tellson's Bank by Temple Bar was an old-fashioned
place, even in the year one thousand seven hundred and
eighty. It was very small, very dark, very ugly, very
incommodious. It was an old-fashioned place, moreover, in
the moral attribute that the partners in the House were
proud of its smallness, proud of its darkness, proud of
its ugliness, proud of its incommodiousness. They were
even boastful of its eminence in those particulars, and
were fired by an express conviction that, if it were less
objectionable, it would be less respectable. This was no
passive belief, but an active weapon which they flashed
at more convenient places of business. Tellson's (they
said) wanted no elbow-room, Tellson's wanted no light,
Tellson's wanted no embellishment. Noakes and Co.'s
might, or Snooks Brothers' might; but Tellson's, thank
Heaven!--
Any one of these partners would have disinherited
his son on the question of rebuilding Tellson's. In this
respect the House was much on a par with the Country;
which did very often disinherit its sons for suggesting
improvements in laws and customs that had long been
highly objectionable, but were only the more
respectable.
Thus it had come to pass, that Tellson's was the
triumphant perfection of inconvenience. After bursting
open a door of idiotic obstinacy with a weak rattle in
its throat, you fell into Tellson's down two steps, and
came to your senses in a miserable little shop, with two
little counters, where the oldest of men made your cheque
shake as if the wind rustled it, while they examined the
signature by the dingiest of windows, which were always
under a shower-bath of mud from Fleet-street, and which
were made the dingier by their own iron bars proper, and
the heavy shadow of Temple Bar. If your business
necessitated your seeing "the House," you were put into a
species of Condemned Hold at the back, where you
meditated on a misspent life, until the House came with
its bands in its pockets, and you could hardly blink at
it in the dismal twilight. Your money came out of, or
went into, wormy old wooden drawers, particles of which
flew up your nose and down your throat when they were
opened and shut. Your bank-notes had a musty odour, as if
they were fast decomposing into rags again. Your plate
was stowed away among the neighbouring cesspools, and
evil communications corrupted its good polish in a day or
two. Your deeds got into extemporised strong-rooms made
of kitchens and sculleries, and fretted all the fat out
of their parchments into the banking-house air. Your
lighter boxes of family papers went up-stairs into a
Barmecide room, that always had a great dining-table in
it and never had a dinner, and where, even in the year
one thousand seven hundred and eighty, the first letters
written to you by your old love, or by your little
children, were but newly released from the horror of
being ogled through the windows, by the heads exposed on
Temple Bar with an insensate brutality and ferocity
worthy of Abyssinia or Ashantee.
But indeed, at that time, putting to death was a
recipe much in vogue with all trades and professions, and
not least of all with Tellson's. Death is Nature's remedy
for all things, and why not Legislation's? Accordingly,
the forger was put to Death; the utterer of a bad note
was put to Death; the unlawful opener of a letter was put
to Death; the purloiner of forty shillings and sixpence
was put to Death; the holder of a horse at Tellson's
door, who made off with it, was put to Death; the coiner
of a bad shilling was put to Death; the sounders of
three-fourths of the notes in the whole gamut of Crime,
were put to Death. Not that it did the least good in the
way of prevention--it might almost have been worth
remarking that the fact was exactly the reverse--but, it
cleared off (as to this world) the trouble of each
particular case, and left nothing else connected with it
to be looked after. Thus, Tellson's, in its day, like
greater places of business, its contemporaries, had taken
so many lives, that, if the heads laid low before it had
been ranged on Temple Bar instead of being privately
disposed of, they would probably have excluded what
little light the ground floor bad, in a rather
significant manner.
Cramped in all kinds of dun cupboards and hutches
at Tellson's, the oldest of men carried on the business
gravely. When they took a young man into Tellson's London
house, they hid him somewhere till he was old. They kept
him in a dark place, like a cheese, until he had the full
Tellson flavour and blue-mould upon him. Then only was he
permitted to be seen, spectacularly poring over large
books, and casting his breeches and gaiters into the
general weight of the establishment.
Outside Tellson's--never by any means in it, unless
called in--was an odd-job-man, an occasional porter and
messenger, who served as the live sign of the house. He
was never absent during business hours, unless upon an
errand, and then he was represented by his son: a grisly
urchin of twelve, who was his express image. People
understood that Tellson's, in a stately way, tolerated
the odd-job-man. The house had always tolerated some
person in that capacity, and time and tide had drifted
this person to the post. His surname was Cruncher, and on
the youthful occasion of his renouncing by proxy the
works of darkness, in the easterly parish church of
Hounsditch, he had received the added appellation of
Jerry.
The scene was Mr. Cruncher's private lodging in
Hanging-sword-alley, Whitefriars: the time, half-past
seven of the clock on a windy March morning, Anno Domini
seventeen hundred and eighty. (Mr. Cruncher himself
always spoke of the year of our Lord as Anna Dominoes:
apparently under the impression that the Christian era
dated from the invention of a popular game, by a lady who
had bestowed her name upon it.)
Mr. Cruncher's apartments were not in a savoury
neighbourhood, and were but two in number, even if a
closet with a single pane of glass in it might be counted
as one. But they were very decently kept. Early as it
was, on the windy March morning, the room in which he lay
abed was already scrubbed throughout; and between the
cups and saucers arranged for breakfast, and the
lumbering deal table, a very clean white cloth was
spread.
Mr. Cruncher reposed under a patchwork counterpane,
like a Harlequin at home. At fast, he slept heavily, but,
by degrees, began to roll and surge in bed, until he rose
above the surface, with his spiky hair looking as if it
must tear the sheets to ribbons. At which juncture, he
exclaimed, in a voice of dire exasperation:
"Bust me, if she ain't at it agin!"
A woman of orderly and industrious appearance rose
from her knees in a corner, with sufficient haste and
trepidation to show that she was the person referred
to.
"What!" said Mr. Cruncher, looking out of bed for a
boot. "You're at it agin, are you?"
After hailing the mom with this second salutation,
he threw a boot at the woman as a third. It was a very
muddy boot, and may introduce the odd circumstance
connected with Mr. Cruncher's domestic economy, that,
whereas he often came home after banking hours with clean
boots, he often got up next morning to find the same
boots covered with clay.
"What," said Mr. Cruncher, varying his apostrophe
after missing his mark--"what are you up to,
Aggerawayter?"
"I was only saying my prayers."
"Saying your prayers! You're a nice woman! What do
you mean by flopping yourself down and praying agin
me?"
"I was not praying against you; I was praying for
you."
"You weren't. And if you were, I won't be took the
liberty with. Here! your mother's a nice woman, young
Jerry, going a praying agin your father's prosperity.
You've got a dutiful mother, you have, my son. You've got
a religious mother, you have, my boy: going and flopping
herself down, and praying that the bread-and-butter may
be snatched out of the mouth of her only child."
Master Cruncher (who was in his shirt) took this
very ill, and, turning to his mother, strongly deprecated
any praying away of his personal board.
"And what do you suppose, you conceited female,"
said Mr. Cruncher, with unconscious inconsistency, "that
the worth of YOUR prayers may be? Name the price that you
put YOUR prayers at!"
"They only come from the heart, Jerry. They are
worth no more than that."
"Worth no more than that," repeated Mr. Cruncher.
"They ain't worth much, then. Whether or no, I won't be
prayed agin, I tell you. I can't afford it. I'm not a
going to be made unlucky by YOUR sneaking. If you must go
flopping yourself down, flop in favour of your husband
and child, and not in opposition to 'em. If I had had any
but a unnat'ral wife, and this poor boy had had any but a
unnat'ral mother, I might have made some money last week
instead of being counter-prayed and countermined and
religiously circumwented into the worst of luck.
B-u-u-ust me!" said Mr. Cruncher, who all this time had
been putting on his clothes, "if I ain't, what with piety
and one blowed thing and another, been choused this last
week into as bad luck as ever a poor devil of a honest
tradesman met with! Young Jerry, dress yourself, my boy,
and while I clean my boots keep a eye upon your mother
now and then, and if you see any signs of more flopping,
give me a call. For, I tell you," here he addressed his
wife once more, "I won't be gone agin, in this manner. I
am as rickety as a hackney-coach, I'm as sleepy as
laudanum, my lines is strained to that degree that I
shouldn't know, if it wasn't for the pain in 'em, which
was me and which somebody else, yet I'm none the better
for it in pocket; and it's my suspicion that you've been
at it from morning to night to prevent me from being the
better for it in pocket, and I won't put up with it,
Aggerawayter, and what do you say now!"
Growling, in addition, such phrases as "Ah! yes!
You're religious, too. You wouldn't put yourself in
opposition to the interests of your husband and child,
would you? Not you!" and throwing off other sarcastic
sparks from the whirling grindstone of his indignation,
Mr. Cruncher betook himself to his boot-cleaning and his
general preparation for business. In the meantime, his
son, whose head was garnished with tenderer spikes, and
whose young eyes stood close by one another, as his
father's did, kept the required watch upon his mother. He
greatly disturbed that poor woman at intervals, by
darting out of his sleeping closet, where he made his
toilet, with a suppressed cry of "You are going to flop,
mother. --Halloa, father!" and, after raising this
fictitious alarm, darting in again with an undutiful
grin.
Mr. Cruncher's temper was not at all improved when
he came to his breakfast. He resented Mrs. Cruncher's
saying grace with particular animosity.
"Now, Aggerawayter! What are you up to? At it
again?"
His wife explained that she had merely "asked a
blessing."
"Don't do it!" said Mr. Crunches looking about, as
if he rather expected to see the loaf disappear under the
efficacy of his wife's petitions. "I ain't a going to be
blest out of house and home. I won't have my wittles
blest off my table. Keep still!"
Exceedingly red-eyed and grim, as if he had been up
all night at a party which had taken anything but a
convivial turn, Jerry Cruncher worried his breakfast
rather than ate it, growling over it like any four-footed
inmate of a menagerie. Towards nine o'clock he smoothed
his ruffled aspect, and, presenting as respectable and
business-like an exterior as he could overlay his natural
self with, issued forth to the occupation of the
day.
It could scarcely be called a trade, in spite of
his favourite description of himself as "a honest
tradesman." His stock consisted of a wooden stool, made
out of a broken-backed chair cut down, which stool, young
Jerry, walking at his father's side, carried every
morning to beneath the banking-house window that was
nearest Temple Bar: where, with the addition of the first
handful of straw that could be gleaned from any passing
vehicle to keep the cold and wet from the odd-job-man's
feet, it formed the encampment for the day. On this post
of his, Mr. Cruncher was as well known to Fleet-street
and the Temple, as the Bar itself,--and was almost as
in-looking.
Encamped at a quarter before nine, in good time to
touch his three- cornered hat to the oldest of men as
they passed in to Tellson's, Jerry took up his station on
this windy March morning, with young Jerry standing by
him, when not engaged in making forays through the Bar,
to inflict bodily and mental injuries of an acute
description on passing boys who were small enough for his
amiable purpose. Father and son, extremely like each
other, looking silently on at the morning traffic in
Fleet-street, with their two heads as near to one another
as the two eyes of each were, bore a considerable
resemblance to a pair of monkeys. The resemblance was not
lessened by the accidental circumstance, that the mature
Jerry bit and spat out straw, while the twinkling eyes of
the youthful Jerry were as restlessly watchful of him as
of everything else in Fleet-street.
The head of one of the regular indoor messengers
attached to Tellson's establishment was put through the
door, and the word was given:
"Porter wanted!"
"Hooray, father! Here's an early job to begin
with!"
Having thus given his parent God speed, young Jerry
seated himself on the stool, entered on his reversionary
interest in the straw his father had been chewing, and
cogitated.
"Al-ways rusty! His fingers is al-ways rusty!"
muttered young Jerry. "Where does my father get all that
iron rust from? He don't get no iron rust here!"
II
A Sight
"You know the Old Bailey, well, no doubt?" said one
of the oldest of clerks to Jerry the messenger.
"Ye-es, sir," returned Jerry, in something of a
dogged manner. "I DO know the Bailey."
"Just so. And you know Mr. Lorry."
"I know Mr. Lorry, sir, much better than I know the
Bailey. Much better," said Jerry, not unlike a reluctant
witness at the establishment in question, "than I, as a
honest tradesman, wish to know the Bailey."
"Very well. Find the door where the witnesses go
in, and show the door-keeper this note for Mr. Lorry. He
will then let you in."
"Into the court, sir?"
"Into the court."
Mr. Cruncher's eyes seemed to get a little closer
to one another, and to interchange the inquiry, "What do
you think of this?"
"Am I to wait in the court, sir?" he asked, as the
result of that conference.
"I am going to tell you. The door-keeper will pass
the note to Mr. Lorry, and do you make any gesture that
will attract Mr. Lorry's attention, and show him where
you stand. Then what you have to do, is, to remain there
until he wants you."
"Is that all, sir?"
"That's all. He wishes to have a messenger at hand.
This is to tell him you are there."
As the ancient clerk deliberately folded and
superscribed the note, Mr. Cruncher, after surveying him
in silence until he came to the blotting-paper stage,
remarked:
"I suppose they'll be trying Forgeries this
morning?"
"Treason!"
"That's quartering," said Jerry.
"Barbarous!"
"It is the law," remarked the ancient clerk,
turning his surprised spectacles upon him. "It is the
law."
"It's hard in the law to spile a man, I think. Ifs
hard enough to kill him, but it's wery hard to spile him,
sir."
"Not at all," retained the ancient clerk. "Speak
well of the law. Take care of your chest and voice, my
good friend, and leave the law to take care of itself. I
give you that advice."
"It's the damp, sir, what settles on my chest and
voice," said Jerry. "I leave you to judge what a damp way
of earning a living mine is."
"WeB, well," said the old clerk; "we aa have our
various ways of gaining a livelihood. Some of us have
damp ways, and some of us have dry ways. Here is the
letter. Go along."
Jerry took the letter, and, remarking to himself
with less internal deference than he made an outward show
of, "You are a lean old one, too," made his bow, informed
his son, in passing, of his destination, and went his
way.
They hanged at Tyburn, in those days, so the street
outside Newgate had not obtained one infamous notoriety
that has since attached to it. But, the gaol was a vile
place, in which most kinds of debauchery and villainy
were practised, and where dire diseases were bred, that
came into court with the prisoners, and sometimes rushed
straight from the dock at my Lord Chief Justice himself,
and pulled him off the bench. It had more than once
happened, that the Judge in the black cap pronounced his
own doom as certainly as the prisoner's, and even died
before him. For the rest, the Old Bailey was famous as a
kind of deadly inn-yard, from which pale travellers set
out continually, in carts and coaches, on a violent
passage into the other world: traversing some two miles
and a half of public street and road, and shaming few
good citizens, if any. So powerful is use, and so
desirable to be good use in the beginning. It was famous,
too, for the pillory, a wise old institution, that
inflicted a punishment of which no one could foresee the
extent; also, for the whipping-post, another dear old
institution, very humanising and softening to behold in
action; also, for extensive transactions in blood-money,
another fragment of ancestral wisdom, systematically
leading to the most frightful mercenary crimes that could
be committed under Heaven. Altogether, the Old Bailey, at
that date, was a choice illustration of the precept, that
"Whatever is is right;" an aphorism that would be as
final as it is lazy, did it not include the troublesome
consequence, that nothing that ever was, was
wrong.
Making his way through the tainted crowd, dispersed
up and down this hideous scene of action, with the skill
of a man accustomed to make his way quietly, the
messenger found out the door he sought, and handed in his
letter through a trap in it. For, people then paid to see
the play at the Old Bailey, just as they paid to see the
play in Bedlam--only the former entertainment was much
the dearer. Therefore, all the Old Bailey doors were well
guarded--except, indeed, the social doors by which the
criminals got there, and those were always left wide
open.
After some delay and demur, the door grudgingly
turned on its hinges a very little way, and allowed Mr.
Jerry Cruncher to squeeze himself into court.
"What's on?" he asked, in a whisper, of the man he
found himself next to.
"Nothing yet."
"What's coming on?"
"The Treason case."
"The quartering one, eh?"
"Ah!" returned the man, with a relish; "he'll be
drawn on a hurdle to be half hanged, and then he'll be
taken down and sliced before his own face, and then his
inside will be taken out and burnt while he looks on, and
then his head will be chopped off, and he'll be cut into
quarters. That's the sentence."
"If he's found Guilty, you mean to say?" Jerry
added, by way of proviso.
"Oh! they'll find him guilty," said the other.
"Don't you be afraid of that."
Mr. Cruncher's attention was here diverted to the
door-keeper, whom he saw making his way to Mr. Lorry,
with the note in his hand. Mr. Lorry sat at a table,
among the gentlemen in wigs: not far from a wigged
gentleman, the prisoner's counsel, who had a great bundle
of papers before him: and nearly opposite another wigged
gentleman with his hands in his pockets, whose whole
attention, when Mr. Cruncher looked at him then or
afterwards, seemed to be concentrated on the ceiling of
the court. After some gruff coughing and rubbing of his
chin and signing with his hand, Jerry attracted the
notice of Mr. Lorry, who had stood up to look for him,
and who quietly nodded and sat down again.
"What's HE got to do with the case?" asked the man
he had spoken with.
"Blest if I know," said Jerry.
"What have YOU got to do with it, then, if a person
may inquire?"
"Blest if I know that either," said Jerry.
The entrance of the Judge, and a consequent great
stir and settling down in the court, stopped the
dialogue. Presently, the dock became the central point of
interest. Two gaolers, who had been standing there, wont
out, and the prisoner was brought in, and put to the
bar.
Everybody present, except the one wigged gentleman
who looked at the ceiling, stared at him. All the human
breath in the place, rolled at him, like a sea, or a
wind, or a fire. Eager faces strained round pillars and
corners, to get a sight of him; spectators in back rows
stood up, not to miss a hair of him; people on the floor
of the court, laid their hands on the shoulders of the
people before them, to help themselves, at anybody's
cost, to a view of him--stood a-tiptoe, got upon ledges,
stood upon next to nothing, to see every inch of him.
Conspicuous among these latter, like an animated bit of
the spiked wall of Newgate, Jerry stood: aiming at the
prisoner the beery breath of a whet he had taken as he
came along, and discharging it to mingle with the waves
of other beer, and gin, and tea, and coffee, and what
not, that flowed at him, and already broke upon the great
windows behind him in an impure mist and rain.
The object of all this staring and blaring, was a
young man of about five-and-twenty, well-grown and
well-looking, with a sunburnt cheek and a dark eye. His
condition was that of a young gentleman. He was plainly
dressed in black, or very dark grey, and his hair, which
was long and dark, was gathered in a ribbon at the back
of his neck; more to be out of his way than for ornament.
As an emotion of the mind will express itself through any
covering of the body, so the paleness which his situation
engendered came through the brown upon his cheek, showing
the soul to be stronger than the sun. He was otherwise
quite self-possessed, bowed to the Judge, and stood
quiet.
The sort of interest with which this man was stared
and breathed at, was not a sort that elevated humanity.
Had he stood in peril of a less horrible sentence--had
there been a chance of any one of its savage details
being spared--by just so much would he have lost in his
fascination. The form that was to be doomed to be so
shamefully mangled, was the sight; the immortal creature
that was to be so butchered and torn asunder, yielded the
sensation. Whatever gloss the various spectators put upon
the interest, according to their several arts and powers
of self-deceit, the interest was, at the root of it,
Ogreish.
Silence in the court! Charles Darnay had yesterday
pleaded Not Guilty to an indictment denouncing him (with
infinite jingle and jangle) for that he was a false
traitor to our serene, illustrious, excellent, and so
forth, prince, our Lord the King, by reason of his
having, on divers occasions, and by divers means and
ways, assisted Lewis, the French King, in his wars
against our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and so
forth; that was to say, by coming and going, between the
dominions of our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and
so forth, and those of the said French Lewis, and
wickedly, falsely, traitorously, and otherwise
evil-adverbiously, revealing to the said French Lewis
what forces our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and
so forth, had in preparation to send to Canada and North
America. This much, Jerry, with his head becoming more
and more spiky as the law terms bristled it, made out
with huge satisfaction, and so arrived circuitously at
the understanding that the aforesaid, and over and over
again aforesaid, Charles Darnay, stood there before him
upon his trial; that the jury were swearing in; and that
Mr. Attorney-General was making ready to speak.
The accused, who was (and who knew he was) being
mentally hanged, beheaded, and quartered, by everybody
there, neither flinched from the situation, nor assumed
any theatrical air in it. He was quiet and attentive;
watched the opening proceedings with a grave interest;
and stood with his hands resting on the slab of wood
before him, so composedly, that they had not displaced a
leaf of the herbs with which it was strewn. The court was
all bestrewn with herbs and sprinkled with vinegar, as a
precaution against gaol air and gaol fever.
Over the prisoner's head there was a mirror, to
throw the light down upon him. Crowds of the wicked and
the wretched had been reflected in it, and had passed
from its surface and this earth's together. Haunted in a
most ghastly manner that abominable place would have
been, if the glass could ever have rendered back its
reflections, as the ocean is one day to give up its dead.
Some passing thought of the infamy and disgrace for which
it had been reserved, may have struck the prisoner's
mind. Be that as it may, a change in his position making
him conscious of a bar of light across his face, he
looked up; and when he saw the glass his face flushed,
and his right hand pushed the herbs away.
It happened, that the action turned his face to
that side of the court which was on his left. About on a
level with his eyes, there sat, in that corner of the
Judge's bench, two persons upon whom his look immediately
rested; so immediately, and so much to the changing of
his aspect, that all the eyes that were tamed upon him,
turned to them.
The spectators saw in the two figures, a young lady
of little more than twenty, and a gentleman who was
evidently her father; a man of a very remarkable
appearance in respect of the absolute whiteness of his
hair, and a certain indescribable intensity of face: not
of an active kind, but pondering and self-communing. When
this expression was upon him, he looked as if he were
old; but when it was stirred and broken up--as it was
now, in a moment, on his speaking to his daughter--he
became a handsome man, not past the prime of life.
His daughter had one of her hands drawn through his
arm, as she sat by him, and the other pressed upon it.
She had drawn close to him, in her dread of the scene,
and in her pity for the prisoner. Her forehead had been
strikingly expressive of an engrossing terror and
compassion that saw nothing but the peril of the accused.
This had been so very noticeable, so very powerfully and
naturally shown, that starers who had had no pity for him
were touched by her; and the whisper went about, "Who are
they?"
Jerry, the messenger, who had made his own
observations, in his own manner, and who had been sucking
the rust off his fingers in his absorption, stretched his
neck to hear who they were. The crowd about him had
pressed and passed the inquiry on to the nearest
attendant, and from him it had been more slowly pressed
and passed back; at last it got to Jerry:
"Witnesses."
"For which side?"
"Against."
"Against what side?"
"The prisoner's."
The Judge, whose eyes had gone in the general
direction, recalled them, leaned back in his seat, and
looked steadily at the man whose life was in his hand, as
Mr. Attorney-General rose to spin the rope, grind the
axe, and hammer the nails into the scaffold.
III
A Disappointment
Mr. Attorney-General had to inform the jury, that
the prisoner before them, though young in years, was old
in the treasonable practices which claimed the forfeit of
his life. That this correspondence with the public enemy
was not a correspondence of to-day, or of yesterday, or
even of last year, or of the year before. That, it was
certain the prisoner had, for longer than that, been in
the habit of passing and repassing between France and
England, on secret business of which he could give no
honest account. That, if it were in the nature of
traitorous ways to thrive (which happily it never was),
the real wickedness and guilt of his business might have
remained undiscovered. That Providence, however, had put
it into the heart of a person who was beyond fear and
beyond reproach, to ferret out the nature of the
prisoner's schemes, and, struck with horror, to disclose
them to his Majesty's Chief Secretary of State and most
honourable Privy Council. That, this patriot would be
produced before them. That, his position and attitude
were, on the whole, sublime. That, he had been the
prisoner's friend, but, at once in an auspicious and an
evil hour detecting his infamy, had resolved to immolate
the traitor he could no longer cherish in his bosom, on
the sacred altar of his country. That, if statues were
decreed in Britain, as in ancient Greece and Rome, to
public benefactors, this shining citizen would assuredly
have had one. That, as they were not so decreed, he
probably would not have one. That, Virtue, as had been
observed by the poets (in many passages which he well
knew the jury would have, word for word, at the tips of
their tongues; whereat the jury's countenances displayed
a guilty consciousness that they knew nothing about the
passages), was in a manner contagious; more especially
the bright virtue known as patriotism, or love of
country. That, the lofty example of this immaculate and
unimpeachable witness for the Crown, to refer to whom
however unworthily was an honour, had communicated itself
to the prisoner's servant, and had engendered in him a
holy determination to examine his master's table-drawers
and pockets, and secrete his papers. That, he (Mr.
Attorney-General) was prepared to hear some disparagement
attempted of this admirable servant; but that, in a
general way, he preferred him to his (Mr.
Attorney-General's) brothers and sisters, and honoured
him more than his (Mr. Attorney-General's) father and
mother. That, he called with confidence on the jury to
come and do likewise. That, the evidence of these two
witnesses, coupled with the documents of their
discovering that would be produced, would show the
prisoner to have been furnished with lists of his
Majesty's forces, and of their disposition and
preparation, both by sea and land, and would leave no
doubt that he had habitually conveyed such information to
a hostile power. That, these lists could not be proved to
be in the prisoner's handwriting; but that it was all the
same; that, indeed, it was rather the better for the
prosecution, as showing the prisoner to be artful in his
precautions. That, the proof would go back five years,
and would show the prisoner already engaged in these
pernicious missions, within a few weeks before the date
of the very first action fought between the British
troops and the Americans. That, for these reasons, the
jury, being a loyal jury (as he knew they were), and
being a responsible jury (as THEY knew they were), must
positively find the prisoner Guilty, and make an end of
him, whether they liked it or not. That, they never could
lay their heads upon their pillows; that, they never
could tolerate the idea of their wives laying their heads
upon their pillows; that, they never could endure the
notion of their children laying their heads upon their
pillows; in short, that there never more could be, for
them or theirs, any laying of heads upon pillows at all,
unless the prisoner's head was taken off. That head Mr.
Attorney-General concluded by demanding of them, in the
name of everything he could think of with a round turn in
it, and on the faith of his solemn asseveration that he
already considered the prisoner as good as dead and
gone.
When the Attorney-General ceased, a buzz arose in
the court as if a cloud of great blue-flies were swarming
about the prisoner, in anticipation of what he was soon
to become. When toned down again, the unimpeachable
patriot appeared in the witness-box.
Mr. Solicitor-General then, following his leader's
lead, examined the patriot: John Barsad, gentleman, by
name. The story of his pure soul was exactly what Mr.
Attorney-General had described it to be-- perhaps, if it
had a fault, a little too exactly. Having released his
noble bosom of its burden, he would have modestly
withdrawn himself, but that the wigged gentleman with the
papers before him, sitting not far from Mr. Lorry, begged
to ask him a few questions. The wigged gentleman sitting
opposite, still looking at the ceiling of the
court.
Had he ever been a spy himself? No, he scorned the
base insinuation. What did he live upon? His property.
Where was his property? He didn't precisely remember
where it was. What was it? No business of anybody's. Had
he inherited it? Yes, he had. From whom? Distant
relation. Very distant? Rather. Ever been in prison?
Certainly not. Never in a debtors' prison? Didn't see
what that had to do with it. Never in a debtors'
prison?--Come, once again. Never? Yes. How many times?
Two or three times. Not five or six? Perhaps. Of what
profession? Gentleman. Ever been kicked? Might have been.
Frequently? No. Ever kicked downstairs? Decidedly not;
once received a kick on the top of a staircase, and fell
downstairs of his own accord. Kicked on that occasion for
cheating at dice? Something to that effect was said by
the intoxicated liar who committed the assault, but it
was not true. Swear it was not true? Positively. Ever
live by cheating at play? Never. Ever live by play? Not
more than other gentlemen do. Ever borrow money of the
prisoner? Yes. Ever pay him? No. Was not this intimacy
with the prisoner, in reality a very slight one, forced
upon the prisoner in coaches, inns, and packets? No. Sure
he saw the prisoner with these lists? Certain. Knew no
more about the lists? No. Had not procured them himself,
for instance? No. Expect to get anything by this
evidence? No. Not in regular government pay and
employment, to lay traps? Oh dear no. Or to do anything?
Oh dear no. Swear that? Over and over again. No motives
but motives of sheer patriotism? None whatever.
The virtuous servant, Roger Cly, swore his way
through the case at a great rate. He had taken service
with the prisoner, in good faith and simplicity, four
years ago. He had asked the prisoner, aboard the Calais
packet, if he wanted a handy fellow, and the prisoner had
engaged him. He had not asked the prisoner to take the
handy fellow as an act of charity--never thought of such
a thing. He began to have suspicions of the prisoner, and
to keep an eye upon him, soon afterwards. In arranging
his clothes, while travelling, he had seen similar lists
to these in the prisoner's pockets, over and over again.
He had taken these lists from the drawer of the
prisoner's desk. He had not put them there first. He had
seen the prisoner show these identical lists to French
gentlemen at Calais, and similar lists to French
gentlemen, both at Calais and Boulogne. He loved his
country, and couldn't bear it, and had given information.
He had never been suspected of stealing a silver tea-pot;
he had been maligned respecting a mustard-pot, but it
turned out to be only a plated one. He had known the last
witness seven or eight years; that was merely a
coincidence. He didn't call it a particularly curious
coincidence; most coincidences were curious. Neither did
he call it a curious coincidence that true patriotism was
HIS only motive too. He was a true Briton, and hoped
there were many like him.
The blue-flies buzzed again, and Mr.
Attorney-General called Mr. Jarvis Lorry.
"Mr. Jarvis Lorry, are you a clerk in Tellson's
bank?"
"I am."
"On a certain Friday night in November one thousand
seven hundred and seventy-five, did business occasion you
to travel between London and Dover by the mail?"
"It did."
"Were there any other passengers in the
mail?"
"Two."
"Did they alight on the road in the course of the
night?"
"They did."
"Mr. Lorry, look upon the prisoner. Was he one of
those two passengers?"
"I cannot undertake to say that he was."
"Does he resemble either of these two
passengers?"
"Both were so wrapped up, and the night was so
dark, and we were all so reserved, that I cannot
undertake to say even that."
"Mr. Lorry, look again upon the prisoner. Supposing
him wrapped up as those two passengers were, is there
anything in his bulk and stature to render it unlikely
that he was one of them?"
"No."
"You will not swear, Mr. Lorry, that he was not one
of them?"
"No."
"So at least you say he may have been one of
them?"
"Yes. Except that I remember them both to have
been--like myself-- timorous of highwaymen, and the
prisoner has not a timorous air."
"Did you ever see a counterfeit of timidity, Mr.
Lorry?"
"I certainly have seen that."
"Mr. Lorry, look once more upon the prisoner. Have
you seen him, to your certain knowledge, before?"
"I have."
"When?"
"I was returning from France a few days afterwards,
and, at Calais, the prisoner came on board the
packet-ship in which I returned, and made the voyage with
me."
"At what hour did he come on board?"
"At a little after midnight."
"In the dead of the night. Was he the only
passenger who came on board at that untimely
hour?"
"He happened to be the only one."
"Never mind about `happening,' Mr. Lorry. He was
the only passenger who came on board in the dead of the
night?"
"He was."
"Were you travelling alone, Mr. Lorry, or with any
companion?"
"With two companions. A gentleman and lady. They
are here."
"They are here. Had you any conversation with the
prisoner?"
"Hardly any. The weather was stormy, and the
passage long and rough, and I lay on a sofa, almost from
shore to shore."
"Miss Manette!"
The young lady, to whom all eyes had been turned
before, and were now turned again, stood up where she had
sat. Her father rose with her, and kept her hand drawn
through his arm.
"Miss Manette, look upon the prisoner."
To be confronted with such pity, and such earnest
youth and beauty, was far more trying to the accused than
to be confronted with all the crowd. Standing, as it
were, apart with her on the edge of his grave, not all
the staring curiosity that looked on, could, for the
moment, nerve him to remain quite still. His hurried
right hand parcelled out the herbs before him into
imaginary beds of flowers in a garden; and his efforts to
control and steady his breathing shook the lips from
which the colour rushed to his heart. The buzz of the
great flies was loud again.
"Miss Manette, have you seen the prisoner
before?"
"Yes, sir."
"Where?"
"On board of the packet-ship just now referred to,
sir, and on the same occasion."
"You are the young lady just now referred
to?"
"O! most unhappily, I am!"
The plaintive tone of her compassion merged into
the less musical voice of the Judge, as he said something
fiercely: "Answer the questions put to you, and make no
remark upon them."
"Miss Manette, had you any conversation with the
prisoner on that passage across the Channel?"
"Yes, sir."
"Recall it."
In the midst of a profound stillness, she faintly
began: "When the gentleman came on board--"
"Do you mean the prisoner?" inquired the Judge,
knitting his brows.
"Yes, my Lord."
"Then say the prisoner."
"When the prisoner came on board, he noticed that
my father," turning her eyes lovingly to him as he stood
beside her, "was much fatigued and in a very weak state
of health. My father was so reduced that I was afraid to
take him out of the air, and I had made a bed for him on
the deck near the cabin steps, and I sat on the deck at
his side to take care of him. There were no other
passengers that night, but we four. The prisoner was so
good as to beg permission to advise me how I could
shelter my father from the wind and weather, better than
I had done. I had not known how to do it well, not
understanding how the wind would set when we were out of
the harbour. He did it for me. He expressed great
gentleness and kindness for my father's state, and I am
sure he felt it. That was the manner of our beginning to
speak together."
"Let me interrupt you for a moment. Had he come on
board alone?"
"No."
"How many were with him?"
"Two French gentlemen."
"Had they conferred together?"
"They had conferred together until the last moment,
when it was necessary for the French gentlemen to be
landed in their boat."
"Had any papers been handed about among them,
similar to these lists?"
"Some papers had been handed about among them, but
I don't know what papers."
"Like these in shape and size?"
"Possibly, but indeed I don't know, although they
stood whispering very near to me: because they stood at
the top of the cabin steps to have the light of the lamp
that was hanging there; it was a dull lamp, and they
spoke very low, and I did not hear what they said, and
saw only that they looked at papers."
"Now, to the prisoner's conversation, Miss
Manette."
"The prisoner was as open in his confidence with
me--which arose out of my helpless situation--as he was
kind, and good, and useful to my father. I hope,"
bursting into tears, "I may not repay him by doing him
harm to-day."
Buzzing from the blue-flies.
"Miss Manette, if the prisoner does not perfectly
understand that you give the evidence which it is your
duty to give--which you must give-- and which you cannot
escape from giving--with great unwillingness, he is the
only person present in that condition. Please to go
on."
"He told me that he was travelling on business of a
delicate and difficult nature, which might get people
into trouble, and that he was therefore travelling under
an assumed name. He said that this business had, within a
few days, taken him to France, and might, at intervals,
take him backwards and forwards between France and
England for a long time to come."
"Did he say anything about America, Miss Manette?
Be particular."
"He tried to explain to me how that quarrel had
arisen, and he said that, so far as he could judge, it
was a wrong and foolish one on England's part. He added,
in a jesting way, that perhaps George Washington might
gain almost as great a name in history as George the
Third. But there was no harm in his way of saying this:
it was said laughingly, and to beguile the time."
Any strongly marked expression of face on the part
of a chief actor in a scene of great interest to whom
many eyes are directed, will be unconsciously imitated by
the spectators. Her forehead was painfully anxious and
intent as she gave this evidence, and, in the pauses when
she stopped for the Judge to write it down, watched its
effect upon the counsel for and against. Among the
lookers-on there was the same expression in all quarters
of the court; insomuch, that a great majority of the
foreheads there, might have been mirrors reflecting the
witness, when the Judge looked up from his notes to glare
at that tremendous heresy about George Washington.
Mr. Attorney-General now signified to my Lord, that
he deemed it necessary, as a matter of precaution and
form, to call the young lady's father, Doctor Manette.
Who was called accordingly.
"Doctor Manette, look upon the prisoner. Have you
ever seen him before?"
"Once. When he caged at my lodgings in London. Some
three years, or three years and a half ago."
"Can you identify him as your fellow-passenger on
board the packet, or speak to his conversation with your
daughter?"
"Sir, I can do neither."
"Is there any particular and special reason for
your being unable to do either?"
He answered, in a low voice, "There is."
"Has it been your misfortune to undergo a long
imprisonment, without trial, or even accusation, in your
native country, Doctor Manette?"
He answered, in a tone that went to every heart, "A
long imprisonment."
"Were you newly released on the occasion in
question?"
"They tell me so."
"Have you no remembrance of the occasion?"
"None. My mind is a blank, from some time--I cannot
even say what time-- when I employed myself, in my
captivity, in making shoes, to the time when I found
myself living in London with my dear daughter here. She
had become familiar to me, when a gracious God restored
my faculties; but, I am quite unable even to say how she
had become familiar. I have no remembrance of the
process."
Mr. Attorney-General sat down, and the father and
daughter sat down together.
A singular circumstance then arose in the case. The
object in hand being to show that the prisoner went down,
with some fellow-plotter untracked, in the Dover mail on
that Friday night in November five years ago, and got out
of the mail in the night, as a blind, at a place where he
did not remain, but from which he travelled back some
dozen miles or more, to a garrison and dockyard, and
there collected information; a witness was called to
identify him as having been at the precise time required,
in the coffee-room of an hotel in that
garrison-and-dockyard town, waiting for another person.
The prisoner's counsel was cross-examining this witness
with no result, except that he had never seen the
prisoner on any other occasion, when the wigged gentleman
who had all this time been looking at the ceiling of the
court, wrote a word or two on a little piece of paper,
screwed it up, and tossed it to him. Opening this piece
of paper in the next pause, the counsel looked with great
attention and curiosity at the prisoner.
"You say again you are quite sure that it was the
prisoner?"
The witness was quite sure.
"Did you ever see anybody very like the
prisoner?"
Not so like (the witness said) as that he could be
mistaken.
"Look well upon that gentleman, my learned friend
there," pointing to him who had tossed the paper over,
"and then look well upon the prisoner. How say you? Are
they very like each other?"
Allowing for my learned friend's appearance being
careless and slovenly if not debauched, they were
sufficiently like each other to surprise, not only the
witness, but everybody present, when they were thus
brought into comparison. My Lord being prayed to bid my
learned friend lay aside his wig, and giving no very
gracious consent, the likeness became much more
remarkable. My Lord inquired of Mr. Stryver (the
prisoner's counsel), whether they were next to try Mr.
Carton (name of my learned friend) for treason? But, Mr.
Stryver replied to my Lord, no; but he would ask the
witness to tell him whether what happened once, might
happen twice; whether he would have been so confident if
he had seen this illustration of his rashness sooner,
whether he would be so confident, having seen it; and
more. The upshot of which, was, to smash this witness
like a crockery vessel, and shiver his part of the case
to useless lumber.
Mr. Cruncher had by this time taken quite a lunch
of rust off his fingers in his following of the evidence.
He had now to attend while Mr. Stryver fitted the
prisoner's case on the jury, like a compact suit of
clothes; showing them how the patriot, Barsad, was a
hired spy and traitor, an unblushing trafficker in blood,
and one of the greatest scoundrels upon earth since
accursed Judas--which he certainly did look rather like.
How the virtuous servant, Cly, was his friend and
partner, and was worthy to be; how the watchful eyes of
those forgers and false swearers had rested on the
prisoner as a victim, because some family affairs in
France, he being of French extraction, did require his
making those passages across the Channel--though what
those affairs were, a consideration for others who were
near and dear to him, forbade him, even for his life, to
disclose. How the evidence that had been warped and
wrested from the young lady, whose anguish in giving it
they had witnessed, came to nothing, involving the mere
little innocent gallantries and politenesses likely to
pass between any young gentleman and young lady so thrown
together;--with the exception of that reference to George
Washington, which was altogether too extravagant and
impossible to be regarded in any other light than as a
monstrous joke. How it would be a weakness in the
government to break down in this attempt to practise for
popularity on the lowest national antipathies and fears,
and therefore Mr. Attorney-General had made the most of
it; how, nevertheless, it rested upon nothing, save that
vile and infamous character of evidence too often
disfiguring such cases, and of which the State Trials of
this country were full. But, there my Lord interposed
(with as grave a face as if it had not been true), saying
that he could not sit upon that Bench and suffer those
allusions.
Mr. Stryver then called his few witnesses, and Mr.
Cruncher had next to attend while Mr. Attorney-General
turned the whole suit of clothes Mr. Stryver had fitted
on the jury, inside out; showing how Barsad and Cly were
even a hundred times better than he had thought them, and
the prisoner a hundred times worse. Lastly, came my Lord
himself, turning the suit of clothes, now inside out, now
outside in, but on the whole decidedly trimming and
shaping them into grave-clothes for the prisoner.
And now, the jury turned to consider, and the great
flies swarmed again.
Mr. Carton, who had so long sat looking at the
ceiling of the court, changed neither his place nor his
attitude, even in this excitement. While his teamed
friend, Mr. Stryver, massing his papers before him,
whispered with those who sat near, and from time to time
glanced anxiously at the jury; while all the spectators
moved more or less, and grouped themselves anew; while
even my Lord himself arose from his seat, and slowly
paced up and down his platform, not unattended by a
suspicion in the minds of the audience that his state was
feverish; this one man sat leaning back, with his torn
gown half off him, his untidy wig put on just as it had
happened to fight on his head after its removal, his
hands in his pockets, and his eyes on the ceiling as they
had been all day. Something especially reckless in his
demeanour, not only gave him a disreputable look, but so
diminished the strong resemblance he undoubtedly bore to
the prisoner (which his momentary earnestness, when they
were compared together, had strengthened), that many of
the lookers-on, taking note of him now, said to one
another they would hardly have thought the two were so
alike. Mr. Cruncher made the observation to his next
neighbour, and added, "I'd hold half a guinea that HE
don't get no law-work to do. Don't look like the sort of
one to get any, do he?"
Yet, this Mr. Carton took in more of the details of
the scene than he appeared to take in; for now, when Miss
Manette's head dropped upon her father's breast, he was
the first to see it, and to say audibly: "Officer! look
to that young lady. Help the gentleman to take her out.
Don't you see she will fall!"
There was much commiseration for her as she was
removed, and much sympathy with her father. It had
evidently been a great distress to him, to have the days
of his imprisonment recalled. He had shown strong
internal agitation when he was questioned, and that
pondering or brooding look which made him old, had been
upon him, like a heavy cloud, ever since. As he passed
out, the jury, who had turned back and paused a moment,
spoke, through their foreman.
They were not agreed, and wished to retire. My Lord
(perhaps with George Washington on his mind) showed some
surprise that they were not agreed, but signified his
pleasure that they should retire under watch and ward,
and retired himself. The trial had lasted all day, and
the lamps in the court were now being lighted. It began
to be rumoured that the jury would be out a long while.
The spectators dropped off to get refreshment, and the
prisoner withdrew to the back of the dock, and sat
down.
Mr. Lorry, who had gone out when the young lady and
her father went out, now reappeared, and beckoned to
Jerry: who, in the slackened interest, could easily get
near him.
"Jerry, if you wish to take something to eat, you
can. But, keep in the way. You will be sure to hear when
the jury come in. Don't be a moment behind them, for I
want you to take the verdict back to the bank. You are
the quickest messenger I know, and will get to Temple Bar
long before I can."
Jerry had just enough forehead to knuckle, and he
knuckled it in acknowedgment of this communication and a
shilling. Mr. Carton came up at the moment, and touched
Mr. Lorry on the arm.
"How is the young lady?"
"She is greatly distressed; but her father is
comforting her, and she feels the better for being out of
court."
"I'll tell the prisoner so. It won't do for a
respectable bank gentleman like you, to be seen speaking
to him publicly, you know."
Mr. Lorry reddened as if he were conscious of
having debated the point in his mind, and Mr. Carton made
his way to the outside of the bar. The way out of court
lay in that direction, and Jerry followed him, all eyes,
ears, and spikes.
"Mr. Darnay!"
The prisoner came forward directly.
"You will naturally be anxious to hear of the
witness, Miss Manette. She will do very well. You have
seen the worst of her agitation."
"I am deeply sorry to have been the cause of it.
Could you tell her so for me, with my fervent
acknowledgments?"
"Yes, I could. I will, if you ask it."
Mr. Carton's manner was so careless as to be almost
insolent. He stood, half turned from the prisoner,
lounging with his elbow against the bar.
"I do ask it. Accept my cordial thanks."
"What," said Carton, still only half turned towards
him, "do you expect, Mr. Darnay?"
"The worst."
"It's the wisest thing to expect, and the
likeliest. But I think their withdrawing is in your
favour."
Loitering on the way out of court not being
allowed, Jerry heard no more: but left them--so like each
other in feature, so unlike each other in
manner--standing side by side, both reflected in the
glass above them.
An hour and a half limped heavily away in the
thief-and-rascal crowded passages below, even though
assisted off with mutton pies and ale. The hoarse
messenger, uncomfortably seated on a form after taking
that refection, had dropped into a doze, when a loud
murmur and a rapid tide of people setting up the stairs
that led to the court, carried him along with
them.
"Jerry! Jerry!" Mr. Lorry was already calling at
the door when he got there.
"Here, sir! It's a fight to get back again. Here I
am, sir!"
Mr. Lorry handed him a paper through the throng.
"Quick! Have you got it?"
"Yes, sir."
Hastily written on the paper was the word
"AQUITTED."
"If you had sent the message, `Recalled to Life,'
again," muttered Jerry, as he turned, "I should have
known what you meant, this time."
He had no opportunity of saying, or so much as
thinking, anything else, until he was clear of the Old
Bailey; for, the crowd came pouring out with a vehemence
that nearly took him off his legs, and a loud buzz swept
into the street as if the baffled blue-flies were
dispersing in search of other carrion.
IV
Congratulatory
From the dimly-lighted passages of the court, the
last sediment of the human stew that had been boiling
there all day, was straining off, when Doctor Manette,
Lucie Manette, his daughter, Mr. Lorry, the solicitor for
the defence, and its counsel, Mr. Stryver, stood gathered
round Mr. Charles Darnay--just released--congratulating
him on his escape from death.
It would have been difficult by a far brighter
light, to recognise in Doctor Manette, intellectual of
face and upright of bearing, the shoemaker of the garret
in Paris. Yet, no one could have looked at him twice,
without looking again: even though the opportunity of
observation had not extended to the mournful cadence of
his low grave voice, and to the abstraction that
overclouded him fitfully, without any apparent reason.
While one external cause, and that a reference to his
long lingering agony, would always--as on the
trial--evoke this condition from the depths of his soul,
it was also in its nature to arise of itself, and to draw
a gloom over him, as incomprehensible to those
unacquainted with his story as if they had seen the
shadow of the actual Bastille thrown upon him by a summer
sun, when the substance was three hundred miles
away.
Only his daughter had the power of charming this
black brooding from his mind. She was the golden thread
that united him to a Past beyond his misery, and to a
Present beyond his misery: and the sound of her voice,
the light of her face, the touch of her hand, had a
strong beneficial influence with him almost always. Not
absolutely always, for she could recall some occasions on
which her power had failed; but they were few and slight,
and she believed them over.
Mr. Darnay had kissed her hand fervently and
gratefully, and had turned to Mr. Stryver, whom he warmly
thanked. Mr. Stryver, a man of little more than thirty,
but looking twenty years older than he was, stout, loud,
red, bluff, and free from any drawback of delicacy, had a
pushing way of shouldering himself (morally and
physically) into companies and conversations, that argued
well for his shouldering his way up in life.
He still had his wig and gown on, and he said,
squaring himself at his late client to that degree that
he squeezed the innocent Mr. Lorry clean out of the
group: "I am glad to have brought you off with honour,
Mr. Darnay. It was an infamous prosecution, grossly
infamous; but not the less likely to succeed on that
account."
"You have laid me under an obligation to you for
life--in two senses," said his late client, taking his
hand.
"I have done my best for you, Mr. Darnay; and my
best is as good as another man's, I believe."
It clearly being incumbent on some one to say,
"Much better," Mr. Lorry said it; perhaps not quite
disinterestedly, but with the interested object of
squeezing himself back again.
"You think so?" said Mr. Stryver. "Well! you have
been present all day, and you ought to know. You are a
man of business, too."
"And as such," quoth Mr. Lorry, whom the counsel
learned in the law had now shouldered back into the
group, just as he had previously shouldered him out of
it--"as such I will appeal to Doctor Manette, to break up
this conference and order us all to our homes. Miss Lucie
looks ill, Mr. Darnay has had a terrible day, we are worn
out."
"Speak for yourself, Mr. Lorry," said Stryver; "I
have a night's work to do yet. Speak for
yourself."
"I speak for myself," answered Mr. Lorry, "and for
Mr. Darnay, and for Miss Lucie, and--Miss Lucie, do you
not think I may speak for us all?" He asked her the
question pointedly, and with a glance at her
father.
His face had become frozen, as it were, in a very
curious look at Darnay: an intent look, deepening into a
frown of dislike and distrust, not even unmixed with
fear. With this strange expression on him his thoughts
had wandered away.
"My father," said Lucie, softly laying her hand on
his.
He slowly shook the shadow off, and turned to
her.
"Shall we go home, my father?"
With a long breath, he answered "Yes."
The friends of the acquitted prisoner had
dispersed, under the impression--which he himself had
originated--that he would not be released that night. The
lights were nearly all extinguished in the passages, the
iron gates were being closed with a jar and a rattle, and
the dismal place was deserted until to-morrow morning's
interest of gallows, pillory, whipping-post, and
branding-iron, should repeople it. Walking between her
father and Mr. Darnay, Lucie Manette passed into the open
air. A hackney-coach was called, and the father and
daughter departed in it.
Mr. Stryver had left them in the passages, to
shoulder his way back to the robing-room. Another person,
who had not joined the group, or interchanged a word with
any one of them, but who had been leaning against the
wall where its shadow was darkest, had silently strolled
out after the rest, and had looked on until the coach
drove away. He now stepped up to where Mr. Lorry and Mr.
Darnay stood upon the pavement.
"So, Mr. Lorry! Men of business may speak to Mr.
Darnay now?"
Nobody had made any acknowledgment of Mr. Carton's
part in the day's proceedings; nobody had known of it. He
was unrobed, and was none the better for it in
appearance.
"If you knew what a conflict goes on in the
business mind, when the business mind is divided between
good-natured impulse and business appearances, you would
be amused, Mr. Darnay."
Mr. Lorry reddened, and said, warmly, "You have
mentioned that before, sir. We men of business, who serve
a House, are not our own masters. We have to think of the
House more than ourselves."
"_I_ know, _I_ know," rejoined Mr. Carton,
carelessly. "Don't be nettled, Mr. Lorry. You are as good
as another, I have no doubt: better, I dare say."
"And indeed, sir," pursued Mr. Lorry, not minding
him, "I really don't know what you have to do with the
matter. If you'll excuse me, as very much your elder, for
saying so, I really don't know that it is your
business."
"Business! Bless you, _I_ have no business," said
Mr. Carton.
"It is a pity you have not, sir."
"I think so, too."
"If you had," pursued Mr. Lorry, "perhaps you would
attend to it."
"Lord love you, no!--I shouldn't," said Mr.
Carton.
"Well, sir!" cried Mr. Lorry, thoroughly heated by
his indifference, "business is a very good thing, and a
very respectable thing. And, sir, if business imposes its
restraints and its silences and impediments, Mr. Darnay
as a young gentleman of generosity knows how to make
allowance for that circumstance. Mr. Darnay, good night,
God bless you, sir! I hope you have been this day
preserved for a prosperous and happy life.--Chair
there!"
Perhaps a little angry with himself, as well as
with the barrister, Mr. Lorry bustled into the chair, and
was carried off to Tellson's. Carton, who smelt of port
wine, and did not appear to be quite sober, laughed then,
and turned to Darnay:
"This is a strange chance that throws you and me
together. This must be a strange night to you, standing
alone here with your counterpart on these street
stones?"
"I hardly seem yet," returned Charles Darnay, "to
belong to this world again."
"I don't wonder at it; it's not so long since you
were pretty far advanced on your way to another. You
speak faintly."
"I begin to think I AM faint."
"Then why the devil don't you dine? I dined,
myself, while those numskulls were deliberating which
world you should belong to--this, or some other. Let me
show you the nearest tavern to dine well at."
Drawing his arm through his own, he took him down
Ludgate-hill to Fleet-street, and so, up a covered way,
into a tavern. Here, they were shown into a little room,
where Charles Darnay was soon recruiting his strength
with a good plain dinner and good wine: while Carton sat
opposite to him at the same table, with his separate
bottle of port before him, and his fully half-insolent
manner upon him.
"Do you feel, yet, that you belong to this
terrestrial scheme again, Mr. Darnay?"
"I am frightfully confused regarding time and
place; but I am so far mended as to feel that."
"It must be an immense satisfaction!"
He said it bitterly, and filled up his glass again:
which was a large one.
"As to me, the greatest desire I have, is to forget
that I belong to it. It has no good in it for me--except
wine like this--nor I for it. So we are not much alike in
that particular. Indeed, I begin to think we are not much
alike in any particular, you and I."
Confused by the emotion of the day, and feeling his
being there with this Double of coarse deportment, to be
like a dream, Charles Darnay was at a loss how to answer;
finally, answered not at all.
"Now your dinner is done," Carton presently said,
"why don't you call a health, Mr. Darnay; why don't you
give your toast?"
"What health? What toast?"
"Why, it's on the tip of your tongue. It ought to
be, it must be, I'll swear it's there."
"Miss Manette, then!"
"Miss Manette, then!"
Looking his companion full in the face while he
drank the toast, Carton flung his glass over his shoulder
against the wall, where it shivered to pieces; then, rang
the bell, and ordered in another.
"That's a fair young lady to hand to a coach in the
dark, Mr. Darnay!" he said, ruing his new goblet.
A slight frown and a laconic "Yes," were the
answer.
"That's a fair young lady to be pitied by and wept
for by! How does it feel? Is it worth being tried for
one's life, to be the object of such sympathy and
compassion, Mr. Darnay?"
Again Darnay answered not a word.
"She was mightily pleased to have your message,
when I gave it her. Not that she showed she was pleased,
but I suppose she was."
The allusion served as a timely reminder to Darnay
that this disagreeable companion had, of his own free
will, assisted him in the strait of the day. He turned
the dialogue to that point, and thanked him for
it.
"I neither want any thanks, nor merit any," was the
careless rejoinder. "It was nothing to do, in the first
place; and I don't know why I did it, in the second. Mr.
Darnay, let me ask you a question."
"Willingly, and a small return for your good
offices."
"Do you think I particularly like you?"
"Really, Mr. Carton," returned the other, oddly
disconcerted, "I have not asked myself the
question."
"But ask yourself the question now."
"You have acted as if you do; but I don't think you
do."
"_I_ don't think I do," said Carton. "I begin to
have a very good opinion of your understanding."
"Nevertheless," pursued Darnay, rising to ring the
bell, "there is nothing in that, I hope, to prevent my
calling the reckoning, and our parting without ill-blood
on either side."
Carton rejoining, "Nothing in life!" Darnay rang.
"Do you call the whole reckoning?" said Carton. On his
answering in the affirmative, "Then bring me another pint
of this same wine, drawer, and come and wake me at
ten."
The bill being paid, Charles Darnay rose and wished
him good night. Without returning the wish, Carton rose
too, with something of a threat of defiance in his
manner, and said, "A last word, Mr. Darnay: you think I
am drunk?"
"I think you have been drinking, Mr.
Carton."
"Think? You know I have been drinking."
"Since I must say so, I know it."
"Then you shall likewise know why. I am a
disappointed drudge, sir. I care for no man on earth, and
no man on earth cares for me."
"Much to be regretted. You might have used your
talents better."
"May be so, Mr. Darnay; may be not. Don't let your
sober face elate you, however; you don't know what it may
come to. Good night!"
When he was left alone, this strange being took up
a candle, went to a glass that hung against the wall, and
surveyed himself minutely in it.
"Do you particularly like the man?" he muttered, at
his own image; "why should you particularly like a man
who resembles you? There is nothing in you to like; you
know that. Ah, confound you! What a change you have made
in yourself! A good reason for taking to a man, that he
shows you what you have fallen away from, and what you
might have been! Change places with him, and would you
have been looked at by those blue eyes as he was, and
commiserated by that agitated face as he was? Come on,
and have it out in plain words! You hate the
fellow."
He resorted to his pint of wine for consolation,
drank it all in a few minutes, and fell asleep on his
arms, with his hair straggling over the table, and a long
winding-sheet in the candle dripping down upon
him.
V
The Jackal
Those were drinking days, and most men drank hard.
So very great is the improvement Time has brought about
in such habits, that a moderate statement of the quantity
of wine and punch which one man would swallow in the
course of a night, without any detriment to his
reputation as a perfect gentleman, would seem, in these
days, a ridiculous exaggeration. The learned profession
of the law was certainly not behind any other learned
profession in its Bacchanalian propensities; neither was
Mr. Stryver, already fast shouldering his way to a large
and lucrative practice, behind his compeers in this
particular, any more than in the drier parts of the legal
race.
A favourite at the Old Bailey, and eke at the
Sessions, Mr. Stryver had begun cautiously to hew away
the lower staves of the ladder on which he mounted.
Sessions and Old Bailey had now to summon their
favourite, specially, to their longing arms; and
shouldering itself towards the visage of the Lord Chief
Justice in the Court of King's Bench, the florid
countenance of Mr. Stryver might be daily seen, bursting
out of the bed of wigs, like a great sunflower pushing
its way at the sun from among a rank garden-full of
flaring companions.
It had once been noted at the Bar, that while Mr.
Stryver was a glib man, and an unscrupulous, and a ready,
and a bold, he had not that faculty of extracting the
essence from a heap of statements, which is among the
most striking and necessary of the advocate's
accomplishments. But, a remarkable improvement came upon
him as to this. The more business he got, the greater his
power seemed to grow of getting at its pith and marrow;
and however late at night he sat carousing with Sydney
Carton, he always had his points at his fingers' ends in
the morning.
Sydney Carton, idlest and most unpromising of men,
was Stryver's great ally. What the two drank together,
between Hilary Term and Michaelmas, might have floated a
king's ship. Stryver never had a case in hand, anywhere,
but Carton was there, with his hands in his pockets,
staring at the ceiling of the court; they went the same
Circuit, and even there they prolonged their usual orgies
late into the night, and Carton was rumoured to be seen
at broad day, going home stealthily and unsteadily to his
lodgings, like a dissipated cat. At last, it began to get
about, among such as were interested in the matter, that
although Sydney Carton would never be a lion, he was an
amazingly good jackal, and that he rendered suit and
service to Stryver in that humble capacity.
"Ten o'clock, sir," said the man at the tavern,
whom he had charged to wake him--"ten o'clock,
sir."
"WHAT'S the matter?"
"Ten o'clock, sir."
"What do you mean? Ten o'clock at night?"
"Yes, sir. Your honour told me to call you."
"Oh! I remember. Very well, very well."
After a few dull efforts to get to sleep again,
which the man dexterously combated by stirring the fire
continuously for five minutes, he got up, tossed his hat
on, and walked out. He turned into the Temple, and,
having revived himself by twice pacing the pavements of
King's Bench-walk and Paper-buildings, turned into the
Stryver chambers.
The Stryver clerk, who never assisted at these
conferences, had gone home, and the Stryver principal
opened the door. He had his slippers on, and a loose
bed-gown, and his throat was bare for his greater ease.
He had that rather wild, strained, seared marking about
the eyes, which may be observed in all free livers of his
class, from the portrait of Jeffries downward, and which
can be traced, under various disguises of Art, through
the portraits of every Drinking Age.
"You are a little late, Memory," said
Stryver.
"About the usual time; it may be a quarter of an
hour later."
They went into a dingy room lined with books and
littered with papers, where there was a blazing fire. A
kettle steamed upon the hob, and in the midst of the
wreck of papers a table shone, with plenty of wine upon
it, and brandy, and rum, and sugar, and lemons.
"You have had your bottle, I perceive,
Sydney."
"Two to-night, I think. I have been dining with the
day's client; or seeing him dine--it's all one!"
"That was a rare point, Sydney, that you brought to
bear upon the identification. How did you come by it?
When did it strike you?"
"I thought he was rather a handsome fellow, and I
thought I should have been much the same sort of fellow,
if I had had any luck."
Mr. Stryver laughed till he shook his precocious
paunch.
"You and your luck, Sydney! Get to work, get to
work."
Sullenly enough, the jackal loosened his dress,
went into an adjoining room, and came back with a large
jug of cold water, a basin, and a towel or two. Steeping
the towels in the water, and partially wringing them out,
he folded them on his head in a manner hideous to behold,
sat down at the table, and said, "Now I am ready!"
"Not much boiling down to be done to-night,
Memory," said Mr. Stryver, gaily, as he looked among his
papers.
"How much?"
"Only two sets of them."
"Give me the worst first."
"There they are, Sydney. Fire away!"
The lion then composed himself on his back on a
sofa on one side of the drinking-table, while the jackal
sat at his own paper-bestrewn table proper, on the other
side of it, with the bottles and glasses ready to his
hand. Both resorted to the drinking-table without stint,
but each in a different way; the lion for the most part
reclining with his hands in his waistband, looking at the
fire, or occasionally flirting with some lighter
document; the jackal, with knitted brows and intent face,
so deep in his task, that his eyes did not even follow
the hand he stretched out for his glass--which often
groped about, for a minute or more, before it found the
glass for his lips. Two or three times, the matter in
hand became so knotty, that the jackal found it
imperative on him to get up, and steep his towels anew.
From these pilgrimages to the jug and basin, he returned
with such eccentricities of damp headgear as no words can
describe; which were made the more ludicrous by his
anxious gravity.
At length the jackal had got together a compact
repast for the lion, and proceeded to offer it to him.
The lion took it with care and caution, made his
selections from it, and his remarks upon it, and the
jackal assisted both. When the repast was fully
discussed, the lion put his hands in his waistband again,
and lay down to mediate. The jackal then invigorated
himself with a bum for his throttle, and a fresh
application to his head, and applied himself to the
collection of a second meal; this was administered to the
lion in the same manner, and was not disposed of until
the clocks struck three in the morning.
"And now we have done, Sydney, fill a bumper of
punch," said Mr. Stryver.
The jackal removed the towels from his head, which
had been steaming again, shook himself, yawned, shivered,
and complied.
"You were very sound, Sydney, in the matter of
those crown witnesses to-day. Every question
told."
"I always am sound; am I not?"
"I don't gainsay it. What has roughened your
temper? Put some punch to it and smooth it again."
With a deprecatory grunt, the jackal again
complied.
"The old Sydney Carton of old Shrewsbury School,"
said Stryver, nodding his head over him as he reviewed
him in the present and the past, "the old seesaw Sydney.
Up one minute and down the next; now in spirits and now
in despondency!"
"Ah!" returned the other, sighing: "yes! The same
Sydney, with the same luck. Even then, I did exercises
for other boys, and seldom did my own.
"And why not?"
"God knows. It was my way, I suppose."
He sat, with his hands in his pockets and his legs
stretched out before him, looking at the fire.
"Carton," said his friend, squaring himself at him
with a bullying air, as if the fire-grate had been the
furnace in which sustained endeavour was forged, and the
one delicate thing to be done for the old Sydney Carton
of old Shrewsbury School was to shoulder him into it,
"your way is, and always was, a lame way. You summon no
energy and purpose. Look at me."
"Oh, botheration!" returned Sydney, with a lighter
and more good- humoured laugh, "don't YOU be
moral!"
"How have I done what I have done?" said Stryver;
"how do I do what I do?"
"Partly through paying me to help you, I suppose.
But it's not worth your while to apostrophise me, or the
air, about it; what you want to do, you do. You were
always in the front rank, and I was always
behind."
"I had to get into the front rank; I was not born
there, was I?"
"I was not present at the ceremony; but my opinion
is you were," said Carton. At this, he laughed again, and
they both laughed.
"Before Shrewsbury, and at Shrewsbury, and ever
since Shrewsbury," pursued Carton, "you have fallen into
your rank, and I have fallen into mine. Even when we were
fellow-students in the Student-Quarter of Paris, picking
up French, and French law, and other French crumbs that
we didn't get much good of, you were always somewhere,
and I was always nowhere."
"And whose fault was that?"
"Upon my soul, I am not sure that it was not yours.
You were always driving and riving and shouldering and
passing, to that restless degree that I had no chance for
my life but in rust and repose. It's a gloomy thing,
however, to talk about one's own past, with the day
breaking. Turn me in some other direction before I
go."
"Well then! Pledge me to the pretty witness," said
Stryver, holding up his glass. "Are you turned in a
pleasant direction?"
Apparently not, for he became gloomy again.
"Pretty witness," he muttered, looking down into
his glass. "I have had enough of witnesses to-day and
to-night; who's your pretty witness?"
"The picturesque doctor's daughter, Miss
Manette."
"SHE pretty?"
"Is she not?"
"No."
"Why, man alive, she was the admiration of the
whole Court!"
"Rot the admiration of the whole Court! Who made
the Old Bailey a judge of beauty? She was a golden-haired
doll!"
"Do you know, Sydney," said Mr. Stryver, looking at
him with sharp eyes, and slowly drawing a hand across his
florid face: "do you know, I rather thought, at the time,
that you sympathised with the golden-haired doll, and
were quick to see what happened to the golden-haired
doll?"
"Quick to see what happened! If a girl, doll or no
doll, swoons within a yard or two of a man's nose, he can
see it without a perspective-glass. I pledge you, but I
deny the beauty. And now I'll have no more drink; I'll
get to bed."
When his host followed him out on the staircase
with a candle, to light him down the stairs, the day was
coldly looking in through its grimy windows. When he got
out of the house, the air was cold and sad, the dull sky
overcast, the river dark and dim, the whole scene like a
lifeless desert. And wreaths of dust were spinning round
and round before the morning blast, as if the desert-sand
had risen far away, and the first spray of it in its
advance had begun to overwhelm the city.
Waste forces within him, and a desert all around,
this man stood still on his way across a silent terrace,
and saw for a moment, lying in the wilderness before him,
a mirage of honourable ambition, self-denial, and
perseverance. In the fair city of this vision, there were
airy galleries from which the loves and graces looked
upon him, gardens in which the fruits of life hung
ripening, waters of Hope that sparkled in his sight. A
moment, and it was gone. Climbing to a high chamber in a
well of houses, he threw himself down in his clothes on a
neglected bed, and its pillow was wet with wasted
tears.
Sadly, sadly, the sun rose; it rose upon no sadder
sight than the man of good abilities and good emotions,
incapable of their directed exercise, incapable of his
own help and his own happiness, sensible of the blight on
him, and resigning himself to let it eat him away.
VI
Hundreds of People
The quiet lodgings of Doctor Manette were in a
quiet street-corner not far from Soho-square. On the
afternoon of a certain fine Sunday when the waves of four
months had roiled over the trial for treason, and carried
it, as to the public interest and memory, far out to sea,
Mr. Jarvis Lorry walked along the sunny streets from
Clerkenwell where he lived, on his way to dine with the
Doctor. After several relapses into business-absorption,
Mr. Lorry had become the Doctor's friend, and the quiet
street-corner was the sunny part of his life.
On this certain fine Sunday, Mr. Lorry walked
towards Soho, early in the afternoon, for three reasons
of habit. Firstly, because, on fine Sundays, he often
walked out, before dinner, with the Doctor and Lucie;
secondly, because, on unfavourable Sundays, he was
accustomed to be with them as the family friend, talking,
reading, looking out of window, and generally getting
through the day; thirdly, because he happened to have his
own little shrewd doubts to solve, and knew how the ways
of the Doctor's household pointed to that time as a
likely time for solving them.
A quainter corner than the corner where the Doctor
lived, was not to be found in London. There was no way
through it, and the front windows of the Doctor's
lodgings commanded a pleasant little vista of street that
had a congenial air of retirement on it. There were few
buildings then, north of the Oxford-road, and
forest-trees flourished, and wild flowers grew, and the
hawthorn blossomed, in the now vanished fields. As a
consequence, country airs circulated in Soho with
vigorous freedom, instead of languishing into the parish
like stray paupers without a settlement; and there was
many a good south wall, not far off, on which the peaches
ripened in their season.
The summer light struck into the corner brilliantly
in the earlier part of the day; but, when the streets
grew hot, the corner was in shadow, though not in shadow
so remote but that you could see beyond it into a glare
of brightness. It was a cool spot, staid but cheerful, a
wonderful place for echoes, and a very harbour from the
raging streets.
There ought to have been a tranquil bark in such an
anchorage, and there was. The Doctor occupied two floors
of a large stiff house, where several callings purported
to be pursued by day, but whereof little was audible any
day, and which was shunned by all of them at night. In a
building at the back, attainable by a courtyard where a
plane-tree rustled its green leaves, church-organs
claimed to be made, and silver to be chased, and likewise
gold to be beaten by some mysterious giant who had a
golden arm starting out of the wall of the front hall--as
if he had beaten himself precious, and menaced a similar
conversion of all visitors. Very little of these trades,
or of a lonely lodger rumoured to live up-stairs, or of a
dim coach-trimming maker asserted to have a
counting-house below, was ever heard or seen.
Occasionally, a stray workman putting his coat on,
traversed the hall, or a stranger peered about there, or
a distant clink was heard across the courtyard, or a
thump from the golden giant. These, however, were only
the exceptions required to prove the rule that the
sparrows in the plane-tree behind the house, and the
echoes in the corner before it, had their own way from
Sunday morning unto Saturday night.
Doctor Manette received such patients here as his
old reputation, and its revival in the floating whispers
of his story, brought him. His scientific knowledge, and
his vigilance and skill in conducting ingenious
experiments, brought him otherwise into moderate request,
and he earned as much as he wanted.
These things were within Mr. Jarvis Lorry's
knowledge, thoughts, and notice, when he rang the
door-bell of the tranquil house in the corner, on the
fine Sunday afternoon.
"Doctor Manette at home?"
Expected home.
"Miss Lucie at home?"
Expected home.
"Miss Pross at home?"
Possibly at home, but of a certainty impossible for
handmaid to anticipate intentions of Miss Pross, as to
admission or denial of the fact.
"As I am at home myself," said Mr. Lorry, "I'll go
upstairs."
Although the Doctor's daughter had known nothing of
the country of her birth, she appeared to have innately
derived from it that ability to make much of little
means, which is one of its most useful and most agreeable
characteristics. Simple as the furniture was, it was set
off by so many little adornments, of no value but for
their taste and fancy, that its effect was delightful.
The disposition of everything in the rooms, from the
largest object to the least; the arrangement of colours,
the elegant variety and contrast obtained by thrift in
trifles, by delicate hands, clear eyes, and good sense;
were at once so pleasant in themselves, and so expressive
of their originator, that, as Mr. Lorry stood looking
about him, the very chairs and tables seemed to ask him,
with something of that peculiar expression which he knew
so well by this time, whether he approved?
There were three rooms on a floor, and, the doors
by which they communicated being put open that the air
might pass freely through them all, Mr. Lorry, smilingly
observant of that fanciful resemblance which he detected
all around him, walked from one to another. The first was
the best room, and in it were Lucie's birds, and flowers,
and books, and desk, and work-table, and box of
water-colours; the second was the Doctor's
consulting-room, used also as the dining-room; the third,
changingly speckled by the rustle of the plane-tree in
the yard, was the Doctor's bedroom, and there, in a
corner, stood the disused shoemaker's bench and tray of
tools, much as it had stood on the fifth floor of the
dismal house by the wine-shop, in the suburb of Saint
Antoine in Paris.
"I wonder," said Mr. Lorry, pausing in his looking
about, "that he keeps that reminder of his sufferings
about him!"
"And why wonder at that?" was the abrupt inquiry
that made him start.
It proceeded from Miss Pross, the wild red woman,
strong of hand, whose acquaintance he had first made at
the Royal George Hotel at Dover, and had since
improved.
"I should have thought--" Mr. Lorry began.
"Pooh! You'd have thought!" said Miss Pross; and
Mr. Lorry left off.
"How do you do?" inquired that lady then--sharply,
and yet as if to express that she bore him no
malice.
"I am pretty well, I thank you," answered Mr.
Lorry, with meekness; "how are you?"
"Nothing to boast of," said Miss Pross.
"Indeed?"
"Ah! indeed!" said Miss Pross. "I am very much put
out about my Ladybird."
"Indeed?"
"For gracious sake say something else besides
`indeed,' or you'll fidget me to death," said Miss Pross:
whose character (dissociated from stature) was
shortness.
"Really, then?" said Mr. Lorry, as an
amendment.
"Really, is bad enough," returned Miss Pross, "but
better. Yes, I am very much put out."
"May I ask the cause?"
"I don't want dozens of people who are not at all
worthy of Ladybird, to come here looking after her," said
Miss Pross.
"DO dozens come for that purpose?"
"Hundreds," said Miss Pross.
It was characteristic of this lady (as of some
other people before her time and since) that whenever her
original proposition was questioned, she exaggerated
it.
"Dear me!" said Mr. Lorry, as the safest remark he
could think of.
"I have lived with the darling--or the darling has
lived with me, and paid me for it; which she certainly
should never have done, you may take your affidavit, if I
could have afforded to keep either myself or her for
nothing--since she was ten years old. And it's really
very hard," said Miss Pross.
Not seeing with precision what was very hard, Mr.
Lorry shook his head; using that important part of
himself as a sort of fairy cloak that would fit
anything.
"All sorts of people who are not in the least
degree worthy of the pet, are always turning up," said
Miss Pross. "When you began it--"
"_I_ began it, Miss Pross?"
"Didn't you? Who brought her father to
life?"
"Oh! If THAT was beginning it--" said Mr.
Lorry.
"It wasn't ending it, I suppose? I say, when you
began it, it was hard enough; not that I have any fault
to find with Doctor Manette, except that he is not worthy
of such a daughter, which is no imputation on him, for it
was not to be expected that anybody should be, under any
circumstances. But it ready is doubly and trebly hard to
have crowds and multitudes of people turning up after him
(I could have forgiven him), to take Ladybird's
affections away from me."
Mr. Lorry knew Miss Pross to be very jealous, but
he also knew her by this time to be, beneath the service
of her eccentricity, one of those unselfish
creatures--found only among women--who will, for pure
love and admiration, bind themselves willing slaves, to
youth when they have lost it, to beauty that they never
had, to accomplishments that they were never fortunate
enough to gain, to bright hopes that never shone upon
their own sombre lives. He knew enough of the world to
know that there is nothing in it better than the faithful
service of the heart; so rendered and so free from any
mercenary taint, he had such an exalted respect for it,
that in the retributive arrangements made by his own
mind--we all make such arrangements, more or less-- he
stationed Miss Pross much nearer to the lower Angels than
many ladies immeasurably better got up both by Nature and
Art, who had balances at Tellson's.
"There never was, nor will be, but one man worthy
of Ladybird," said Miss Pross; "and that was my brother
Solomon, if he hadn't made a mistake in life."
Here again: Mr. Lorry's inquiries into Miss Pross's
personal history had established the fact that her
brother Solomon was a heartless scoundrel who had
stripped her of everything she possessed, as a stake to
speculate with, and had abandoned her in her poverty for
evermore, with no touch of compunction. Miss Pross's
fidelity of belief in Solomon (deducting a mere trifle
for this slight mistake) was quite a serious matter with
Mr. Lorry, and had its weight in his good opinion of
her.
"As we happen to be alone for the moment, and are
both people of business," he said, when they had got back
to the drawing-room and had sat down there in friendly
relations, "let me ask you--does the Doctor, in talking
with Lucie, never refer to the shoemaking time,
yet?"
"Never."
"And yet keeps that bench and those tools beside
him?"
"Ah!" returned Miss Pross, shaking her head. "But I
don't say he don't refer to it within himself."
"Do you believe that he thinks of it much?"
"I do," said Miss Pross.
"Do you imagine--" Mr. Lorry had begun, when Miss
Pross took him up short with:
"Never imagine anything. Have no imagination at
all."
"I stand corrected; do you suppose--you go so far
as to suppose, sometimes?"
"Now and then," said Miss Pross.
"Do you suppose," Mr. Lorry went on, with a
laughing twinkle in his bright eye, as it looked kindly
at her, "that Doctor Manette has any theory of his own,
preserved through all those years, relative to the cause
of his being so oppressed; perhaps, even to the name of
his oppressor?"
"I don't suppose anything about it but what
Ladybird tells me."
"And that is--?"
"That she thinks he has."
"Now don't be angry at my asking all these
questions; because I am a mere dull man of business, and
you are a woman of business."
"Dull?" Miss Pross inquired, with placidity.
Rather wishing his modest adjective away, Mr. Lorry
replied, "No, no, no. Surely not. To return to
business:--Is it not remarkable that Doctor Manette,
unquestionably innocent of any crane as we are all well
assured he is, should never touch upon that question? I
will not say with me, though he had business relations
with me many years ago, and we are now intimate; I will
say with the fair daughter to whom he is so devotedly
attached, and who is so devotedly attached to him?
Believe me, Miss Pross, I don't approach the topic with
you, out of curiosity, but out of zealous
interest."
"Well! To the best of my understanding, and bad's
the best, you'll tell me," said Miss Pross, softened by
the tone of the apology, "he is afraid of the whole
subject."
"Afraid?"
"It's plain enough, I should think, why he may be.
It's a dreadful remembrance. Besides that, his loss of
himself grew out of it. Not knowing how he lost himself,
or how he recovered himself, he may never feel certain of
not losing himself again. That alone wouldn't make the
subject pleasant, I should think."
It was a profounder remark than Mr. Lorry had
looked for. "True," said he, "and fearful to reflect
upon. Yet, a doubt lurks in my mind, Miss Pross, whether
it is good for Doctor Manette to have that suppression
always shut up within him. Indeed, it is this doubt and
the uneasiness it sometimes causes me that has led me to
our present confidence."
"Can't be helped," said Miss Pross, shaking her
head. "Touch that string, and he instantly changes for
the worse. Better leave it alone. In short, must leave it
alone, like or no like. Sometimes, he gets up in the dead
of the night, and will be heard, by us overhead there,
walking up and down, walking up and down, in his room.
Ladybird has learnt to know then that his mind is walking
up and down, walking up and down, in his old prison. She
hurries to him, and they go on together, walking up and
down, walking up and down, until he is composed. But he
never says a word of the true reason of his restlessness,
to her, and she finds it best not to hint at it to him.
In silence they go walking up and down together, walking
up and down together, till her love and company have
brought him to himself."
Notwithstanding Miss Pross's denial of her own
imagination, there was a perception of the pain of being
monotonously haunted by one sad idea, in her repetition
of the phrase, walking up and down, which testified to
her possessing such a thing.
The corner has been mentioned as a wonderful corner
for echoes; it had begun to echo so resoundingly to the
tread of coming feet, that it seemed as though the very
mention of that weary pacing to and fro had set it
going.
"Here they are!" said Miss Pross, rising to break
up the conference; "and now we shall have hundreds of
people pretty soon!"
It was such a curious corner in its acoustical
properties, such a peculiar Ear of a place, that as Mr.
Lorry stood at the open window, looking for the father
and daughter whose steps he heard, he fancied they would
never approach. Not only would the echoes die away, as
though the steps had gone; but, echoes of other steps
that never came would be heard in their stead, and would
die away for good when they seemed close at hand.
However, father and daughter did at last appear, and Miss
Pross was ready at the street door to receive
them.
Miss Pross was a pleasant sight, albeit wild, and
red, and grim, taking off her darling's bonnet when she
came up-stairs, and touching it up with the ends of her
handkerchief, and blowing the dust off it, and folding
her mantle ready for laying by, and smoothing her rich
hair with as much pride as she could possibly have taken
in her own hair if she had been the vainest and
handsomest of women. Her darling was a pleasant sight
too, embracing her and thanking her, and protesting
against her taking so much trouble for her--which last
she only dared to do playfully, or Miss Pross, sorely
hurt, would have retired to her own chamber and cried.
The Doctor was a pleasant sight too, looking on at them,
and telling Miss Pross how she spoilt Lucie, in accents
and with eyes that had as much spoiling in them as Miss
Pross had, and would have had more if it were possible.
Mr. Lorry was a pleasant sight too, beaming at all this
in his little wig, and thanking his bachelor stars for
having lighted him in his declining years to a Home. But,
no Hundreds of people came to see the sights, and Mr.
Lorry looked in vain for the fulfilment of Miss Pross's
prediction.
Dinner-time, and still no Hundreds of people. In
the arrangements of the little household, Miss Pross took
charge of the lower regions, and always acquitted herself
marvellously. Her dinners, of a very modest quality, were
so well cooked and so well served, and so neat in their
contrivances, half English and half French, that nothing
could be better. Miss Pross's friendship being of the
thoroughly practical kind, she had ravaged Soho and the
adjacent provinces, in search of impoverished French,
who, tempted by shillings and half- crowns, would impart
culinary mysteries to her. From these decayed sons and
daughters of Gaul, she had acquired such wonderful arts,
that the woman and girl who formed the staff of domestics
regarded her as quite a Sorceress, or Cinderella's
Godmother: who would send out for a fowl, a rabbit, a
vegetable or two from the garden, and change them into
anything she pleased.
On Sundays, Miss Pross dined at the Doctor's table,
but on other days persisted in taking her meals at
unknown periods, either in the lower regions, or in her
own room on the second floor--a blue chamber, to which no
one but her Ladybird ever gained admittance. On this
occasion, Miss Pross, responding to Ladybird's pleasant
face and pleasant efforts to please her, unbent
exceedingly; so the dinner was very pleasant, too.
It was an oppressive day, and, after dinner, Lucie
proposed that the wine should be carried out under the
plane-tree, and they should sit there in the air. As
everything turned upon her, and revolved about her, they
went out under the plane-tree, and she carried the wine
down for the special benefit of Mr. Lorry. She had
installed herself, some time before, as Mr. Lorry's
cup-bearer; and while they sat under the plane-tree,
talking, she kept his glass replenished. Mysterious backs
and ends of houses peeped at them as they talked, and the
plane-tree whispered to them in its own way above their
heads.
Still, the Hundreds of people did not present
themselves. Mr. Darnay presented himself while they were
sitting under the plane-tree, but he was only One.
Doctor Manette received him kindly, and so did
Lucie. But, Miss Pross suddenly became afflicted with a
twitching in the head and body, and retired into the
house. She was not unfrequently the victim of this
disorder, and she called it, in familiar conversation, "a
fit of the jerks."
The Doctor was in his best condition, and looked
specially young. The resemblance between him and Lucie
was very strong at such times, and as they sat side by
side, she leaning on his shoulder, and he resting his arm
on the back of her chair, it was very agreeable to trace
the likeness.
He had been talking all day, on many subjects, and
with unusual vivacity. "Pray, Doctor Manette," said Mr.
Darnay, as they sat under the plane-tree--and he said it
in the natural pursuit of the topic in hand, which
happened to be the old buildings of London--"have you
seen much of the Tower?"
"Lucie and I have been there; but only casually. We
have seen enough of it, to know that it teems with
interest; little more."
"_I_ have been there, as you remember," said
Darnay, with a smile, though reddening a little angrily,
"in another character, and not in a character that gives
facilities for seeing much of it. They told me a curious
thing when I was there."
"What was that?" Lucie asked.
"In making some alterations, the workmen came upon
an old dungeon, which had been, for many years, built up
and forgotten. Every stone of its inner wall was covered
by inscriptions which had been carved by
prisoners--dates, names, complaints, and prayers. Upon a
corner stone in an angle of the wall, one prisoner, who
seemed to have gone to execution, had cut as his last
work, three letters. They were done with some very poor
instrument, and hurriedly, with an unsteady hand. At
first, they were read as D. I. C.; but, on being more
carefully examined, the last letter was found to be G.
There was no record or legend of any prisoner with those
initials, and many fruitless guesses were made what the
name could have been. At length, it was suggested that
the letters were not initials, but the complete word,
DiG. The floor was examined very carefully under the
inscription, and, in the earth beneath a stone, or tile,
or some fragment of paving, were found the ashes of a
paper, mingled with the ashes of a small leathern case or
bag. What the unknown prisoner had written will never be
read, but he had written something, and hidden it away to
keep it from the gaoler."
"My father," exclaimed Lucie, "you are ill!"
He had suddenly started up, with his hand to his
head. His manner and his look quite terrified them
all.
"No, my dear, not ill. There are large drops of
rain falling, and they made me start. We had better go
in."
He recovered himself almost instantly. Rain was
really falling in large drops, and he showed the back of
his hand with rain-drops on it. But, he said not a single
word in reference to the discovery that had been told of,
and, as they went into the house, the business eye of Mr.
Lorry either detected, or fancied it detected, on his
face, as it turned towards Charles Darnay, the same
singular look that had been upon it when it turned
towards him in the passages of the Court House.
He recovered himself so quickly, however, that Mr.
Lorry had doubts of his business eye. The arm of the
golden giant in the hall was not more steady than he was,
when he stopped under it to remark to them that he was
not yet proof against slight surprises (if he ever would
be), and that the rain had startled him.
Tea-time, and Miss Pross making tea, with another
fit of the jerks upon her, and yet no Hundreds of people.
Mr. Carton had lounged in, but he made only Two.
The night was so very sultry, that although they
sat with doors and windows open, they were overpowered by
heat. When the tea-table was done with, they all moved to
one of the windows, and looked out into the heavy
twilight. Lucie sat by her father; Darnay sat beside her;
Carton leaned against a window. The curtains were long
and white, and some of the thunder-gusts that whirled
into the corner, caught them up to the ceiling, and waved
them like spectral wings.
"The rain-drops are still falling, large, heavy,
and few," said Doctor Manette. "It comes slowly."
"It comes surely," said Carton.
They spoke low, as people watching and waiting
mostly do; as people in a dark room, watching and waiting
for Lightning, always do.
There was a great hurry in the streets of people
speeding away to get shelter before the storm broke; the
wonderful corner for echoes resounded with the echoes of
footsteps coming and going, yet not a footstep was
there.
"A multitude of people, and yet a solitude!" said
Darnay, when they had listened for a while.
"Is it not impressive, Mr. Darnay?" asked Lucie.
"Sometimes, I have sat here of an evening, until I have
fancied--but even the shade of a foolish fancy makes me
shudder to-night, when all is so black and
solemn--"
"Let us shudder too. We may know what it
is."
"It will seem nothing to you. Such whims are only
impressive as we originate them, I think; they are not to
be communicated. I have sometimes sat alone here of an
evening, listening, until I have made the echoes out to
be the echoes of all the footsteps that are coming
by-and-bye into our lives."
"There is a great crowd coming one day into our
lives, if that be so," Sydney Carton struck in, in his
moody way.
The footsteps were incessant, and the hurry of them
became more and more rapid. The corner echoed and
re-echoed with the tread of feet; some, as it seemed,
under the windows; some, as it seemed, in the room; some
coming, some going, some breaking off, some stopping
altogether; all in the distant streets, and not one
within sight.
"Are all these footsteps destined to come to all of
us, Miss Manette, or are we to divide them among
us?"
"I don't know, Mr. Darnay; I told you it was a
foolish fancy, but you asked for it. When I have yielded
myself to it, I have been alone, and then I have imagined
them the footsteps of the people who are to come into my
life, and my father's."
"I take them into mine!" said Carton. "_I_ ask no
questions and make no stipulations. There is a great
crowd bearing down upon us, Miss Manette, and I see
them--by the Lightning." He added the last words, after
there had been a vivid flash which had shown him lounging
in the window.
"And I hear them!" he added again, after a peal of
thunder. "Here they come, fast, fierce, and
furious!"
It was the rush and roar of rain that he typified,
and it stopped him, for no voice could be heard in it. A
memorable storm of thunder and lightning broke with that
sweep of water, and there was not a moment's interval in
crash, and fire, and rain, until after the moon rose at
midnight.
The great bell of Saint Paul's was striking one in
the cleared air, when Mr. Lorry, escorted by Jerry,
high-booted and bearing a lantern, set forth on his
return-passage to Clerkenwell. There were solitary
patches of road on the way between Soho and Clerkenwell,
and Mr. Lorry, mindful of foot-pads, always retained
Jerry for this service: though it was usually performed a
good two hours earlier.
"What a night it has been! Almost a night, Jerry,"
said Mr. Lorry, "to bring the dead out of their
graves."
"I never see the night myself, master--nor yet I
don't expect to-- what would do that," answered
Jerry.
"Good night, Mr. Carton," said the man of business.
"Good night, Mr. Darnay. Shall we ever see such a night
again, together!"
Perhaps. Perhaps, see the great crowd of people
with its rush and roar, bearing down upon them,
too.
VII
Monseigneur in Town
Monseigneur, one of the great lords in power at the
Court, held his fortnightly reception in his grand hotel
in Paris. Monseigneur was in his inner room, his
sanctuary of sanctuaries, the Holiest of Holiests to the
crowd of worshippers in the suite of rooms without.
Monseigneur was about to take his chocolate. Monseigneur
could swallow a great many things with ease, and was by
some few sullen minds supposed to be rather rapidly
swallowing France; but, his morning's chocolate could not
so much as get into the throat of Monseigneur, without
the aid of four strong men besides the Cook.
Yes. It took four men, all four ablaze with
gorgeous decoration, and the Chief of them unable to
exist with fewer than two gold watches in his pocket,
emulative of the noble and chaste fashion set by
Monseigneur, to conduct the happy chocolate to
Monseigneur's lips. One lacquey carried the chocolate-pot
into the sacred presence; a second, milled and frothed
the chocolate with the little instrument he bore for that
function; a third, presented the favoured napkin; a
fourth (he of the two gold watches), poured the chocolate
out. It was impossible for Monseigneur to dispense with
one of these attendants on the chocolate and hold his
high place under the admiring Heavens. Deep would have
been the blot upon his escutcheon if his chocolate had
been ignobly waited on by only three men; he must have
died of two.
Monseigneur had been out at a little supper last
night, where the Comedy and the Grand Opera were
charmingly represented. Monseigneur was out at a little
supper most nights, with fascinating company. So polite
and so impressible was Monseigneur, that the Comedy and
the Grand Opera had far more influence with him in the
tiresome articles of state affairs and state secrets,
than the needs of all France. A happy circumstance for
France, as the like always is for all countries similarly
favoured!--always was for England (by way of example), in
the regretted days of the merry Stuart who sold
it.
Monseigneur had one truly noble idea of general
public business, which was, to let everything go on in
its own way; of particular public business, Monseigneur
had the other truly noble idea that it must all go his
way--tend to his own power and pocket. Of his pleasures,
general and particular, Monseigneur had the other truly
noble idea, that the world was made for them. The text of
his order (altered from the original by only a pronoun,
which is not much) ran: "The earth and the fulness
thereof are mine, saith Monseigneur."
Yet, Monseigneur had slowly found that vulgar
embarrassments crept into his affairs, both private and
public; and he had, as to both classes of affairs, allied
himself perforce with a Farmer-General. As to finances
public, because Monseigneur could not make anything at
all of them, and must consequently let them out to
somebody who could; as to finances private, because
Farmer-Generals were rich, and Monseigneur, after
generations of great luxury and expense, was growing
poor. Hence Monseigneur had taken his sister from a
convent, while there was yet time to ward off the
impending veil, the cheapest garment she could wear, and
had bestowed her as a prize upon a very rich
Farmer-General, poor in family. Which Farmer-General,
carrying an appropriate cane with a golden apple on the
top of it, was now among the company in the outer rooms,
much prostrated before by mankind--always excepting
superior mankind of the blood of Monseigneur, who, his
own wife included, looked down upon him with the loftiest
contempt.
A sumptuous man was the Farmer-General. Thirty
horses stood in his stables, twenty-four male domestics
sat in his halls, six body-women waited on his wife. As
one who pretended to do nothing but plunder and forage
where he could, the Farmer-General--howsoever his
matrimonial relations conduced to social morality--was at
least the greatest reality among the personages who
attended at the hotel of Monseigneur that day.
For, the rooms, though a beautiful scene to look
at, and adorned with every device of decoration that the
taste and skill of the time could achieve, were, in
truth, not a sound business; considered with any
reference to the scarecrows in the rags and nightcaps
elsewhere (and not so far off, either, but that the
watching towers of Notre Dame, almost equidistant from
the two extremes, could see them both), they would have
been an exceedingly uncomfortable business--if that could
have been anybody's business, at the house of
Monseigneur. Military officers destitute of military
knowledge; naval officers with no idea of a ship; civil
officers without a notion of affairs; brazen
ecclesiastics, of the worst world worldly, with sensual
eyes, loose tongues, and looser lives; all totally unfit
for their several callings, all lying horribly in
pretending to belong to them, but all nearly or remotely
of the order of Monseigneur, and therefore foisted on all
public employments from which anything was to be got;
these were to be told off by the score and the score.
People not immediately connected with Monseigneur or the
State, yet equally unconnected with anything that was
real, or with lives passed in travelling by any straight
road to any true earthly end, were no less abundant.
Doctors who made great fortunes out of dainty remedies
for imaginary disorders that never existed, smiled upon
their courtly patients in the ante-chambers of
Monseigneur. Projectors who had discovered every kind of
remedy for the little evils with which the State was
touched, except the remedy of setting to work in earnest
to root out a single sin, poured their distracting babble
into any ears they could lay hold of, at the reception of
Monseigneur. Unbelieving Philosophers who were
remodelling the world with words, and making card-towers
of Babel to scale the skies with, talked with Unbelieving
Chemists who had an eye on the transmutation of metals,
at this wonderful gathering accumulated by Monseigneur.
Exquisite gentlemen of the finest breeding, which was at
that remarkable time--and has been since--to be known by
its fruits of indifference to every natural subject of
human interest, were in the most exemplary state of
exhaustion, at the hotel of Monseigneur. Such homes had
these various notabilities left behind them in the fine
world of Paris, that the spies among the assembled
devotees of Monseigneur--forming a goodly half of the
polite company--would have found it hard to discover
among the angels of that sphere one solitary wife, who,
in her manners and appearance, owned to being a Mother.
Indeed, except for the mere act of bringing a troublesome
creature into this world-- which does not go far towards
the realisation of the name of mother-- there was no such
thing known to the fashion. Peasant women kept the
unfashionable babies close, and brought them up, and
charming grandmammas of sixty dressed and supped as at
twenty.
The leprosy of unreality disfigured every human
creature in attendance upon Monseigneur. In the outermost
room were half a dozen exceptional people who had had,
for a few years, some vague misgiving in them that things
in general were going rather wrong. As a promising way of
setting them right, half of the half-dozen had become
members of a fantastic sect of Convulsionists, and were
even then considering within themselves whether they
should foam, rage, roar, and turn cataleptic on the
spot--thereby setting up a highly intelligible
finger-post to the Future, for Monseigneur's guidance.
Besides these Dervishes, were other three who had rushed
into another sect, which mended matters with a jargon
about "the Centre of Truth:" holding that Man had got out
of the Centre of Truth--which did not need much
demonstration--but had not got out of the Circumference,
and that he was to be kept from flying out of the
Circumference, and was even to be shoved back into the
Centre, by fasting and seeing of spirits. Among these,
accordingly, much discoursing with spirits went on--and
it did a world of good which never became
manifest.
But, the comfort was, that all the company at the
grand hotel of Monseigneur were perfectly dressed. If the
Day of Judgment had only been ascertained to be a dress
day, everybody there would have been eternally correct.
Such frizzling and powdering and sticking up of hair,
such delicate complexions artificially preserved and
mended, such gallant swords to look at, and such delicate
honour to the sense of smell, would surely keep anything
going, for ever and ever. The exquisite gentlemen of the
finest breeding wore little pendent trinkets that chinked
as they languidly moved; these golden fetters rang like
precious little bells; and what with that ringing, and
with the rustle of silk and brocade and fine linen, there
was a flutter in the air that fanned Saint Antoine and
his devouring hunger far away.
Dress was the one unfailing talisman and charm used
for keeping all things in their places. Everybody was
dressed for a Fancy Ball that was never to leave off.
From the Palace of the Tuileries, through Monseigneur and
the whole Court, through the Chambers, the Tribunals of
Justice, and all society (except the scarecrows), the
Fancy Ball descended to the Common Executioner: who, in
pursuance of the charm, was required to officiate
"frizzled, powdered, in a gold-laced coat, pumps, and
white silk stockings." At the gallows and the wheel--the
axe was a rarity--Monsieur Paris, as it was the episcopal
mode among his brother Professors of the provinces,
Monsieur Orleans, and the rest, to call him, presided in
this dainty dress. And who among the company at
Monseigneur's reception in that seventeen hundred and
eightieth year of our Lord, could possibly doubt, that a
system rooted in a frizzled hangman, powdered,
gold-laced, pumped, and white-silk stockinged, would see
the very stars out!
Monseigneur having eased his four men of their
burdens and taken his chocolate, caused the doors of the
Holiest of Holiests to be thrown open, and issued forth.
Then, what submission, what cringing and fawning, what
servility, what abject humiliation! As to bowing down in
body and spirit, nothing in that way was left for
Heaven--which may have been one among other reasons why
the worshippers of Monseigneur never troubled it.
Bestowing a word of promise here and a smile there,
a whisper on one happy slave and a wave of the hand on
another, Monseigneur affably passed through his rooms to
the remote region of the Circumference of Truth. There,
Monseigneur turned, and came back again, and so in due
course of time got himself shut up in his sanctuary by
the chocolate sprites, and was seen no more.
The show being over, the flutter in the air became
quite a little storm, and the precious little bells went
ringing downstairs. There was soon but one person left of
all the crowd, and he, with his hat under his arm and his
snuff-box in his hand, slowly passed among the mirrors on
his way out.
"I devote you," said this person, stopping at the
last door on his way, and turning in the direction of the
sanctuary, "to the Devil!"
With that, he shook the snuff from his fingers as
if he had shaken the dust from his feet, and quietly
walked downstairs.
He was a man of about sixty, handsomely dressed,
haughty in manner, and with a face like a fine mask. A
face of a transparent paleness; every feature in it
clearly defined; one set expression on it. The nose,
beautifully formed otherwise, was very slightly pinched
at the top of each nostril. In those two compressions, or
dints, the only little change that the face ever showed,
resided. They persisted in changing colour sometimes, and
they would be occasionally dilated and contracted by
something like a faint pulsation; then, they gave a look
of treachery, and cruelty, to the whole countenance.
Examined with attention, its capacity of helping such a
look was to be found in the line of the mouth, and the
lines of the orbits of the eyes, being much too
horizontal and thin; still, in the effect of the face
made, it was a handsome face, and a remarkable
one.
Its owner went downstairs into the courtyard, got
into his carriage, and drove away. Not many people had
talked with him at the reception; he had stood in a
little space apart, and Monseigneur might have been
warmer in his manner. It appeared, under the
circumstances, rather agreeable to him to see the common
people dispersed before his horses, and often barely
escaping from being run down. His man drove as if he were
charging an enemy, and the furious recklessness of the
man brought no check into the face, or to the lips, of
the master. The complaint had sometimes made itself
audible, even in that deaf city and dumb age, that, in
the narrow streets without footways, the fierce patrician
custom of hard driving endangered and maimed the mere
vulgar in a barbarous manner. But, few cared enough for
that to think of it a second time, and, in this matter,
as in all others, the common wretches were left to get
out of their difficulties as they could.
With a wild rattle and clatter, and an inhuman
abandonment of consideration not easy to be understood in
these days, the carriage dashed through streets and swept
round corners, with women screaming before it, and men
clutching each other and clutching children out of its
way. At last, swooping at a street corner by a fountain,
one of its wheels came to a sickening little jolt, and
there was a loud cry from a number of voices, and the
horses reared and plunged.
But for the latter inconvenience, the carriage
probably would not have stopped; carriages were often
known to drive on, and leave their wounded behind, and
why not? But the frightened valet had got down in a
hurry, and there were twenty hands at the horses'
bridles.
"What has gone wrong?" said Monsieur, calmly
looking out.
A tall man in a nightcap had caught up a bundle
from among the feet of the horses, and had laid it on the
basement of the fountain, and was down in the mud and
wet, howling over it like a wild animal.
"Pardon, Monsieur the Marquis!" said a ragged and
submissive man, "it is a child."
"Why does he make that abominable noise? Is it his
child?"
"Excuse me, Monsieur the Marquis--it is a
pity--yes."
The fountain was a little removed; for the street
opened, where it was, into a space some ten or twelve
yards square. As the tall man suddenly got up from the
ground, and came running at the carriage, Monsieur the
Marquis clapped his hand for an instant on his
sword-hilt.
"Killed!" shrieked the man, in wild desperation,
extending both arms at their length above his head, and
staring at him. "Dead!"
The people closed round, and looked at Monsieur the
Marquis. There was nothing revealed by the many eyes that
looked at him but watchfulness and eagerness; there was
no visible menacing or anger. Neither did the people say
anything; after the first cry, they had been silent, and
they remained so. The voice of the submissive man who had
spoken, was flat and tame in its extreme submission.
Monsieur the Marquis ran his eyes over them all, as if
they had been mere rats come out of their holes.
He took out his purse.
"It is extraordinary to me," said he, "that you
people cannot take care of yourselves and your children.
One or the other of you is for ever in the, way. How do I
know what injury you have done my horses. See! Give him
that."
He threw out a gold coin for the valet to pick up,
and all the heads craned forward that all the eyes might
look down at it as it fell. The tall man called out again
with a most unearthly cry, "Dead!"
He was arrested by the quick arrival of another
man, for whom the rest made way. On seeing him, the
miserable creature fell upon his shoulder, sobbing and
crying, and pointing to the fountain, where some women
were stooping over the motionless bundle, and moving
gently about it. They were as silent, however, as the
men.
"I know all, I know all," said the last comer. "Be
a brave man, my Gaspard! It is better for the poor little
plaything to die so, than to live. It has died in a
moment without pain. Could it have lived an hour as
happily?"
"You are a philosopher, you there," said the,
Marquis, smiling. "How do they call you?"
"They call me Defarge."
"Of what trade?"
"Monsieur the Marquis, vendor of wine."
"Pick up that, philosopher and vendor of wine,"
said the Marquis, throwing him another gold coin, "and
spend it as you will. The horses there; are they
right?"
Without deigning to look at the assemblage a second
time, Monsieur the Marquis leaned back in his seat, and
was just being driven away with the air of a gentleman
who had accidentally broke some common thing, and had
paid for it, and could afford to pay for it; when his
ease was suddenly disturbed by a coin flying into his
carriage, and ringing on its floor.
"Hold!" said Monsieur the Marquis. "Hold the
horses! Who threw that?"
He looked to the spot where Defarge the vendor of
wine had stood, a moment before; but the wretched father
was grovelling on his face on the pavement in that spot,
and the figure that stood beside him was the figure of a
dark stout woman, knitting.
"You dogs!" said the Marquis, but smoothly, and
with an unchanged front, except as to the spots on his
nose: "I would ride over any of you very willingly, and
exterminate you from the earth. If I knew which rascal
threw at the carriage, and if that brigand were
sufficiently near it, he should be crushed under the
wheels."
So cowed was their condition, and so long and hard
their experience of what such a man could do to them,
within the law and beyond it, that not a voice, or a
hand, or even an eye was raised. Among the men, not one.
But the woman who stood knitting looked up steadily, and
looked the Marquis in the face. It was not for his
dignity to notice it; his contemptuous eyes passed over
her, and over all the other rats; and he leaned back in
his seat again, and gave the word "Go on!"
He was driven on, and other carriages came whirling
by in quick succession; the Minister, the
State-Projector, the Farmer-General, the Doctor, the
Lawyer, the Ecclesiastic, the Grand Opera, the Comedy,
the whole Fancy Ball in a bright continuous flow, came
whirling by. The rats had crept out of their holes to
look on, and they remained looking on for hours; soldiers
and police often passing between them and the spectacle,
and making a barrier behind which they slunk, and through
which they peeped. The father had long ago taken up his
bundle and bidden himself away with it, when the women
who had tended the bundle while it lay on the base of the
fountain, sat there watching the running of the water and
the rolling of the Fancy Ball--when the one woman who had
stood conspicuous, knitting, still knitted on with the
steadfastness of Fate. The water of the fountain ran, the
swift river ran, the day ran into evening, so much life
in the city ran into death according to rule, time and
tide waited for no man, the rats were sleeping close
together in their dark holes again, the Fancy Ball was
lighted up at supper, all things ran their course.
VIII
Monseigneur in the Country
A beautiful landscape, with the corn bright in it,
but not abundant. Patches of poor rye where com should
have been, patches of poor peas and beans, patches of
most coarse vegetable substitutes for wheat. On inanimate
nature, as on the men and women who cultivated it, a
prevalent tendency towards an appearance of vegetating
unwillingly--a dejected disposition to give up, and
wither away.
Monsieur the Marquis in his travelling carriage
(which might have been lighter), conducted by four
post-horses and two postilions, fagged up a steep hill. A
blush on the countenance of Monsieur the Marquis was no
impeachment of his high breeding; it was not from within;
it was occasioned by an external circumstance beyond his
control--the setting sun.
The sunset struck so brilliantly into the
travelling carriage when it gained the hill-top, that its
occupant was steeped in crimson. "It will die out," said
Monsieur the Marquis, glancing at his hands,
"directly."
In effect, the sun was so low that it dipped at the
moment. When the heavy drag had been adjusted to the
wheel, and the carriage slid down hill, with a cinderous
smell, in a cloud of dust, the red glow departed quickly;
the sun and the Marquis going down together, there was no
glow left when the drag was taken off.
But, there remained a broken country, bold and
open, a little village at the bottom of the hill, a broad
sweep and rise beyond it, a church- tower, a windmill, a
forest for the chase, and a crag with a fortress on it
used as a prison. Round upon all these darkening objects
as the night drew on, the Marquis looked, with the air of
one who was coming near home.
The village had its one poor street, with its poor
brewery, poor tannery, poor tavern, poor stable-yard for
relays of post-horses, poor fountain, all usual poor
appointments. It had its poor people too. All its people
were poor, and many of them were sitting at their doors,
shredding spare onions and the like for supper, while
many were at the fountain, washing leaves, and grasses,
and any such small yieldings of the earth that could be
eaten. Expressive sips of what made them poor, were not
wanting; the tax for the state, the tax for the church,
the tax for the lord, tax local and tax general, were to
be paid here and to be paid there, according to solemn
inscription in the little village, until the wonder was,
that there was any village left unswallowed.
Few children were to be seen, and no dogs. As to
the men and women, their choice on earth was stated in
the prospect--Life on the lowest terms that could sustain
it, down in the little village under the mill; or
captivity and Death in the dominant prison on the
crag.
Heralded by a courier in advance, and by the
cracking of his postilions' whips, which twined
snake-like about their heads in the evening air, as if he
came attended by the Furies, Monsieur the Marquis drew up
in his travelling carriage at the posting-house gate. It
was hard by the fountain, and the peasants suspended
their operations to look at him. He looked at them, and
saw in them, without knowing it, the slow sure filing
down of misery-worn face and figure, that was to make the
meagreness of Frenchmen an English superstition which
should survive the truth through the best part of a
hundred years.
Monsieur the Marquis cast his eyes over the
submissive faces that drooped before him, as the like of
himself had drooped before Monseigneur of the Court--only
the difference was, that these faces drooped merely to
suffer and not to propitiate--when a grizzled mender of
the roads joined the group.
"Bring me hither that fellow!" said the Marquis to
the courier.
The fellow was brought, cap in hand, and the other
fellows closed round to look and listen, in the manner of
the people at the Paris fountain.
"I passed you on the road?"
"Monseigneur, it is true. I had the honour of being
passed on the road."
"Coming up the hill, and at the top of the hill,
both?"
"Monseigneur, it is true."
"What did you look at, so fixedly?"
"Monseigneur, I looked at the man."
He stooped a little, and with his tattered blue cap
pointed under the carriage. All his fellows stooped to
look under the carriage.
"What man, pig? And why look there?"
"Pardon, Monseigneur; he swung by the chain of the
shoe--the drag."
"Who?" demanded the traveller.
"Monseigneur, the man."
"May the Devil carry away these idiots! How do you
can the man? You know all the men of this part of the
country. Who was he?"
"Your clemency, Monseigneur! He was not of this
part of the country. Of all the days of my life, I never
saw him."
"Swinging by the chain? To be suffocated?"
"With your gracious permission, that was the wonder
of it, Monseigneur. His head hanging over--like
this!"
He turned himself sideways to the carriage, and
leaned back, with his face thrown up to the sky, and his
head hanging down; then recovered himself, fumbled with
his cap, and made a bow.
"What was he like?"
"Monseigneur, he was whiter than the miller. All
covered with dust, white as a spectre, tall as a
spectre!"
The picture produced an immense sensation in the
little crowd; but all eyes, without comparing notes with
other eyes, looked at Monsieur the Marquis. Perhaps, to
observe whether he had any spectre on his
conscience.
"Truly, you did well," said the Marquis,
felicitously sensible that such vermin were not to ruffle
him, "to see a thief accompanying my carriage, and not
open that great mouth of yours. Bah! Put him aside,
Monsieur Gabelle!"
Monsieur Gabelle was the Postmaster, and some other
taxing functionary united; he had come out with great
obsequiousness to assist at this examination, and had
held the examined by the drapery of his arm in an
official manner.
"Bah! Go aside!" said Monsieur Gabelle.
"Lay hands on this stranger if he seeks to lodge in
your village to-night, and be sure that his business is
honest, Gabelle."
"Monseigneur, I am flattered to devote myself to
your orders."
"Did he run away, fellow?--where is that
Accursed?"
The accursed was already under the carriage with
some half-dozen particular friends, pointing out the
chain with his blue cap. Some half-dozen other particular
friends promptly hauled him out, and presented him
breathless to Monsieur the Marquis.
"Did the man run away, Dolt, when we stopped for
the drag?"
"Monseigneur, he precipitated himself over the
hill-side, head first, as a person plunges into the
river."
"See to it, Gabelle. Go on!"
The half-dozen who were peering at the chain were
still among the wheels, like sheep; the wheels turned so
suddenly that they were lucky to save their skins and
bones; they had very little else to save, or they might
not have been so fortunate.
The burst with which the carriage started out of
the village and up the rise beyond, was soon checked by
the steepness of the hill. Gradually, it subsided to a
foot pace, swinging and lumbering upward among the many
sweet scents of a summer night. The postilions, with a
thousand gossamer gnats circling about them in lieu of
the Furies, quietly mended the points to the lashes of
their whips; the valet walked by the horses; the courier
was audible, trotting on ahead into the dun
distance.
At the steepest point of the hill there was a
little burial-ground, with a Cross and a new large figure
of Our Saviour on it; it was a poor figure in wood, done
by some inexperienced rustic carver, but he had studied
the figure from the life--his own life, maybe--for it was
dreadfully spare and thin.
To this distressful emblem of a great distress that
had long been growing worse, and was not at its worst, a
woman was kneeling. She turned her head as the carriage
came up to her, rose quickly, and presented herself at
the carriage-door.
"It is you, Monseigneur! Monseigneur, a
petition."
With an exclamation of impatience, but with his
unchangeable face, Monseigneur looked out.
"How, then! What is it? Always petitions!"
"Monseigneur. For the love of the great God! My
husband, the forester."
"What of your husband, the forester? Always the
same with you people. He cannot pay something?"
"He has paid all, Monseigneur. He is dead."
"Well! He is quiet. Can I restore him to
you?"
"Alas, no, Monseigneur! But he lies yonder, under a
little heap of poor grass."
"Well?"
"Monseigneur, there are so many little heaps of
poor grass?"
"Again, well?"
She looked an old woman, but was young. Her manner
was one of passionate grief; by turns she clasped her
veinous and knotted hands together with wild energy, and
laid one of them on the carriage-door --tenderly,
caressingly, as if it had been a human breast, and could
be expected to feel the appealing touch.
"Monseigneur, hear me! Monseigneur, hear my
petition! My husband died of want; so many die of want;
so many more will die of want."
"Again, well? Can I feed them?"
"Monseigneur, the good God knows; but I don't ask
it. My petition is, that a morsel of stone or wood, with
my husband's name, may be placed over him to show where
he lies. Otherwise, the place will be quickly forgotten,
it will never be found when I am dead of the same malady,
I shall be laid under some other heap of poor grass.
Monseigneur, they are so many, they increase so fast,
there is so much want. Monseigneur! Monseigneur!"
The valet had put her away from the door, the
carriage had broken into a brisk trot, the postilions had
quickened the pace, she was left far behind, and
Monseigneur, again escorted by the Furies, was rapidly
diminishing the league or two of distance that remained
between him and his chateau.
The sweet scents of the summer night rose all
around him, and rose, as the rain falls, impartially, on
the dusty, ragged, and toil-worn group at the fountain
not far away; to whom the mender of roads, with the aid
of the blue cap without which he was nothing, still
enlarged upon his man like a spectre, as long as they
could bear it. By degrees, as they could bear no more,
they dropped off one by one, and lights twinkled in
little casements; which lights, as the casements
darkened, and more stars came out, seemed to have shot up
into the sky instead of having been extinguished.
The shadow of a large high-roofed house, and of
many over-hanging trees, was upon Monsieur the Marquis by
that time; and the shadow was exchanged for the light of
a flambeau, as his carriage stopped, and the great door
of his chateau was opened to him.
"Monsieur Charles, whom I expect; is he arrived
from England?"
"Monseigneur, not yet."
IX
The Gorgon's Head
It was a heavy mass of building, that chateau of
Monsieur the Marquis, with a large stone courtyard before
it, and two stone sweeps of staircase meeting in a stone
terrace before the principal door. A stony business
altogether, with heavy stone balustrades, and stone urns,
and stone flowers, and stone faces of men, and stone
heads of lions, in all directions. As if the Gorgon's
head had surveyed it, when it was finished, two centuries
ago.
Up the broad flight of shallow steps, Monsieur the
Marquis, flambeau preceded, went from his carriage,
sufficiently disturbing the darkness to elicit loud
remonstrance from an owl in the roof of the great pile of
stable building away among the trees. All else was so
quiet, that the flambeau carried up the steps, and the
other flambeau held at the great door, burnt as if they
were in a close room of state, instead of being in the
open night-air. Other sound than the owl's voice there
was none, save the failing of a fountain into its stone
basin; for, it was one of those dark nights that hold
their breath by the hour together, and then heave a long
low sigh, and hold their breath again.
The great door clanged behind him, and Monsieur the
Marquis crossed a hall grim with certain old boar-spears,
swords, and knives of the chase; grimmer with certain
heavy riding-rods and riding-whips, of which many a
peasant, gone to his benefactor Death, had felt the
weight when his lord was angry.
Avoiding the larger rooms, which were dark and made
fast for the night, Monsieur the Marquis, with his
flambeau-bearer going on before, went up the staircase to
a door in a corridor. This thrown open, admitted him to
his own private apartment of three rooms: his bed-chamber
and two others. High vaulted rooms with cool uncarpeted
floors, great dogs upon the hearths for the burning of
wood in winter time, and all luxuries befitting the state
of a marquis in a luxurious age and country. The fashion
of the last Louis but one, of the line that was never to
break --the fourteenth Louis--was conspicuous in their
rich furniture; but, it was diversified by many objects
that were illustrations of old pages in the history of
France.
A supper-table was laid for two, in the third of
the rooms; a round room, in one of the chateau's four
extinguisher-topped towers. A small lofty room, with its
window wide open, and the wooden jalousie-blinds closed,
so that the dark night only showed in slight horizontal
lines of black, alternating with their broad lines of
stone colour.
"My nephew," said the Marquis, glancing at the
supper preparation; "they said he was not
arrived."
Nor was he; but, he had been expected with
Monseigneur.
"Ah! It is not probable he will arrive to-night;
nevertheless, leave the table as it is. I shall be ready
in a quarter of an hour."
In a quarter of an hour Monseigneur was ready, and
sat down alone to his sumptuous and choice supper. His
chair was opposite to the window, and he had taken his
soup, and was raising his glass of Bordeaux to his lips,
when he put it down.
"What is that?" he calmly asked, looking with
attention at the horizontal lines of black and stone
colour.
"Monseigneur? That?"
"Outside the blinds. Open the blinds."
It was done.
"Well?"
"Monseigneur, it is nothing. The trees and the
night are all that are here."
The servant who spoke, had thrown the blinds wide,
had looked out into the vacant darkness, and stood with
that blank behind him, looking round for
instructions.
"Good," said the imperturbable master. "Close them
again."
That was done too, and the Marquis went on with his
supper. He was half way through it, when he again stopped
with his glass in his hand, hearing the sound of wheels.
It came on briskly, and came up to the front of the
chateau.
"Ask who is arrived."
It was the nephew of Monseigneur. He had been some
few leagues behind Monseigneur, early in the afternoon.
He had diminished the distance rapidly, but not so
rapidly as to come up with Monseigneur on the road. He
had heard of Monseigneur, at the posting-houses, as being
before him.
He was to be told (said Monseigneur) that supper
awaited him then and there, and that he was prayed to
come to it. In a little while he came. He had been known
in England as Charles Darnay.
Monseigneur received him in a courtly manner, but
they did not shake hands.
"You left Paris yesterday, sir?" he said to
Monseigneur, as he took his seat at table.
"Yesterday. And you?"
"I come direct."
"From London?"
"Yes."
"You have been a long time coming," said the
Marquis, with a smile.
"On the contrary; I come direct."
"Pardon me! I mean, not a long time on the journey;
a long time intending the journey."
"I have been detained by"--the nephew stopped a
moment in his answer--"various business."
"Without doubt," said the polished uncle.
So long as a servant was present, no other words
passed between them. When coffee had been served and they
were alone together, the nephew, looking at the uncle and
meeting the eyes of the face that was like a fine mask,
opened a conversation.
"I have come back, sir, as you anticipate, pursuing
the object that took me away. It carried me into great
and unexpected peril; but it is a sacred object, and if
it had carried me to death I hope it would have sustained
me."
"Not to death," said the uncle; "it is not
necessary to say, to death."
"I doubt, sir," returned the nephew, "whether, if
it had carried me to the utmost brink of death, you would
have cared to stop me there."
The deepened marks in the nose, and the lengthening
of the fine straight lines in the cruel face, looked
ominous as to that; the uncle made a graceful gesture of
protest, which was so clearly a slight form of good
breeding that it was not reassuring.
"Indeed, sir," pursued the nephew, "for anything I
know, you may have expressly worked to give a more
suspicious appearance to the suspicious circumstances
that surrounded me."
"No, no, no," said the uncle, pleasantly.
"But, however that may be," resumed the nephew,
glancing at him with deep distrust, "I know that your
diplomacy would stop me by any means, and would know no
scruple as to means."
"My friend, I told you so," said the uncle, with a
fine pulsation in the two marks. "Do me the favour to
recall that I told you so, long ago."
"I recall it."
"Thank you," said the Marquise--very sweetly
indeed.
His tone lingered in the air, almost like the tone
of a musical instrument.
"In effect, sir," pursued the nephew, "I believe it
to be at once your bad fortune, and my good fortune, that
has kept me out of a prison in France here."
"I do not quite understand," returned the uncle,
sipping his coffee. "Dare I ask you to explain?"
"I believe that if you were not in disgrace with
the Court, and had not been overshadowed by that cloud
for years past, a letter de cachet would have sent me to
some fortress indefinitely."
"It is possible," said the uncle, with great
calmness. "For the honour of the family, I could even
resolve to incommode you to that extent. Pray excuse
me!"
"I perceive that, happily for me, the Reception of
the day before yesterday was, as usual, a cold one,"
observed the nephew.
"I would not say happily, my friend," returned the
uncle, with refined politeness; "I would not be sure of
that. A good opportunity for consideration, surrounded by
the advantages of solitude, might influence your destiny
to far greater advantage than you influence it for
yourself. But it is useless to discuss the question. I
am, as you say, at a disadvantage. These little
instruments of correction, these gentle aids to the power
and honour of families, these slight favours that might
so incommode you, are only to be obtained now by interest
and importunity. They are sought by so many, and they are
granted (comparatively) to so few! It used not to be so,
but France in all such things is changed for the worse.
Our not remote ancestors held the right of life and death
over the surrounding vulgar. From this room, many such
dogs have been taken out to be hanged; in the next room
(my bedroom), one fellow, to our knowledge, was poniarded
on the spot for professing some insolent delicacy
respecting his daughter--HIS daughter? We have lost many
privileges; a new philosophy has become the mode; and the
assertion of our station, in these days, might (I do not
go so far as to say would, but might) cause us real
inconvenience. All very bad, very bad!"
The Marquis took a gentle little pinch of snuff,
and shook his head; as elegantly despondent as he could
becomingly be of a country still containing himself, that
great means of regeneration.
"We have so asserted our station, both in the old
time and in the modern time also," said the nephew,
gloomily, "that I believe our name to be more detested
than any name in France."
"Let us hope so," said the uncle. "Detestation of
the high is the involuntary homage of the low."
"There is not," pursued the nephew, in his former
tone, "a face I can look at, in all this country round
about us, which looks at me with any deference on it but
the dark deference of fear and slavery."
"A compliment," said the Marquis, "to the grandeur
of the family, merited by the manner in which the family
has sustained its grandeur. Hah!" And he took another
gentle little pinch of snuff, and lightly crossed his
legs.
But, when his nephew, leaning an elbow on the
table, covered his eyes thoughtfully and dejectedly with
his hand, the fine mask looked at him sideways with a
stronger concentration of keenness, closeness, and
dislike, than was comportable with its wearer's
assumption of indifference.
"Repression is the only lasting philosophy. The
dark deference of fear and slavery, my friend," observed
the Marquis, "will keep the dogs obedient to the whip, as
long as this roof," looking up to it, "shuts out the
sky."
That might not be so long as the Marquis supposed.
If a picture of the chateau as it was to be a very few
years hence, and of fifty like it as they too were to be
a very few years hence, could have been shown to him that
night, he might have been at a loss to claim his own from
the ghastly, fire-charred, plunder-wrecked rains. As for
the roof he vaunted, he might have found THAT shutting
out the sky in a new way--to wit, for ever, from the eyes
of the bodies into which its lead was fired, out of the
barrels of a hundred thousand muskets.
"Meanwhile," said the Marquis, "I will preserve the
honour and repose of the family, if you will not. But you
must be fatigued. Shall we terminate our conference for
the night?"
"A moment more."
"An hour, if you please."
"Sir," said the nephew, "we have done wrong, and
are reaping the fruits of wrong."
"WE have done wrong?" repeated the Marquis, with an
inquiring smile, and delicately pointing, first to his
nephew, then to himself.
"Our family; our honourable family, whose honour is
of so much account to both of us, in such different ways.
Even in my father's time, we did a world of wrong,
injuring every human creature who came between us and our
pleasure, whatever it was. Why need I speak of my
father's time, when it is equally yours? Can I separate
my father's twin-brother, joint inheritor, and next
successor, from himself?"
"Death has done that!" said the Marquis.
"And has left me," answered the nephew, "bound to a
system that is frightful to me, responsible for it, but
powerless in it; seeking to execute the last request of
my dear mother's lips, and obey the last look of my dear
mother's eyes, which implored me to have mercy and to
redress; and tortured by seeking assistance and power in
vain."
"Seeking them from me, my nephew," said the
Marquis, touching him on the breast with his
forefinger--they were now standing by the hearth--"you
will for ever seek them in vain, be assured."
Every fine straight line in the clear whiteness of
his face, was cruelly, craftily, and closely compressed,
while he stood looking quietly at his nephew, with his
snuff-box in his hand. Once again he touched him on the
breast, as though his finger were the fine point of a
small sword, with which, in delicate finesse, he ran him
through the body, and said,
"My friend, I will die, perpetuating the system
under which I have lived."
When he had said it, he took a culminating pinch of
snuff, and put his box in his pocket.
"Better to be a rational creature," he added then,
after ringing a small bell on the table, "and accept your
natural destiny. But you are lost, Monsieur Charles, I
see."
"This property and France are lost to me," said the
nephew, sadly; "I renounce them."
"Are they both yours to renounce? France may be,
but is the property? It is scarcely worth mentioning;
but, is it yet?"
"I had no intention, in the words I used, to claim
it yet. If it passed to me from you, to-morrow--"
"Which I have the vanity to hope is not
probable."
"--or twenty years hence--"
"You do me too much honour," said the Marquis;
"still, I prefer that supposition."
"--I would abandon it, and live otherwise and
elsewhere. It is little to relinquish. What is it but a
wilderness of misery and ruin!"
"Hah!" said the Marquis, glancing round the
luxurious room.
"To the eye it is fair enough, here; but seen in
its integrity, under the sky, and by the daylight, it is
a crumbling tower of waste, mismanagement, extortion,
debt, mortgage, oppression, hunger, nakedness, and
suffering."
"Hah!" said the Marquis again, in a well-satisfied
manner.
"If it ever becomes mine, it shall be put into some
hands better qualified to free it slowly (if such a thing
is possible) from the weight that drags it down, so that
the miserable people who cannot leave it and who have
been long wrung to the last point of endurance, may, in
another generation, suffer less; but it is not for me.
There is a curse on it, and on all this land."
"And you?" said the uncle. "Forgive my curiosity;
do you, under your new philosophy, graciously intend to
live?"
"I must do, to live, what others of my countrymen,
even with nobility at their backs, may have to do some
day-work."
"In England, for example?"
"Yes. The family honour, sir, is safe from me in
this country. The family name can suffer from me in no
other, for I bear it in no other."
The ringing of the bell had caused the adjoining
bed-chamber to be lighted. It now shone brightly, through
the door of communication. The Marquis looked that way,
and listened for the retreating step of his valet.
"England is very attractive to you, seeing how
indifferently you have prospered there," he observed
then, turning his calm face to his nephew with a
smile.
"I have already said, that for my prospering there,
I am sensible I may be indebted to you, sir. For the
rest, it is my Refuge."
"They say, those boastful English, that it is the
Refuge of many. You know a compatriot who has found a
Refuge there? A Doctor?"
"Yes."
"With a daughter?"
"Yes."
"Yes," said the Marquis. "You are fatigued. Good
night!"
As he bent his head in his most courtly manner,
there was a secrecy in his smiling face, and he conveyed
an air of mystery to those words, which struck the eyes
and ears of his nephew forcibly. At the same time, the
thin straight lines of the setting of the eyes, and the
thin straight lips, and the markings in the nose, curved
with a sarcasm that looked handsomely diabolic.
"Yes," repeated the Marquis. "A Doctor with a
daughter. Yes. So commences the new philosophy! You are
fatigued. Good night!"
It would have been of as much avail to interrogate
any stone face outside the chateau as to interrogate that
face of his. The nephew looked at him, in vain, in
passing on to the door.
"Good night!" said the uncle. "I look to the
pleasure of seeing you again in the morning. Good repose!
Light Monsieur my nephew to his chamber there!--And burn
Monsieur my nephew in his bed, if you will," he added to
himself, before he rang his little ben again, and
summoned his valet to his own bedroom.
The valet come and gone, Monsieur the Marquis
walked to and fro in his loose chamber-robe, to prepare
himself gently for sleep, that hot still night. Rustling
about the room, his softly-slippered feet making no noise
on the floor, he moved like a refined tiger:--looked like
some enchanted marquis of the impenitently wicked sort,
in story, whose periodical change into tiger form was
either just going off, or just coming on.
He moved from end to end of his voluptuous bedroom,
looking again at the scraps of the day's journey that
came unbidden into his mind; the slow toil up the hill at
sunset, the setting sun, the descent, the mill, the
prison on the crag, the little village in the hollow, the
peasants at the fountain, and the mender of roads with
his blue cap pointing out the chain under the carriage.
That fountain suggested the Paris fountain, the little
bundle lying on the step, the women bending over it, and
the tall man with his arms up, crying, "Dead!"
"I am cool now," said Monsieur the Marquis, "and
may go to bed."
So, leaving only one light burning on the large
hearth, he let his thin gauze curtains fa]J around him,
and heard the night break its silence with a long sigh as
he composed himself to sleep.
The stone faces on the outer wails stared blindly
at the black night for three heavy hours; for three heavy
hours, the horses in the stables rattled at their racks,
the dogs barked, and the owl made a noise with very
little resemblance in it to the noise conventionally
assigned to the owl by men-poets. But it is the obstinate
custom of such creatures hardly ever to say what is set
down for them.
For three heavy hours, the stone faces of the
chateau, lion and human, stared blindly at the night.
Dead darkness lay on all the landscape, dead darkness
added its own hush to the hushing dust on all the roads.
The burial-place had got to the pass that its little
heaps of poor grass were undistinguishable from one
another; the figure on the Cross might have come down,
for anything that could be seen of it. In the village,
taxers and taxed were fast asleep. Dreaming, perhaps, of
banquets, as the starved usually do, and of ease and
rest, as the driven slave and the yoked ox may, its lean
inhabitants slept soundly, and were fed and freed.
The fountain in the village flowed unseen and
unheard, and the fountain at the chateau dropped unseen
and unheard--both melting away, like the minutes that
were falling from the spring of Time-- through three dark
hours. Then, the grey water of both began to be ghostly
in the light, and the eyes of the stone faces of the
chateau were opened.
Lighter and lighter, until at last the sun touched
the tops of the still trees, and poured its radiance over
the hill. In the glow, the water of the chateau fountain
seemed to turn to blood, and the stone faces crimsoned.
The carol of the birds was loud and high, and, on the
weather-beaten sill of the great window of the bed-
chamber of Monsieur the Marquis, one little bird sang its
sweetest song with all its might. At this, the nearest
stone face seemed to stare amazed, and, with open mouth
and dropped under-jaw, looked awe-stricken.
Now, the sun was full up, and movement began in the
village. Casement windows opened, crazy doors were
unbarred, and people came forth shivering--chilled, as
yet, by the new sweet air. Then began the rarely
lightened toil of the day among the village population.
Some, to the fountain; some, to the fields; men and women
here, to dig and delve; men and women there, to see to
the poor live stock, and lead the bony cows out, to such
pasture as could be found by the roadside. In the church
and at the Cross, a kneeling figure or two; attendant on
the latter prayers, the led cow, trying for a breakfast
among the weeds at its foot.
The chateau awoke later, as became its quality, but
awoke gradually and surely. First, the lonely boar-spears
and knives of the chase had been reddened as of old;
then, had gleamed trenchant in the morning sunshine; now,
doors and windows were thrown open, horses in their
stables looked round over their shoulders at the light
and freshness pouring in at doorways, leaves sparkled and
rustled at iron-grated windows, dogs pulled hard at their
chains, and reared impatient to be loosed.
All these trivial incidents belonged to the routine
of life, and the return of morning. Surely, not so the
ringing of the great bell of the chateau, nor the running
up and down the stairs; nor the hurried figures on the
terrace; nor the booting and tramping here and there and
everywhere, nor the quick saddling of horses and riding
away?
What winds conveyed this hurry to the grizzled
mender of roads, already at work on the hill-top beyond
the village, with his day's dinner (not much to carry)
lying in a bundle that it was worth no crow's while to
peck at, on a heap of stones? Had the birds, carrying
some grains of it to a distance, dropped one over him as
they sow chance seeds? Whether or no, the mender of roads
ran, on the sultry morning, as if for his life, down the
hill, knee-high in dust, and never stopped till he got to
the fountain.
All the people of the village were at the fountain,
standing about in their depressed manner, and whispering
low, but showing no other emotions than grim curiosity
and surprise. The led cows, hastily brought in and
tethered to anything that would hold them, were looking
stupidly on, or lying down chewing the cud of nothing
particularly repaying their trouble, which they had
picked up in their interrupted saunter. Some of the
people of the chateau, and some of those of the
posting-house, and all the taxing authorities, were armed
more or less, and were crowded on the other side of the
little street in a purposeless way, that was highly
fraught with nothing. Already, the mender of roads had
penetrated into the midst of a group of fifty particular
friends, and was smiting himself in the breast with his
blue cap. What did all this portend, and what portended
the swift hoisting-up of Monsieur Gabelle behind a
servant on horseback, and the conveying away of the said
Gabelle (double-laden though the horse was), at a gallop,
like a new version of the German ballad of
Leonora?
It portended that there was one stone face too
many, up at the chateau.
The Gorgon had surveyed the building again in the
night, and had added the one stone face wanting; the
stone face for which it had waited through about two
hundred years.
It lay back on the pillow of Monsieur the Marquis.
It was like a fine mask, suddenly startled, made angry,
and petrified. Driven home into the heart of the stone
figure attached to it, was a knife. Round its hilt was a
frill of paper, on which was scrawled:
"Drive him fast to his tomb. This, from
Jacques."
X
Two Promises
More months, to the number of twelve, had come and
gone, and Mr. Charles Darnay was established in England
as a higher teacher of the French language who was
conversant with French literature. In this age, he would
have been a Professor; in that age, he was a Tutor. He
read with young men who could find any leisure and
interest for the study of a living tongue spoken all over
the world, and he cultivated a taste for its stores of
knowledge and fancy. He could write of them, besides, in
sound English, and render them into sound English. Such
masters were not at that time easily found; Princes that
had been, and Kings that were to be, were not yet of the
Teacher class, and no ruined nobility had dropped out of
Tellson's ledgers, to turn cooks and carpenters. As a
tutor, whose attainments made the student's way unusually
pleasant and profitable, and as an elegant translator who
brought something to his work besides mere dictionary
knowledge, young Mr. Darnay soon became known and
encouraged. He was well acquainted, more-over, with the
circumstances of his country, and those were of
ever-growing interest. So, with great perseverance and
untiring industry, he prospered.
In London, he had expected neither to walk on
pavements of gold, nor to lie on beds of roses; if he had
had any such exalted expectation, he would not have
prospered. He had expected labour, and he found it, and
did it and made the best of it. In this, his prosperity
consisted.
A certain portion of his time was passed at
Cambridge, where he read with undergraduates as a sort of
tolerated smuggler who drove a contraband trade in
European languages, instead of conveying Greek and Latin
through the Custom-house. The rest of his time he passed
in London.
Now, from the days when it was always summer in
Eden, to these days when it is mostly winter in fallen
latitudes, the world of a man has invariably gone one
way--Charles Darnay's way--the way of the love of a
woman.
He had loved Lucie Manette from the hour of his
danger. He had never heard a sound so sweet and dear as
the sound of her compassionate voice; he had never seen a
face so tenderly beautiful, as hers when it was
confronted with his own on the edge of the grave that had
been dug for him. But, he had not yet spoken to her on
the subject; the assassination at the deserted chateau
far away beyond the heaving water and the long, tong,
dusty roads--the solid stone chateau which had itself
become the mere mist of a dream--had been done a year,
and he had never yet, by so much as a single spoken word,
disclosed to her the state of his heart.
That he had his reasons for this, he knew full
well. It was again a summer day when, lately arrived in
London from his college occupation, he turned into the
quiet corner in Soho, bent on seeking an opportunity of
opening his mind to Doctor Manette. It was the close of
the summer day, and he knew Lucie to be out with Miss
Pross.
He found the Doctor reading in his arm-chair at a
window. The energy which had at once supported him under
his old sufferings and aggravated their sharpness, had
been gradually restored to him. He was now a very
energetic man indeed, with great firmness of purpose,
strength of resolution, and vigour of action. In his
recovered energy he was sometimes a little fitful and
sudden, as he had at first been in the exercise of his
other recovered faculties; but, this had never been
frequently observable, and had grown more and more
rare.
He studied much, slept little, sustained a great
deal of fatigue with ease, and was equably cheerful. To
him, now entered Charles Darnay, at sight of whom he laid
aside his book and held out his hand.
"Charles Darnay! I rejoice to see you. We have been
counting on your return these three or four days past.
Mr. Stryver and Sydney Carton were both here yesterday,
and both made you out to be more than due."
"I am obliged to them for their interest in the
matter," he answered, a little coldly as to them, though
very warmly as to the Doctor. "Miss Manette--"
"Is well," said the Doctor, as he stopped short,
"and your return will delight us all. She has gone out on
some household matters, but will soon be home."
"Doctor Manette, I knew she was from home. I took
the opportunity of her being from home, to beg to speak
to you."
There was a blank silence.
"Yes?" said the Doctor, with evident constraint.
"Bring your chair here, and speak on."
He complied as to the chair, but appeared to find
the speaking on less easy.
"I have had the happiness, Doctor Manette, of being
so intimate here," so he at length began, "for some year
and a half, that I hope the topic on which I am about to
touch may not--"
He was stayed by the Doctor's putting out his hand
to stop him. When he had kept it so a little while, he
said, drawing it back:
"Is Lucie the topic?"
"She is."
"It is hard for me to speak of her at any time. It
is very hard for me to hear her spoken of in that tone of
yours, Charles Darnay."
"It is a tone of fervent admiration, true homage,
and deep love, Doctor Manette!" he said
deferentially.
There was another blank silence before her father
rejoined:
"I believe it. I do you justice; I believe
it."
His constraint was so manifest, and it was so
manifest, too, that it originated in an unwillingness to
approach the subject, that Charles Darnay
hesitated.
"Shall I go on, sir?"
Another blank.
"Yes, go on."
"You anticipate what I would say, though you cannot
know how earnestly I say it, how earnestly I feel it,
without knowing my secret heart, and the hopes and fears
and anxieties with which it has long been laden. Dear
Doctor Manette, I love your daughter fondly, dearly,
disinterestedly, devotedly. If ever there were love in
the world, I love her. You have loved yourself; let your
old love speak for me!"
The Doctor sat with his face turned away, and his
eyes bent on the ground. At the last words, he stretched
out his hand again, hurriedly, and cried:
"Not that, sir! Let that be! I adjure you, do not
recall that!"
His cry was so like a cry of actual pain, that it
rang in Charles Darnay's ears long after he had ceased.
He motioned with the hand he had extended, and it seemed
to be an appeal to Darnay to pause. The latter so
received it, and remained silent.
"I ask your pardon," said the Doctor, in a subdued
tone, after some moments. "I do not doubt your loving
Lucie; you may be satisfied of it."
He turned towards him in his chair, but did not
look at him, or raise his eyes. His chin dropped upon his
hand, and his white hair overshadowed his face:
"Have you spoken to Lucie?"
"No."
"Nor written?"
"Never."
"It would be ungenerous to affect not to know that
your self-denial is to be referred to your consideration
for her father. Her father thanks you.
He offered his hand; but his eyes did not go with
it.
"I know," said Darnay, respectfully, "how can I
fail to know, Doctor Manette, I who have seen you
together from day to day, that between you and Miss
Manette there is an affection so unusual, so touching, so
belonging to the circumstances in which it has been
nurtured, that it can have few parallels, even in the
tenderness between a father and child. I know, Doctor
Manette--how can I fail to know--that, mingled with the
affection and duty of a daughter who has become a woman,
there is, in her heart, towards you, all the love and
reliance of infancy itself. I know that, as in her
childhood she had no parent, so she is now devoted to you
with all the constancy and fervour of her present years
and character, united to the trustfulness and attachment
of the early days in which you were lost to her. I know
perfectly well that if you had been restored to her from
the world beyond this life, you could hardly be invested,
in her sight, with a more sacred character than that in
which you are always with her. I know that when she is
clinging to you, the hands of baby, girl, and woman, all
in one, are round your neck. I know that in loving you
she sees and loves her mother at her own age, sees and
loves you at my age, loves her mother broken-hearted,
loves you through your dreadful trial and in your blessed
restoration. I have known this, night and day, since I
have known you in your home."
Her father sat silent, with his face bent down. His
breathing was a little quickened; but he repressed all
other signs of agitation.
"Dear Doctor Manette, always knowing this, always
seeing her and you with this hallowed light about you, I
have forborne, and forborne, as long as it was in the
nature of man to do it. I have felt, and do even now
feel, that to bring my love--even mine--between you, is
to touch your history with something not quite so good as
itself. But I love her. Heaven is my witness that I love
her!"
"I believe it," answered her father, mournfully. "I
have thought so before now. I believe it."
"But, do not believe," said Darnay, upon whose ear
the mournful voice struck with a reproachful sound, "that
if my fortune were so cast as that, being one day so
happy as to make her my wife, I must at any time put any
separation between her and you, I could or would breathe
a word of what I now say. Besides that I should know it
to be hopeless, I should know it to be a baseness. If I
had any such possibility, even at a remote distance of
years, harboured in my thoughts, and hidden in my
heart--if it ever had been there--if it ever could be
there--I could not now touch this honoured hand."
He laid his own upon it as he spoke.
"No, dear Doctor Manette. Like you, a voluntary
exile from France; like you, driven from it by its
distractions, oppressions, and miseries; like you,
striving to live away from it by my own exertions, and
trusting in a happier future; I look only to sharing your
fortunes, sharing your life and home, and being faithful
to you to the death. Not to divide with Lucie her
privilege as your child, companion, and friend; but to
come in aid of it, and bind her closer to you, if such a
thing can be."
His touch still lingered on her father's hand.
Answering the touch for a moment, but not coldly, her
father rested his hands upon the arms of his chair, and
looked up for the first time since the beginning of the
conference. A struggle was evidently in his face; a
struggle with that occasional look which had a tendency
in it to dark doubt and dread.
"You speak so feelingly and so manfully, Charles
Darnay, that I thank you with all my heart, and will open
all my heart--or nearly so. Have you any reason to
believe that Lucie loves you?"
"None. As yet, none."
"Is it the immediate object of this confidence,
that you may at once ascertain that, with my
knowledge?"
"Not even so. I might not have the hopefulness to
do it for weeks; I might (mistaken or not mistaken) have
that hopefulness to-morrow."
"Do you seek any guidance from me?"
"I ask none, sir. But I have thought it possible
that you might have it in your power, if you should deem
it right, to give me some."
"Do you seek any promise from me?"
"I do seek that."
"What is it?"
"I well understand that, without you, I could have
no hope. I well understand that, even if Miss Manette
held me at this moment in her innocent heart-do not think
I have the presumption to assume so much-- I could retain
no place in it against her love for her father."
"If that be so, do you see what, on the other hand,
is involved in it?"
"I understand equally well, that a word from her
father in any suitor's favour, would outweigh herself and
all the world. For which reason, Doctor Manette," said
Darnay, modestly but firmly, "I would not ask that word,
to save my life."
"I am sure of it. Charles Darnay, mysteries arise
out of close love, as well as out of wide division; in
the former case, they are subtle and delicate, and
difficult to penetrate. My daughter Lucie is, in this one
respect, such a mystery to me; I can make no guess at the
state of her heart."
"May I ask, sir, if you think she is--" As he
hesitated, her father supplied the rest.
"Is sought by any other suitor?"
"It is what I meant to say."
Her father considered a little before he
answered:
"You have seen Mr. Carton here, yourself. Mr.
Stryver is here too, occasionally. If it be at all, it
can only be by one of these."
"Or both," said Darnay.
"I had not thought of both; I should not think
either, likely. You want a promise from me. Tell me what
it is."
"It is, that if Miss Manette should bring to you at
any time, on her own part, such a confidence as I have
ventured to lay before you, you will bear testimony to
what I have said, and to your belief in it. I hope you
may be able to think so well of me, as to urge no
influence against me. I say nothing more of my stake in
this; this is what I ask. The condition on which I ask
it, and which you have an undoubted right to require, I
will observe immediately."
"I give the promise," said the Doctor, "without any
condition. I believe your object to be, purely and
truthfully, as you have stated it. I believe your
intention is to perpetuate, and not to weaken, the ties
between me and my other and far dearer self. If she
should ever tell me that you are essential to her perfect
happiness, I will give her to you. If there were--Charles
Darnay, if there were--"
The young man had taken his hand gratefully; their
hands were joined as the Doctor spoke:
"--any fancies, any reasons, any apprehensions,
anything whatsoever, new or old, against the man she
really loved--the direct responsibility thereof not lying
on his head--they should all be obliterated for her sake.
She is everything to me; more to me than suffering, more
to me than wrong, more to me--Well! This is idle
talk."
So strange was the way in which he faded into
silence, and so strange his fixed look when he had ceased
to speak, that Darnay felt his own hand turn cold in the
hand that slowly released and dropped it.
"You said something to me," said Doctor Manette,
breaking into a smile. "What was it you said to
me?"
He was at a loss how to answer, until he remembered
having spoken of a condition. Relieved as his mind
reverted to that, he answered:
"Your confidence in me ought to be returned with
full confidence on my part. My present name, though but
slightly changed from my mother's, is not, as you will
remember, my own. I wish to tell you what that is, and
why I am in England."
"Stop!" said the Doctor of Beauvais.
"I wish it, that I may the better deserve your
confidence, and have no secret from you."
"Stop!"
For an instant, the Doctor even had his two hands
at his ears; for another instant, even had his two hands
laid on Darnay's lips.
"Tell me when I ask you, not now. If your suit
should prosper, if Lucie should love you, you shall tell
me on your marriage morning. Do you promise?"
"Willingly.
"Give me your hand. She will be home directly, and
it is better she should not see us together to-night. Go!
God bless you!"
It was dark when Charles Darnay left him, and it
was an hour later and darker when Lucie came home; she
hurried into the room alone-- for Miss Pross had gone
straight up-stairs--and was surprised to find his
reading-chair empty.
"My father!" she called to him. "Father
dear!"
Nothing was said in answer, but she heard a low
hammering sound in his bedroom. Passing lightly across
the intermediate room, she looked in at his door and came
running back frightened, crying to herself, with her
blood all chilled, "What shall I do! What shall I
do!"
Her uncertainty lasted but a moment; she hurried
back, and tapped at his door, and softly called to him.
The noise ceased at the sound of her voice, and he
presently came out to her, and they walked up and down
together for a long time.
She came down from her bed, to look at him in his
sleep that night. He slept heavily, and his tray of
shoemaking tools, and his old unfinished work, were all
as usual.
XI
A Companion Picture
"Sydney," said Mr. Stryver, on that self-same
night, or morning, to his jackal; "mix another bowl of
punch; I have something to say to you."
Sydney had been working double tides that night,
and the night before, and the night before that, and a
good many nights in succession, making a grand clearance
among Mr. Stryver's papers before the setting in of the
long vacation. The clearance was effected at last; the
Stryver arrears were handsomely fetched up; everything
was got rid of until November should come with its fogs
atmospheric, and fogs legal, and bring grist to the mill
again.
Sydney was none the livelier and none the soberer
for so much application. It had taken a deal of extra
wet-towelling to pull him through the night; a
correspondingly extra quantity of wine had preceded the
towelling; and he was in a very damaged condition, as he
now pulled his turban off and threw it into the basin in
which he had steeped it at intervals for the last six
hours.
"Are you mixing that other bowl of punch?" said
Stryver the portly, with his hands in his waistband,
glancing round from the sofa where he lay on his
back.
"I am."
"Now, look here! I am going to tell you something
that will rather surprise you, and that perhaps will make
you think me not quite as shrewd as you usually do think
me. I intend to marry."
"DO you?"
"Yes. And not for money. What do you say
now?"
"I don't feel disposed to say much. Who is
she?"
"Guess."
"Do I know her?"
"Guess."
"I am not going to guess, at five o'clock in the
morning, with my brains frying and sputtering in my head.
if you want me to guess, you must ask me to
dinner."
"Well then, I'll tell you, said Stryver, coming
slowly into a sitting posture. "Sydney, I rather despair
of making myself intelligible to you, because you are
such an insensible dog.
"And you," returned Sydney, busy concocting the
punch, "are such a sensitive and poetical
spirit--"
"Come!" rejoined Stryver, laughing boastfully,
"though I don't prefer any claim to being the soul of
Romance (for I hope I know better), still I am a tenderer
sort of fellow than YOU."
"You are a luckier, if you mean that."
"I don't mean that. I mean I am a man of
more--more--"
"Say gallantry, while you are about it," suggested
Carton.
"Well! I'll say gallantry. My meaning is that I am
a man," said Stryver, inflating himself at his friend as
he made the punch, "who cares more to be agreeable, who
takes more pains to be agreeable, who knows better how to
be agreeable, in a woman's society, than you do."
"Go on," said Sydney Carton.
"No; but before I go on," said Stryver, shaking his
head in his bullying way, I'll have this out with you.
You've been at Doctor Manette's house as much as I have,
or more than I have. Why, I have been ashamed of your
moroseness there! Your manners have been of that silent
and sullen and hangdog kind, that, upon my life and soul,
I have been ashamed of you, Sydney!"
"It should be very beneficial to a man in your
practice at the bar, to be ashamed of anything," returned
Sydney; "you ought to be much obliged to me."
"You shall not get off in that way," rejoined
Stryver, shouldering the rejoinder at him; "no, Sydney,
it's my duty to tell you--and I tell you to your face to
do you good--that you are a devilish ill-conditioned
fellow in that sort of society. You are a disagreeable
fellow."
Sydney drank a bumper of the punch he had made, and
laughed.
"Look at me!" said Stryver, squaring himself; "I
have less need to make myself agreeable than you have,
being more independent in circumstances. Why do I do
it?"
"I never saw you do it yet," muttered
Carton.
"I do it because it's politic; I do it on
principle. And look at me! I get on."
"You don't get on with your account of your
matrimonial intentions," answered Carton, with a careless
air; "I wish you would keep to that. As to me--will you
never understand that I am incorrigible?"
He asked the question with some appearance of
scorn.
"You have no business to be incorrigible," was his
friend's answer, delivered in no very soothing
tone.
"I have no business to be, at all, that I know of,"
said Sydney Carton. "Who is the lady?"
"Now, don't let my announcement of the name make
you uncomfortable, Sydney," said Mr. Stryver, preparing
him with ostentatious friendliness for the disclosure he
was about to make, "because I know you don't mean half
you say; and if you meant it all, it would be of no
importance. I make this little preface, because you once
mentioned the young lady to me in slighting
terms."
"I did?"
"Certainly; and in these chambers."
Sydney Carton looked at his punch and looked at his
complacent friend; drank his punch and looked at his
complacent friend.
"You made mention of the young lady as a
golden-haired doll. The young lady is Miss Manette. If
you had been a fellow of any sensitiveness or delicacy of
feeling in that kind of way, Sydney, I might have been a
little resentful of your employing such a designation;
but you are not. You want that sense altogether;
therefore I am no more annoyed when I think of the
expression, than I should be annoyed by a man's opinion
of a picture of mine, who had no eye for pictures: or of
a piece of music of mine, who had no ear for
music."
Sydney Carton drank the punch at a great rate;
drank it by bumpers, looking at his friend.
"Now you know all about it, Syd," said Mr. Stryver.
"I don't care about fortune: she is a charming creature,
and I have made up my mind to please myself: on the
whole, I think I can afford to please myself. She will
have in me a man already pretty well off, and a rapidly
rising man, and a man of some distinction: it is a piece
of good fortune for her, but she is worthy of good
fortune. Are you astonished?"
Carton, still drinking the punch, rejoined, "Why
should I be astonished?"
"You approve?"
Carton, still drinking the punch, rejoined, "Why
should I not approve?"
"Well!" said his friend Stryver, "you take it more
easily than I fancied you would, and are less mercenary
on my behalf than I thought you would be; though, to be
sure, you know well enough by this time that your ancient
chum is a man of a pretty strong will. Yes, Sydney, I
have had enough of this style of life, with no other as a
change from it; I feel that it is a pleasant thing for a
man to have a home when he feels inclined to go to it
(when he doesn't, he can stay away), and I feel that Miss
Manette will tell well in any station, and will always do
me credit. So I have made up my mind. And now, Sydney,
old boy, I want to say a word to YOU about YOUR
prospects. You are in a bad way, you know; you really are
in a bad way. You don't know the value of money, you Eve
hard, you'll knock up one of these days, and be ill and
poor; you really ought to think about a nurse."
The prosperous patronage with which he said it,
made him look twice as big as he was, and four times as
offensive.
"Now, let me recommend you," pursued Stryver, "to
look it in the face. I have looked it in the face, in my
different way; look it in the face, you, in your
different way. Marry. Provide somebody to take care of
you. Never mind your having no enjoyment of women's
society, nor understanding of it, nor tact for it. Find
out somebody. Find out some respectable woman with a
little property--somebody in the landlady way, or
lodging-letting way--and marry her, against a rainy day.
That's the kind of thing for YOU. Now think of it,
Sydney."
"I'll think of it," said Sydney.
XII
The Fellow of Delicacy
Mr. Stryver having made up his mind to that
magnanimous bestowal of good fortune on the Doctor's
daughter, resolved to make her happiness known to her
before he left town for the Long Vacation. After some
mental debating of the point, he came to the conclusion
that it would be as well to get all the preliminaries
done with, and they could then arrange at their leisure
whether he should give her his hand a week or two before
Michaelmas Term, or in the little Christmas vacation
between it and Hilary.
As to the strength of his case, he had not a doubt
about it, but clearly saw his way to the verdict. Argued
with the jury on substantial worldly grounds--the only
grounds ever worth taking into account-- it was a plain
case, and had not a weak spot in it. He called himself
for the plaintiff, there was no getting over his
evidence, the counsel for the defendant threw up his
brief, and the jury did not even turn to consider. After
trying it, Stryver, C. J., was satisfied that no plainer
case could be.
Accordingly, Mr. Stryver inaugurated the Long
Vacation with a formal proposal to take Miss Manette to
Vauxhall Gardens; that failing, to Ranelagh; that
unaccountably failing too, it behoved him to present
himself in Soho, and there declare his noble mind.
Towards Soho, therefore, Mr. Stryver shouldered his
way from the Temple, while the bloom of the Long
Vacation's infancy was still upon it. Anybody who had
seen him projecting himself into Soho while he was yet on
Saint Dunstan's side of Temple Bar, bursting in his
full-blown way along the pavement, to the jostlement of
all weaker people, might have seen how safe and strong he
was.
His way taking him past Tellson's, and he both
banking at Tellson's and knowing Mr. Lorry as the
intimate friend of the Manettes, it entered Mr. Stryver's
mind to enter the bank, and reveal to Mr. Lorry the
brightness of the Soho horizon. So, he pushed open the
door with the weak rattle in its throat, stumbled down
the two steps, got past the two ancient cashiers, and
shouldered himself into the musty back closet where Mr.
Lorry sat at great books ruled for figures, with
perpendicular iron bars to his window as if that were
ruled for figures too, and everything under the clouds
were a sum.
"Halloa!" said Mr. Stryver. "How do you do? I hope
you are well!"
It was Stryver's grand peculiarity that he always
seemed too big for any place, or space. He was so much
too big for Tellson's, that old clerks in distant corners
looked up with looks of remonstrance, as though he
squeezed them against the wall. The House itself,
magnificently reading the paper quite in the far-off
perspective, lowered displeased, as if the Stryver head
had been butted into its responsible waistcoat.
The discreet Mr. Lorry said, in a sample tone of
the voice he would recommend under the circumstances,
"How do you do, Mr. Stryver? How do you do, sir?" and
shook hands. There was a peculiarity in his manner of
shaking hands, always to be seen in any clerk at
Tellson's who shook hands with a customer when the House
pervaded the air. He shook in a self-abnegating way, as
one who shook for Tellson and Co.
"Can I do anything for you, Mr. Stryver?" asked Mr.
Lorry, in his business character.
"Why, no, thank you; this is a private visit to
yourself, Mr. Lorry; I have come for a private
word."
"Oh indeed!" said Mr. Lorry, bending down his ear,
while his eye strayed to the House afar off.
"I am going," said Mr. Stryver, leaning his arms
confidentially on the desk: whereupon, although it was a
large double one, there appeared to be not half desk
enough for him: "I am going to make an offer of myself in
marriage to your agreeable little friend, Miss Manette,
Mr. Lorry."
"Oh dear me!" cried Mr. Lorry, rubbing his chin,
and looking at his visitor dubiously.
"Oh dear me, sir?" repeated Stryver, drawing back.
"Oh dear you, sir? What may your meaning be, Mr.
Lorry?"
"My meaning," answered the man of business, "is, of
course, friendly and appreciative, and that it does you
the greatest credit, and-- in short, my meaning is
everything you could desire. But--really, you know, Mr.
Stryver--" Mr. Lorry paused, and shook his head at him in
the oddest manner, as if he were compelled against his
will to add, internally, "you know there really is so
much too much of you!"
"Well!" said Stryver, slapping the desk with his
contentious hand, opening his eyes wider, and taking a
long breath, "if I understand you, Mr. Lorry, I'll be
hanged!"
Mr. Lorry adjusted his little wig at both ears as a
means towards that end, and bit the feather of a
pen.
"D--n it all, sir!" said Stryver, staring at him,
"am I not eligible?"
"Oh dear yes! Yes. Oh yes, you're eligible!" said
Mr. Lorry. "If you say eligible, you are
eligible."
"Am I not prosperous?" asked Stryver.
"Oh! if you come to prosperous, you are
prosperous," said Mr. Lorry.
"And advancing?"
"If you come to advancing you know," said Mr.
Lorry, delighted to be able to make another admission,
"nobody can doubt that."
"Then what on earth is your meaning, Mr. Lorry?"
demanded Stryver, perceptibly crestfallen.
"Well! I--Were you going there now?" asked Mr.
Lorry.
"Straight!" said Stryver, with a plump of his fist
on the desk.
"Then I think I wouldn't, if I was you."
"Why?" said Stryver. "Now, I'll put you in a
corner," forensically shaking a forefinger at him. "You
are a man of business and bound to have a reason. State
your reason. Why wouldn't you go?"
"Because," said Mr. Lorry, "I wouldn't go on such
an object without having some cause to believe that I
should succeed."
"D--n ME!" cried Stryver, "but this beats
everything."
Mr. Lorry glanced at the distant House, and glanced
at the angry Stryver.
"Here's a man of business--a man of years--a man of
experience-- IN a Bank," said Stryver; "and having summed
up three leading reasons for complete success, he says
there's no reason at all! Says it with his head on!" Mr.
Stryver remarked upon the peculiarity as if it would have
been infinitely less remarkable if he had said it with
his head off.
"When I speak of success, I speak of success with
the young lady; and when I speak of causes and reasons to
make success probable, I speak of causes and reasons that
will tell as such with the young lady. The young lady, my
good sir," said Mr. Lorry, mildly tapping the Stryver
arm, "the young lady. The young lady goes before
all."
"Then you mean to tell me, Mr. Lorry," said
Stryver, squaring his elbows, "that it is your deliberate
opinion that the young lady at present in question is a
mincing Fool?"
"Not exactly so. I mean to tell you, Mr. Stryver,"
said Mr. Lorry, reddening, "that I will hear no
disrespectful word of that young lady from any lips; and
that if I knew any man--which I hope I do not-- whose
taste was so coarse, and whose temper was so overbearing,
that he could not restrain himself from speaking
disrespectfully of that young lady at this desk, not even
Tellson's should prevent my giving him a piece of my
mind."
The necessity of being angry in a suppressed tone
had put Mr. Stryver's blood-vessels into a dangerous
state when it was his turn to be angry; Mr. Lorry's
veins, methodical as their courses could usually be, were
in no better state now it was his turn.
"That is what I mean to tell you, sir," said Mr.
Lorry. "Pray let there be no mistake about it."
Mr. Stryver sucked the end of a ruler for a little
while, and then stood hitting a tune out of his teeth
with it, which probably gave him the toothache. He broke
the awkward silence by saying:
"This is something new to me, Mr. Lorry. You
deliberately advise me not to go up to Soho and offer
myself--MYself, Stryver of the King's Bench bar?"
"Do you ask me for my advice, Mr. Stryver?"
"Yes, I do."
"Very good. Then I give it, and you have repeated
it correctly."
"And all I can say of it is," laughed Stryver with
a vexed laugh, "that this--ha, ha!--beats everything
past, present, and to come."
"Now understand me," pursued Mr. Lorry. "As a man
of business, I am not justified in saying anything about
this matter, for, as a man of business, I know nothing of
it. But, as an old fellow, who has carried Miss Manette
in his arms, who is the trusted friend of Miss Manette
and of her father too, and who has a great affection for
them both, I have spoken. The confidence is not of my
seeking, recollect. Now, you think I may not be
right?"
"Not I!" said Stryver, whistling. "I can't
undertake to find third parties in common sense; I can
only find it for myself. I suppose sense in certain
quarters; you suppose mincing bread-and-butter nonsense.
It's new to me, but you are right, I dare say."
"What I suppose, Mr. Stryver, I claim to
characterise for myself--And understand me, sir," said
Mr. Lorry, quickly flushing again, "I will not--not even
at Tellson's--have it characterised for me by any
gentleman breathing."
"There! I beg your pardon!" said Stryver.
"Granted. Thank you. Well, Mr. Stryver, I was about
to say:--it might be painful to you to find yourself
mistaken, it might be painful to Doctor Manette to have
the task of being explicit with you, it might be very
painful to Miss Manette to have the task of being
explicit with you. You know the terms upon which I have
the honour and happiness to stand with the family. If you
please, committing you in no way, representing you in no
way, I will undertake to correct my advice by the
exercise of a little new observation and judgment
expressly brought to bear upon it. If you should then be
dissatisfied with it, you can but test its soundness for
yourself; if, on the other hand, you should be satisfied
with it, and it should be what it now is, it may spare
all sides what is best spared. What do you say?"
"How long would you keep me in town?"
"Oh! It is only a question of a few hours. I could
go to Soho in the evening, and come to your chambers
afterwards."
"Then I say yes," said Stryver: "I won't go up
there now, I am not so hot upon it as that comes to; I
say yes, and I shall expect you to look in to-night. Good
morning."
Then Mr. Stryver turned and burst out of the Bank,
causing such a concussion of air on his passage through,
that to stand up against it bowing behind the two
counters, required the utmost remaining strength of the
two ancient clerks. Those venerable and feeble persons
were always seen by the public in the act of bowing, and
were popularly believed, when they had bowed a customer
out, still to keep on bowing in the empty office until
they bowed another customer in.
The barrister was keen enough to divine that the
banker would not have gone so far in his expression of
opinion on any less solid ground than moral certainty.
Unprepared as he was for the large pill he had to
swallow, he got it down. "And now," said Mr. Stryver,
shaking his forensic forefinger at the Temple in general,
when it was down, "my way out of this, is, to put you all
in the wrong."
It was a bit of the art of an Old Bailey tactician,
in which he found great relief. "You shall not put me in
the wrong, young lady," said Mr. Stryver; "I'll do that
for you."
Accordingly, when Mr. Lorry called that night as
late as ten o'clock, Mr. Stryver, among a quantity of
books and papers littered out for the purpose, seemed to
have nothing less on his mind than the subject of the
morning. He even showed surprise when he saw Mr. Lorry,
and was altogether in an absent and preoccupied
state.
"Well!" said that good-natured emissary, after a
full half-hour of bootless attempts to bring him round to
the question. "I have been to Soho."
"To Soho?" repeated Mr. Stryver, coldly. "Oh, to be
sure! What am I thinking of!"
"And I have no doubt," said Mr. Lorry, "that I was
right in the conversation we had. My opinion is
confirmed, and I reiterate my advice."
"I assure you," returned Mr. Stryver, in the
friendliest way, "that I am sorry for it on your account,
and sorry for it on the poor father's account. I know
this must always be a sore subject with the family; let
us say no more about it."
"I don't understand you," said Mr. Lorry.
"I dare say not," rejoined Stryver, nodding his
head in a smoothing and final way; "no matter, no
matter."
"But it does matter," Mr. Lorry urged.
"No it doesn't; I assure you it doesn't. Having
supposed that there was sense where there is no sense,
and a laudable ambition where there is not a laudable
ambition, I am well out of my mistake, and no harm is
done. Young women have committed similar follies often
before, and have repented them in poverty and obscurity
often before. In an unselfish aspect, I am sorry that the
thing is dropped, because it would have been a bad thing
for me in a worldly point of view; in a selfish aspect, I
am glad that the thing has dropped, because it would have
been a bad thing for me in a worldly point of view-- it
is hardly necessary to say I could have gained nothing by
it. There is no harm at all done. I have not proposed to
the young lady, and, between ourselves, I am by no means
certain, on reflection, that I ever should have committed
myself to that extent. Mr. Lorry, you cannot control the
mincing vanities and giddinesses of empty-headed girls;
you must not expect to do it, or you will always be
disappointed. Now, pray say no more about it. I tell you,
I regret it on account of others, but I am satisfied on
my own account. And I am really very much obliged to you
for allowing me to sound you, and for giving me your
advice; you know the young lady better than I do; you
were right, it never would have done."
Mr. Lorry was so taken aback, that he looked quite
stupidly at Mr. Stryver shouldering him towards the door,
with an appearance of showering generosity, forbearance,
and goodwill, on his erring head. "Make the best of it,
my dear sir," said Stryver; "say no more about it; thank
you again for allowing me to sound you; good
night!"
Mr. Lorry was out in the night, before he knew
where he was. Mr. Stryver was lying back on his sofa,
winking at his ceiling.
XIII
The Fellow of No Delicacy
If Sydney Carton ever shone anywhere, he certainly
never shone in the house of Doctor Manette. He had been
there often, during a whole year, and had always been the
same moody and morose lounger there. When he cared to
talk, he talked well; but, the cloud of caring for
nothing, which overshadowed him with such a fatal
darkness, was very rarely pierced by the light within
him.
And yet he did care something for the streets that
environed that house, and for the senseless stones that
made their pavements. Many a night he vaguely and
unhappily wandered there, when wine had brought no
transitory gladness to him; many a dreary daybreak
revealed his solitary figure lingering there, and still
lingering there when the first beams of the sun brought
into strong relief, removed beauties of architecture in
spires of churches and lofty buildings, as perhaps the
quiet time brought some sense of better things, else
forgotten and unattainable, into his mind. Of late, the
neglected bed in the Temple Court had known him more
scantily than ever; and often when he had thrown himself
upon it no longer than a few minutes, he had got up
again, and haunted that neighbourhood.
On a day in August, when Mr. Stryver (after
notifying to his jackal that "he had thought better of
that marrying matter") had carried his delicacy into
Devonshire, and when the sight and scent of flowers in
the City streets had some waifs of goodness in them for
the worst, of health for the sickliest, and of youth for
the oldest, Sydney's feet still trod those stones. From
being irresolute and purposeless, his feet became
animated by an intention, and, in the working out of that
intention, they took him to the Doctor's door.
He was shown up-stairs, and found Lucie at her
work, alone. She had never been quite at her ease with
him, and received him with some little embarrassment as
he seated himself near her table. But, looking up at his
face in the interchange of the first few common-places,
she observed a change in it.
"I fear you are not well, Mr. Carton!"
"No. But the life I lead, Miss Manette, is not
conducive to health. What is to be expected of, or by,
such profligates?"
"Is it not--forgive me; I have begun the question
on my lips--a pity to live no better life?"
"God knows it is a shame!"
"Then why not change it?"
Looking gently at him again, she was surprised and
saddened to see that there were tears in his eyes. There
were tears in his voice too, as he answered:
"It is too late for that. I shall never be better
than I am. I shall sink lower, and be worse."
He leaned an elbow on her table, and covered his
eyes with his hand. The table trembled in the silence
that followed.
She had never seen him softened, and was much
distressed. He knew her to be so, without looking at her,
and said:
"Pray forgive me, Miss Manette. I break down before
the knowledge of what I want to say to you. Will you hear
me?"
"If it will do you any good, Mr. Carton, if it
would make you happier, it would make me very
glad!"
"God bless you for your sweet compassion!"
He unshaded his face after a little while, and
spoke steadily.
"Don't be afraid to hear me. Don't shrink from
anything I say. I am like one who died young. All my life
might have been."
"No, Mr. Carton. I am sure that the best part of it
might still be; I am sure that you might be much, much
worthier of yourself."
"Say of you, Miss Manette, and although I know
better--although in the mystery of my own wretched heart
I know better--I shall never forget it!"
She was pale and trembling. He came to her relief
with a fixed despair of himself which made the interview
unlike any other that could have been holden.
"If it had been possible, Miss Manette, that you
could have returned the love of the man you see before
yourself--flung away, wasted, drunken, poor creature of
misuse as you know him to be--he would have been
conscious this day and hour, in spite of his happiness,
that he would bring you to misery, bring you to sorrow
and repentance, blight you, disgrace you, pull you down
with him. I know very well that you can have no
tenderness for me; I ask for none; I am even thankful
that it cannot be."
"Without it, can I not save you, Mr. Carton? Can I
not recall you-- forgive me again!--to a better course?
Can I in no way repay your confidence? I know this is a
confidence," she modestly said, after a little
hesitation, and in earnest tears, "I know you would say
this to no one else. Can I turn it to no good account for
yourself, Mr. Carton?"
He shook his head.
"To none. No, Miss Manette, to none. If you will
hear me through a very little more, all you can ever do
for me is done. I wish you to know that you have been the
last dream of my soul. In my degradation I have not been
so degraded but that the sight of you with your father,
and of this home made such a home by you, has stirred old
shadows that I thought had died out of me. Since I knew
you, I have been troubled by a remorse that I thought
would never reproach me again, and have heard whispers
from old voices impelling me upward, that I thought were
silent for ever. I have had unformed ideas of striving
afresh, beginning anew, shaking off sloth and sensuality,
and fighting out the abandoned fight. A dream, all a
dream, that ends in nothing, and leaves the sleeper where
he lay down, but I wish you to know that you inspired
it."
"Will nothing of it remain? O Mr. Carton, think
again! Try again!"
"No, Miss Manette; all through it, I have known
myself to be quite undeserving. And yet I have had the
weakness, and have still the weakness, to wish you to
know with what a sudden mastery you kindled me, heap of
ashes that I am, into fire--a fire, however, inseparable
in its nature from myself, quickening nothing, lighting
nothing, doing no service, idly burning away."
"Since it is my misfortune, Mr. Carton, to have
made you more unhappy than you were before you knew
me--"
"Don't say that, Miss Manette, for you would have
reclaimed me, if anything could. you will not be the
cause of my becoming worse."
"Since the state of your mind that you describe,
is, at all events, attributable to some influence of
mine--this is what I mean, if I can make it plain--can I
use no influence to serve you? Have I no power for good,
with you, at all?"
"The utmost good that I am capable of now, Miss
Manette, I have come here to realise. Let me carry
through the rest of my misdirected life, the remembrance
that I opened my heart to you, last of all the world; and
that there was something left in me at this time which
you could deplore and pity."
"Which I entreated you to believe, again and again,
most fervently, with all my heart, was capable of better
things, Mr. Carton!"
"Entreat me to believe it no more, Miss Manette. I
have proved myself, and I know better. I distress you; I
draw fast to an end. Will you let me believe, when I
recall this day, that the last confidence of my life was
reposed in your pure and innocent breast, and that it
lies there alone, and will be shared by no one?"
"If that will be a consolation to you, yes."
"Not even by the dearest one ever to be known to
you?"
"Mr. Carton," she answered, after an agitated
pause, "the secret is yours, not mine; and I promise to
respect it."
"Thank you. And again, God bless you."
He put her hand to his lips, and moved towards the
door.
"Be under no apprehension, Miss Manette, of my ever
resuming this conversation by so much as a passing word.
I will never refer to it again. If I were dead, that
could not be surer than it is henceforth. In the hour of
my death, I shall hold sacred the one good remembrance--
and shall thank and bless you for it--that my last avowal
of myself was made to you, and that my name, and faults,
and miseries were gently carried in your heart. May it
otherwise be light and happy!"
He was so unlike what he had ever shown himself to
be, and it was so sad to think how much he had thrown
away, and how much he every day kept down and perverted,
that Lucie Manette wept mournfully for him as he stood
looking back at her.
"Be comforted!" he said, "I am not worth such
feeling, Miss Manette. An hour or two hence, and the low
companions and low habits that I scorn but yield to, will
render me less worth such tears as those, than any wretch
who creeps along the streets. Be comforted! But, within
myself, I shall always be, towards you, what I am now,
though outwardly I shall be what you have heretofore seen
me. The last supplication but one I make to you, is, that
you will believe this of me."
"I will, Mr. Carton."
"My last supplication of all, is this; and with it,
I will relieve you of a visitor with whom I well know you
have nothing in unison, and between whom and you there is
an impassable space. It is useless to say it, I know, but
it rises out of my soul. For you, and for any dear to
you, I would do anything. If my career were of that
better kind that there was any opportunity or capacity of
sacrifice in it, I would embrace any sacrifice for you
and for those dear to you. Try to hold me in your mind,
at some quiet times, as ardent and sincere in this one
thing. The time will come, the time will not be long in
coming, when new ties will be formed about you--ties that
will bind you yet more tenderly and strongly to the home
you so adorn--the dearest ties that will ever grace and
gladden you. O Miss Manette, when the little picture of a
happy father's face looks up in yours, when you see your
own bright beauty springing up anew at your feet, think
now and then that there is a man who would give his life,
to keep a life you love beside you!"
He said, "Farewell!" said a last "God bless you!"
and left her.
XIV
The Honest Tradesman
To the eyes of Mr. Jeremiah Cruncher, sitting on
his stool in Fleet-street with his grisly urchin beside
him, a vast number and variety of objects in movement
were every day presented. Who could sit upon anything in
Fleet-street during the busy hours of the day, and not be
dazed and deafened by two immense processions, one ever
tending westward with the sun, the other ever tending
eastward from the sun, both ever tending to the plains
beyond the range of red and purple where the sun goes
down!
With his straw in his mouth, Mr. Cruncher sat
watching the two streams, like the heathen rustic who has
for several centuries been on duty watching one
stream--saving that Jerry had no expectation of their
ever running dry. Nor would it have been an expectation
of a hopeful kind, since a small part of his income was
derived from the pilotage of timid women (mostly of a
full habit and past the middle term of life) from
Tellson's side of the tides to the opposite shore. Brief
as such companionship was in every separate instance, Mr.
Cruncher never failed to become so interested in the lady
as to express a strong desire to have the honour of
drinking her very good health. And it was from the gifts
bestowed upon him towards the execution of this
benevolent purpose, that he recruited his finances, as
just now observed.
Time was, when a poet sat upon a stool in a public
place, and mused in the sight of men. Mr. Cruncher,
sitting on a stool in a public place, but not being a
poet, mused as little as possible, and looked about
him.
It fell out that he was thus engaged in a season
when crowds were few, and belated women few, and when his
affairs in general were so unprosperous as to awaken a
strong suspicion in his breast that Mrs. Cruncher must
have been "flopping" in some pointed manner, when an
unusual concourse pouring down Fleet-street westward,
attracted his attention. Looking that way, Mr. Cruncher
made out that some kind of funeral was coming along, and
that there was popular objection to this funeral, which
engendered uproar.
"Young Jerry," said Mr. Cruncher, turning to his
offspring, "it's a buryin'."
"Hooroar, father!" cried Young Jerry.
The young gentleman uttered this exultant sound
with mysterious significance. The elder gentleman took
the cry so ill, that he watched his opportunity, and
smote the young gentleman on the ear.
"What d'ye mean? What are you hooroaring at? What
do you want to conwey to your own father, you young Rip?
This boy is a getting too many for ME!" said Mr.
Cruncher, surveying him. "Him and his hooroars! Don't let
me hear no more of you, or you shall feel some more of
me. D'ye hear?"
"I warn't doing no harm," Young Jerry protested,
rubbing his cheek.
"Drop it then," said Mr. Cruncher; "I won't have
none of YOUR no harms. Get a top of that there seat, and
look at the crowd."
His son obeyed, and the crowd approached; they were
bawling and hissing round a dingy hearse and dingy
mourning coach, in which mourning coach there was only
one mourner, dressed in the dingy trappings that were
considered essential to the dignity of the position. The
position appeared by no means to please him, however,
with an increasing rabble surrounding the coach, deriding
him, making grimaces at him, and incessantly groaning and
calling out: "Yah! Spies! Tst! Yaha! Spies!" with many
compliments too numerous and forcible to repeat.
Funerals had at all times a remarkable attraction
for Mr. Cruncher; he always pricked up his senses, and
became excited, when a funeral passed Tellson's.
Naturally, therefore, a funeral with this uncommon
attendance excited him greatly, and he asked of the first
man who ran against him:
"What is it, brother? What's it about?"
"_I_ don't know," said the man. "Spies! Yaha! Tst!
Spies!"
He asked another man. "Who is it?"
"_I_ don't know," returned the man, clapping his
hands to his mouth nevertheless, and vociferating in a
surprising heat and with the greatest ardour, "Spies!
Yaha! Tst, tst! Spi--ies!"
At length, a person better informed on the merits
of the case, tumbled against him, and from this person he
learned that the funeral was the funeral of one Roger
Cly.
"Was He a spy?" asked Mr. Cruncher.
"Old Bailey spy," returned his informant. "Yaha!
Tst! Yah! Old Bailey Spi--i--ies!"
"Why, to be sure!" exclaimed Jerry, recalling the
Trial at which he had assisted. "I've seen him. Dead, is
he?"
"Dead as mutton," returned the other, "and can't be
too dead. Have 'em out, there! Spies! Pull 'em out,
there! Spies!"
The idea was so acceptable in the prevalent absence
of any idea, that the crowd caught it up with eagerness,
and loudly repeating the suggestion to have 'em out, and
to pull 'em out, mobbed the two vehicles so closely that
they came to a stop. On the crowd's opening the coach
doors, the one mourner scuffled out of himself and was in
their hands for a moment; but he was so alert, and made
such good use of his time, that in another moment he was
scouring away up a bye-street, after shedding his cloak,
hat, long hatband, white pocket-handkerchief, and other
symbolical tears.
These, the people tore to pieces and scattered far
and wide with great enjoyment, while the tradesmen
hurriedly shut up their shops; for a crowd in those times
stopped at nothing, and was a monster much dreaded. They
had already got the length of opening the hearse to take
the coffin out, when some brighter genius proposed
instead, its being escorted to its destination amidst
general rejoicing. Practical suggestions being much
needed, this suggestion, too, was received with
acclamation, and the coach was immediately filled with
eight inside and a dozen out, while as many people got on
the roof of the hearse as could by any exercise of
ingenuity stick upon it. Among the first of these
volunteers was Jerry Cruncher himself, who modestly
concealed his spiky head from the observation of
Tellson's, in the further corner of the mourning
coach.
The officiating undertakers made some protest
against these changes in the ceremonies; but, the river
being alarmingly near, and several voices remarking on
the efficacy of cold immersion in bringing refractory
members of the profession to reason, the protest was
faint and brief. The remodelled procession started, with
a chimney-sweep driving the hearse--advised by the
regular driver, who was perched beside him, under close
inspection, for the purpose--and with a pieman, also
attended by his cabinet minister, driving the mourning
coach. A bear-leader, a popular street character of the
time, was impressed as an additional ornament, before the
cavalcade had gone far down the Strand; and his bear, who
was black and very mangy, gave quite an Undertaking air
to that part of the procession in which he walked.
Thus, with beer-drinking, pipe-smoking,
song-roaring, and infinite caricaturing of woe, the
disorderly procession went its way, recruiting at every
step, and all the shops shutting up before it. Its
destination was the old church of Saint Pancras, far off
in the fields. It got there in course of time; insisted
on pouring into the burial-ground; finally, accomplished
the interment of the deceased Roger Cly in its own way,
and highly to its own satisfaction.
The dead man disposed of, and the crowd being under
the necessity of providing some other entertainment for
itself, another brighter genius (or perhaps the same)
conceived the humour of impeaching casual passers-by, as
Old Bailey spies, and wreaking vengeance on them. Chase
was given to some scores of inoffensive persons who had
never been near the Old Bailey in their lives, in the
realisation of this fancy, and they were roughly hustled
and maltreated. The transition to the sport of
window-breaking, and thence to the plundering of
public-houses, was easy and natural. At last, after
several hours, when sundry summer-houses had been pulled
down, and some area-railings had been torn up, to arm the
more belligerent spirits, a rumour got about that the
Guards were coming. Before this rumour, the crowd
gradually melted away, and perhaps the Guards came, and
perhaps they never came, and this was the usual progress
of a mob.
Mr. Cruncher did not assist at the closing sports,
but had remained behind in the churchyard, to confer and
condole with the undertakers. The place had a soothing
influence on him. He procured a pipe from a neighbouring
public-house, and smoked it, looking in at the railings
and maturely considering the spot.
"Jerry," said Mr. Cruncher, apostrophising himself
in his usual way, "you see that there Cly that day, and
you see with your own eyes that he was a young 'un and a
straight made 'un."
Having smoked his pipe out, and ruminated a little
longer, he turned himself about, that he might appear,
before the hour of closing, on his station at Tellson's.
Whether his meditations on mortality had touched his
liver, or whether his general health had been previously
at all amiss, or whether he desired to show a little
attention to an eminent man, is not so much to the
purpose, as that he made a short call upon his medical
adviser--a distinguished surgeon--on his way back.
Young Jerry relieved his father with dutiful
interest, and reported No job in his absence. The bank
closed, the ancient clerks came out, the usual watch was
set, and Mr. Cruncher and his son went home to
tea.
"Now, I tell you where it is!" said Mr. Cruncher to
his wife, on entering. "If, as a honest tradesman, my
wenturs goes wrong to-night, I shall make sure that
you've been praying again me, and I shall work you for it
just the same as if I seen you do it."
The dejected Mrs. Cruncher shook her head.
"Why, you're at it afore my face!" said Mr.
Cruncher, with signs of angry apprehension.
"I am saying nothing."
"Well, then; don't meditate nothing. You might as
well flop as meditate. You may as well go again me one
way as another. Drop it altogether."
"Yes, Jerry."
"Yes, Jerry," repeated Mr. Cruncher sitting down to
tea. "Ah! It IS yes, Jerry. That's about it. You may say
yes, Jerry."
Mr. Cruncher had no particular meaning in these
sulky corroborations, but made use of them, as people not
unfrequently do, to express general ironical
dissatisfaction.
"You and your yes, Jerry," said Mr. Cruncher,
taking a bite out of his bread-and-butter, and seeming to
help it down with a large invisible oyster out of his
saucer. "Ah! I think so. I believe you."
"You are going out to-night?" asked his decent
wife, when he took another bite.
"Yes, I am."
"May I go with you, father?" asked his son,
briskly.
"No, you mayn't. I'm a going--as your mother
knows--a fishing. That's where I'm going to. Going a
fishing."
"Your fishing-rod gets rayther rusty; don't it,
father?"
"Never you mind."
"Shall you bring any fish home, father?"
"If I don't, you'll have short commons, to-morrow,"
returned that gentleman, shaking his head; "that's
questions enough for you; I ain't a going out, till
you've been long abed."
He devoted himself during the remainder of the
evening to keeping a most vigilant watch on Mrs.
Cruncher, and sullenly holding her in conversation that
she might be prevented from meditating any petitions to
his disadvantage. With this view, he urged his son to
hold her in conversation also, and led the unfortunate
woman a hard life by dwelling on any causes of complaint
he could bring against her, rather than he would leave
her for a moment to her own reflections. The devoutest
person could have rendered no greater homage to the
efficacy of an honest prayer than he did in this distrust
of his wife. It was as if a professed unbeliever in
ghosts should be frightened by a ghost story.
"And mind you!" said Mr. Cruncher. "No games
to-morrow! If I, as a honest tradesman, succeed in
providing a jinte of meat or two, none of your not
touching of it, and sticking to bread. If I, as a honest
tradesman, am able to provide a little beer, none of your
declaring on water. When you go to Rome, do as Rome does.
Rome will be a ugly customer to you, if you don't. _I_'m
your Rome, you know."
Then he began grumbling again:
"With your flying into the face of your own wittles
and drink! I don't know how scarce you mayn't make the
wittles and drink here, by your flopping tricks and your
unfeeling conduct. Look at your boy: he IS your'n, ain't
he? He's as thin as a lath. Do you call yourself a
mother, and not know that a mother's first duty is to
blow her boy out?"
This touched Young Jerry on a tender place; who
adjured his mother to perform her first duty, and,
whatever else she did or neglected, above all things to
lay especial stress on the discharge of that maternal
function so affectingly and delicately indicated by his
other parent.
Thus the evening wore away with the Cruncher
family, until Young Jerry was ordered to bed, and his
mother, laid under similar injunctions, obeyed them. Mr.
Cruncher beguiled the earlier watches of the night with
solitary pipes, and did not start upon his excursion
until nearly one o'clock. Towards that small and ghostly
hour, he rose up from his chair, took a key out of his
pocket, opened a locked cupboard, and brought forth a
sack, a crowbar of convenient size, a rope and chain, and
other fishing tackle of that nature. Disposing these
articles about him in skilful manner, he bestowed a
parting defiance on Mrs. Cruncher, extinguished the
light, and went out.
Young Jerry, who had only made a feint of
undressing when he went to bed, was not long after his
father. Under cover of the darkness he followed out of
the room, followed down the stairs, followed down the
court, followed out into the streets. He was in no
uneasiness concerning his getting into the house again,
for it was full of lodgers, and the door stood ajar all
night.
Impelled by a laudable ambition to study the art
and mystery of his father's honest calling, Young Jerry,
keeping as close to house fronts, walls, and doorways, as
his eyes were close to one another, held his honoured
parent in view. The honoured parent steering Northward,
had not gone far, when he was joined by another disciple
of Izaak Walton, and the two trudged on together.
Within half an hour from the first starting, they
were beyond the winking lamps, and the more than winking
watchmen, and were out upon a lonely road. Another
fisherman was picked up here--and that so silently, that
if Young Jerry had been superstitious, he might have
supposed the second follower of the gentle craft to have,
all of a sudden, split himself into two.
The three went on, and Young Jerry went on, until
the three stopped under a bank overhanging the road. Upon
the top of the bank was a low brick wall, surmounted by
an iron railing. In the shadow of bank and wall the three
turned out of the road, and up a blind lane, of which the
wall--there, risen to some eight or ten feet high--formed
one side. Crouching down in a corner, peeping up the
lane, the next object that Young Jerry saw, was the form
of his honoured parent, pretty well defined against a
watery and clouded moon, nimbly scaling an iron gate. He
was soon over, and then the second fisherman got over,
and then the third. They all dropped softly on the ground
within the gate, and lay there a little--listening
perhaps. Then, they moved away on their hands and
knees.
It was now Young Jerry's turn to approach the gate:
which he did, holding his breath. Crouching down again in
a corner there, and looking in, he made out the three
fishermen creeping through some rank grass! and all the
gravestones in the churchyard--it was a large churchyard
that they were in--looking on like ghosts in white, while
the church tower itself looked on Eke the ghost of a
monstrous giant. They did not creep far, before they
stopped and stood upright. And then they began to
fish.
They fished with a spade, at first. Presently the
honoured parent appeared to be adjusting some instrument
like a great corkscrew. Whatever tools they worked with,
they worked hard, until the awful striking of the church
clock so terrified Young Jerry, that he made off, with
his hair as stiff as his father's.
But, his long-cherished desire to know more about
these matters, not only stopped him in his running away,
but lured him back again. They were still fishing
perseveringly, when he peeped in at the gate for the
second time; but, now they seemed to have got a bite.
There was a screwing and complaining sound down below,
and their bent figures were strained, as if by a weight.
By slow degrees the weight broke away the earth upon it,
and came to the surface. Young Jerry very well knew what
it would be; but, when he saw it, and saw his honoured
parent about to wrench it open, he was so frightened,
being new to the sight, that he made off again, and never
stopped until he had run a mile or more.
He would not have stopped then, for anything less
necessary than breath, it being a spectral sort of race
that he ran, and one highly desirable to get to the end
of. He had a strong idea that the coffin he had seen was
running after him; and, pictured as hopping on behind
him, bolt upright, upon its narrow end, always on the
point of overtaking him and hopping on at his
side--perhaps taking his arm-- it was a pursuer to shun.
It was an inconsistent and ubiquitous fiend too, for,
while it was making the whole night behind him dreadful,
he darted out into the roadway to avoid dark alleys,
fearful of its coming hopping out of them like a
dropsical boy's-Kite without tail and wings. It hid in
doorways too, rubbing its horrible shoulders against
doors, and drawing them up to its ears, as if it were
laughing. It got into shadows on the road, and lay
cunningly on its back to trip him up. All this time it
was incessantly hopping on behind and gaining on him, so
that when the boy got to his own door he had reason for
being half dead. And even then it would not leave him,
but followed him upstairs with a bump on every stair,
scrambled into bed with him, and bumped down, dead and
heavy, on his breast when he fell asleep.
>From his oppressed slumber, Young Jerry in his
closet was awakened after daybreak and before sunrise, by
the presence of his father in the family room. Something
had gone wrong with him; at least, so Young Jerry
inferred, from the circumstance of his holding Mrs.
Cruncher by the ears, and knocking the back of her head
against the head-board of the bed.
"I told you I would," said Mr. Cruncher, "and I
did."
"Jerry, Jerry, Jerry!" his wife implored.
"You oppose yourself to the profit of the
business," said Jerry, "and me and my partners suffer.
You was to honour and obey; why the devil don't
you?"
"I try to be a good wife, Jerry," the poor woman
protested, with tears.
"Is it being a good wife to oppose your husband's
business? Is it honouring your husband to dishonour his
business? Is it obeying your husband to disobey him on
the wital subject of his business?"
"You hadn't taken to the dreadful business then,
Jerry."
"It's enough for you," retorted Mr. Cruncher, "to
be the wife of a honest tradesman, and not to occupy your
female mind with calculations when he took to his trade
or when he didn't. A honouring and obeying wife would let
his trade alone altogether. Call yourself a religious
woman? If you're a religious woman, give me a irreligious
one! You have no more nat'ral sense of duty than the bed
of this here Thames river has of a pile, and similarly it
must be knocked into you."
The altercation was conducted in a low tone of
voice, and terminated in the honest tradesman's kicking
off his clay-soiled boots, and lying down at his length
on the floor. After taking a timid peep at him lying on
his back, with his rusty hands under his head for a
pillow, his son lay down too, and fell asleep
again.
There was no fish for breakfast, and not much of
anything else. Mr. Cruncher was out of spirits, and out
of temper, and kept an iron pot-lid by him as a
projectile for the correction of Mrs. Cruncher, in case
he should observe any symptoms of her saying Grace. He
was brushed and washed at the usual hour, and set off
with his son to pursue his ostensible calling.
Young Jerry, walking with the stool under his arm
at his father's side along sunny and crowded
Fleet-street, was a very different Young Jerry from him
of the previous night, running home through darkness and
solitude from his grim pursuer. His cunning was fresh
with the day, and his qualms were gone with the night--in
which particulars it is not improbable that he had
compeers in Fleet-street and the City of London, that
fine morning.
"Father," said Young Jerry, as they walked along:
taking care to keep at arm's length and to have the stool
well between them: "what's a Resurrection-Man?"
Mr. Cruncher came to a stop on the pavement before
he answered, "How should I know?"
"I thought you knowed everything, father," said the
artless boy.
"Hem! Well," returned Mr. Cruncher, going on again,
and lifting off his hat to give his spikes free play,
"he's a tradesman."
"What's his goods, father?" asked the brisk Young
Jerry.
"His goods," said Mr. Cruncher, after turning it
over in his mind, "is a branch of Scientific
goods."
"Persons' bodies, ain't it, father?" asked the
lively boy.
"I believe it is something of that sort," said Mr.
Cruncher.
"Oh, father, I should so like to be a
Resurrection-Man when I'm quite growed up!"
Mr. Cruncher was soothed, but shook his head in a
dubious and moral way. "It depends upon how you dewelop
your talents. Be careful to dewelop your talents, and
never to say no more than you can help to nobody, and
there's no telling at the present time what you may not
come to be fit for." As Young Jerry, thus encouraged,
went on a few yards in advance, to plant the stool in the
shadow of the Bar, Mr. Cruncher added to himself: "Jerry,
you honest tradesman, there's hopes wot that boy will yet
be a blessing to you, and a recompense to you for his
mother!"
XV
Knitting
There had been earlier drinking than usual in the
wine-shop of Monsieur Defarge. As early as six o'clock in
the morning, sallow faces peeping through its barred
windows had descried other faces within, bending over
measures of wine. Monsieur Defarge sold a very thin wine
at the best of times, but it would seem to have been an
unusually thin wine that he sold at this time. A sour
wine, moreover, or a souring, for its influence on the
mood of those who drank it was to make them gloomy. No
vivacious Bacchanalian flame leaped out of the pressed
grape of Monsieur Defarge: but, a smouldering fire that
burnt in the dark, lay hidden in the dregs of it.
This had been the third morning in succession, on
which there had been early drinking at the wine-shop of
Monsieur Defarge. It had begun on Monday, and here was
Wednesday come. There had been more of early brooding
than drinking; for, many men had listened and whispered
and slunk about there from the time of the opening of the
door, who could not have laid a piece of money on the
counter to save their souls. These were to the full as
interested in the place, however, as if they could have
commanded whole barrels of wine; and they glided from
seat to seat, and from corner to corner, swallowing talk
in lieu of drink, with greedy looks.
Notwithstanding an unusual flow of company, the
master of the wine-shop was not visible. He was not
missed; for, nobody who crossed the threshold looked for
him, nobody asked for him, nobody wondered to see only
Madame Defarge in her seat, presiding over the
distribution of wine, with a bowl of battered small coins
before her, as much defaced and beaten out of their
original impress as the small coinage of humanity from
whose ragged pockets they had come.
A suspended interest and a prevalent absence of
mind, were perhaps observed by the spies who looked in at
the wine-shop, as they looked in at every place, high and
low, from the kings palace to the criminal's gaol. Games
at cards languished, players at dominoes musingly built
towers with them, drinkers drew figures on the tables
with spilt drops of wine, Madame Defarge herself picked
out the pattern on her sleeve with her toothpick, and saw
and heard something inaudible and invisible a long way
off.
Thus, Saint Antoine in this vinous feature of his,
until midday. It was high noontide, when two dusty men
passed through his streets and under his swinging lamps:
of whom, one was Monsieur Defarge: the other a mender of
roads in a blue cap. All adust and athirst, the two
entered the wine-shop. Their arrival had lighted a kind
of fire in the breast of Saint Antoine, fast spreading as
they came along, which stirred and flickered in flames of
faces at most doors and windows. Yet, no one had followed
them, and no man spoke when they entered the wine-shop,
though the eyes of every man there were turned upon
them.
"Good day, gentlemen!" said Monsieur
Defarge.
It may have been a signal for loosening the general
tongue. It elicited an answering chorus of "Good
day!"
"It is bad weather, gentlemen," said Defarge,
shaking his head.
Upon which, every man looked at his neighbour, and
then an cast down their eyes and sat silent. Except one
man, who got up and went out.
"My wife," said Defarge aloud, addressing Madame
Defarge: "I have travelled certain leagues with this good
mender of roads, called Jacques. I met him--by
accident--a day and half's journey out of Paris. He is a
good child, this mender of roads, called Jacques. Give
him to drink, my wife!"
A second man got up and went out. Madame Defarge
set wine before the mender of roads called Jacques, who
doffed his blue cap to the company, and drank. In the
breast of his blouse he carried some coarse dark bread;
he ate of this between whiles, and sat munching and
drinking near Madame Defarge's counter. A third man got
up and went out.
Defarge refreshed himself with a draught of
wine--but, he took less than was given to the stranger,
as being himself a man to whom it was no rarity--and
stood waiting until the countryman had made his
breakfast. He looked at no one present, and no one now
looked at him; not even Madame Defarge, who had taken up
her knitting, and was at work.
"Have you finished your repast, friend?" he asked,
in due season.
"Yes, thank you."
"Come, then! You shall see the apartment that I
told you you could occupy. It will suit you to a
marvel."
Out of the wine-shop into the street, out of the
street into a courtyard, out of the courtyard up a steep
staircase, out of the staircase into a garret,--formerly
the garret where a white-haired man sat on a low bench,
stooping forward and very busy, making shoes.
No white-haired man was there now; but, the three
men were there who had gone out of the wine-shop singly.
And between them and the white-haired man afar off, was
the one small link, that they had once looked in at him
through the chinks in the wall.
Defarge closed the door carefully, and spoke in a
subdued voice:
"Jacques One, Jacques Two, Jacques Three! This is
the witness encountered by appointment, by me, Jacques
Four. He will tell you all. Speak, Jacques Five!"
The mender of roads, blue cap in hand, wiped his
swarthy forehead with it, and said, "Where shall I
commence, monsieur?"
"Commence," was Monsieur Defarge's not unreasonable
reply, "at the commencement."
"I saw him then, messieurs," began the mender of
roads, "a year ago this running summer, underneath the
carriage of the Marquis, hanging by the chain. Behold the
manner of it. I leaving my work on the road, the sun
going to bed, the carriage of the Marquis slowly
ascending the hill, he hanging by the chain--like
this."
Again the mender of roads went through the whole
performance; in which he ought to have been perfect by
that time, seeing that it had been the infallible
resource and indispensable entertainment of his village
during a whole year.
Jacques One struck in, and asked if he had ever
seen the man before?
"Never," answered the mender of roads, recovering
his perpendicular.
Jacques Three demanded how he afterwards recognised
him then?
"By his tall figure," said the mender of roads,
softly, and with his finger at his nose. "When Monsieur
the Marquis demands that evening, 'Say, what is he like?'
I make response, `Tall as a spectre.'"
"You should have said, short as a dwarf," returned
Jacques Two.
"But what did I know? The deed was not then
accomplished, neither did he confide in me. Observe!
Under those circumstances even, I do not offer my
testimony. Monsieur the Marquis indicates me with his
finger, standing near our little fountain, and says, `To
me! Bring that rascal!' My faith, messieurs, I offer
nothing."
"He is right there, Jacques," murmured Defarge, to
him who had interrupted. "Go on!"
"Good!" said the mender of roads, with an air of
mystery. "The tall man is lost, and he is sought--how
many months? Nine, ten, eleven?"
"No matter, the number," said Defarge. "He is well
hidden, but at last he is unluckily found. Go on!"
"I am again at work upon the hill-side, and the sun
is again about to go to bed. I am collecting my tools to
descend to my cottage down in the village below, where it
is already dark, when I raise my eyes, and see coming
over the hill six soldiers. In the midst of them is a
tall man with his arms bound--tied to his sides--like
this!"
With the aid of his indispensable cap, he
represented a man with his elbows bound fast at his hips,
with cords that were knotted behind him.
"I stand aside, messieurs, by my heap of stones, to
see the soldiers and their prisoner pass (for it is a
solitary road, that, where any spectacle is well worth
looking at), and at first, as they approach, I see no
more than that they are six soldiers with a tall man
bound, and that they are almost black to my sight--except
on the side of the sun going to bed, where they have a
red edge, messieurs. Also, I see that their long shadows
are on the hollow ridge on the opposite side of the road,
and are on the hill above it, and are like the shadows of
giants. Also, I see that they are covered with dust, and
that the dust moves with them as they come, tramp, tramp!
But when they advance quite near to me, I recognise the
tall man, and he recognises me. Ah, but he would be well
content to precipitate himself over the hill-side once
again, as on the evening when he and I first encountered,
close to the same spot!"
He described it as if he were there, and it was
evident that he saw it vividly; perhaps he had not seen
much in his life.
"I do not show the soldiers that I recognise the
tall man; he does not show the soldiers that he
recognises me; we do it, and we know it, with our eyes.
`Come on!' says the chief of that company, pointing to
the village, `bring him fast to his tomb!' and they bring
him faster. I follow. His arms are swelled because of
being bound so tight, his wooden shoes are large and
clumsy, and he is lame. Because he is lame, and
consequently slow, they drive him with their guns--like
this!"
He imitated the action of a man's being impelled
forward by the butt-ends of muskets.
"As they descend the hill like madmen running a
race, he falls. They laugh and pick him up again. His
face is bleeding and covered with dust, but he cannot
touch it; thereupon they laugh again. They bring him into
the village; all the village runs to look; they take him
past the mill, and up to the prison; all the village sees
the prison gate open in the darkness of the night, and
swallow him--like this!"
He opened his mouth as wide as he could, and shut
it with a sounding snap of his teeth. Observant of his
unwillingness to mar the effect by opening it again,
Defarge said, "Go on, Jacques."
"All the village," pursued the mender of roads, on
tiptoe and in a low voice, "withdraws; all the village
whispers by the fountain; all the village sleeps; all the
village dreams of that unhappy one, within the locks and
bars of the prison on the crag, and never to come out of
it, except to perish. In the morning, with my tools upon
my shoulder, eating my morsel of black bread as I go, I
make a circuit by the prison, on my way to my work. There
I see him, high up, behind the bars of a lofty iron cage,
bloody and dusty as last night, looking through. He has
no hand free, to wave to me; I dare not call to him; he
regards me like a dead man."
Defarge and the three glanced darkly at one
another. The looks of all of them were dark, repressed,
and revengeful, as they listened to the countryman's
story; the manner of all of them, while it was secret,
was authoritative too. They had the air of a rough
tribunal; Jacques One and Two sitting on the old
pallet-bed, each with his chin resting on his hand, and
his eyes intent on the road-mender; Jacques Three,
equally intent, on one knee behind them, with his
agitated hand always gliding over the network of fine
nerves about his mouth and nose; Defarge standing between
them and the narrator, whom he had stationed in the light
of the window, by turns looking from him to them, and
from them to him.
"Go on, Jacques," said Defarge.
"He remains up there in his iron cage some days.
The village looks at him by stealth, for it is afraid.
But it always looks up, from a distance, at the prison on
the crag; and in the evening, when the work of the day is
achieved and it assembles to gossip at the fountain, all
faces are turned towards the prison. Formerly, they were
turned towards the posting-house; now, they are turned
towards the prison. They whisper at the fountain, that
although condemned to death he will not be executed; they
say that petitions have been presented in Paris, showing
that he was enraged and made mad by the death of his
child; they say that a petition has been presented to the
King himself. What do I know? It is possible. Perhaps
yes, perhaps no."
"Listen then, Jacques," Number One of that name
sternly interposed. "Know that a petition was presented
to the King and Queen. All here, yourself excepted, saw
the King take it, in his carriage in the street, sitting
beside the Queen. It is Defarge whom you see here, who,
at the hazard of his life, darted out before the horses,
with the petition in his hand."
"And once again listen, Jacques!" said the kneeling
Number Three: his fingers ever wandering over and over
those fine nerves, with a strikingly greedy air, as if he
hungered for something--that was neither food nor drink;
"the guard, horse and foot, surrounded the petitioner,
and struck him blows. You hear?"
"I hear, messieurs."
"Go on then," said Defarge.
"Again; on the other hand, they whisper at the
fountain," resumed the countryman, "that he is brought
down into our country to be executed on the spot, and
that he will very certainly be executed. They even
whisper that because he has slain Monseigneur, and
because Monseigneur was the father of his
tenants--serfs--what you will--he will be executed as a
parricide. One old man says at the fountain, that his
right hand, armed with the knife, will be burnt off
before his face; that, into wounds which will be made in
his arms, his breast, and his legs, there will be poured
boiling oil, melted lead, hot resin, wax, and sulphur;
finally, that he will be torn limb from limb by four
strong horses. That old man says, all this was actually
done to a prisoner who made an attempt on the life of the
late King, Louis Fifteen. But how do I know if he lies? I
am not a scholar."
"Listen once again then, Jacques!" said the man
with the restless hand and the craving air. "The name of
that prisoner was Damiens, and it was all done in open
day, in the open streets of this city of Paris; and
nothing was more noticed in the vast concourse that saw
it done, than the crowd of ladies of quality and fashion,
who were full of eager attention to the last--to the
last, Jacques, prolonged until nightfall, when he had
lost two legs and an arm, and still breathed! And it was
done--why, how old are you?"
"Thirty-five," said the mender of roads, who looked
sixty.
"It was done when you were more than ten years old;
you might have seen it."
"Enough!" said Defarge, with grim impatience. "Long
live the Devil! Go on."
"Well! Some whisper this, some whisper that; they
speak of nothing else; even the fountain appears to fall
to that tune. At length, on Sunday night when all the
village is asleep, come soldiers, winding down from the
prison, and their guns ring on the stones of the little
street. Workmen dig, workmen hammer, soldiers laugh and
sing; in the morning, by the fountain, there is raised a
gallows forty feet high, poisoning the water."
The mender of roads looked THROUGH rather than AT
the low ceiling, and pointed as if he saw the gallows
somewhere in the sky.
"All work is stopped, all assemble there, nobody
leads the cows out, the cows are there with the rest. At
midday, the roll of drums. Soldiers have marched into the
prison in the night, and he is in the midst of many
soldiers. He is bound as before, and in his mouth there
is a gag--tied so, with a tight string, making him look
almost as if he laughed." He suggested it, by creasing
his face with his two thumbs, from the corners of his
mouth to his ears. "On the top of the gallows is fixed
the knife, blade upwards, with its point in the air. He
is hanged there forty feet high--and is left hanging,
poisoning the water."
They looked at one another, as he used his blue cap
to wipe his face, on which the perspiration had started
afresh while he recalled the spectacle.
"It is frightful, messieurs. How can the women and
the children draw water! Who can gossip of an evening,
under that shadow! Under it, have I said? When I left the
village, Monday evening as the sun was going to bed, and
looked back from the hill, the shadow struck across the
church, across the mill, across the prison--seemed to
strike across the earth, messieurs, to where the sky
rests upon it!"
The hungry man gnawed one of his fingers as he
looked at the other three, and his finger quivered with
the craving that was on him.
"That's all, messieurs. I left at sunset (as I had
been warned to do), and I walked on, that night and half
next day, until I met (as I was warned I should) this
comrade. With him, I came on, now riding and now walking,
through the rest of yesterday and through last night. And
here you see me!"
After a gloomy silence, the first Jacques said,
"Good! You have acted and recounted faithfully. Will you
wait for us a little, outside the door?"
"Very willingly," said the mender of roads. Whom
Defarge escorted to the top of the stairs, and, leaving
seated there, returned.
The three had risen, and their heads were together
when he came back to the garret.
"How say you, Jacques?" demanded Number One. "To be
registered?"
"To be registered, as doomed to destruction,"
returned Defarge.
"Magnificent!" croaked the man with the
craving.
"The chateau, and all the race?" inquired the
first.
"The chateau and all the race," returned Defarge.
"Extermination."
The hungry man repeated, in a rapturous croak,
"Magnificent!" and began gnawing another finger.
"Are you sure," asked Jacques Two, of Defarge,
"that no embarrassment can arise from our manner of
keeping the register? Without doubt it is safe, for no
one beyond ourselves can decipher it; but shall we always
be able to decipher it--or, I ought to say, will
she?"
"Jacques," returned Defarge, drawing himself up,
"if madame my wife undertook to keep the register in her
memory alone, she would not lose a word of it--not a
syllable of it. Knitted, in her own stitches and her own
symbols, it will always be as plain to her as the sun.
Confide in Madame Defarge. It would be easier for the
weakest poltroon that lives, to erase himself from
existence, than to erase one letter of his name or crimes
from the knitted register of Madame Defarge."
There was a murmur of confidence and approval, and
then the man who hungered, asked: "Is this rustic to be
sent back soon? I hope so. He is very simple; is he not a
little dangerous?"
"He knows nothing," said Defarge; "at least nothing
more than would easily elevate himself to a gallows of
the same height. I charge myself with him; let him remain
with me; I will take care of him, and set him on his
road. He wishes to see the fine world--the King, the
Queen, and Court; let him see them on Sunday."
"What?" exclaimed the hungry man, staring. "Is it a
good sign, that he wishes to see Royalty and
Nobility?"
"Jacques," said Defarge; "judiciously show a cat
milk, if you wish her to thirst for it. Judiciously show
a dog his natural prey, if you wish him to bring it down
one day."
Nothing more was said, and the mender of roads,
being found already dozing on the topmost stair, was
advised to lay himself down on the pallet-bed and take
some rest. He needed no persuasion, and was soon
asleep.
Worse quarters than Defarge's wine-shop, could
easily have been found in Paris for a provincial slave of
that degree. Saving for a mysterious dread of madame by
which he was constantly haunted, his life was very new
and agreeable. But, madame sat all day at her counter, so
expressly unconscious of him, and so particularly
determined not to perceive that his being there had any
connection with anything below the surface, that he shook
in his wooden shoes whenever his eye lighted on her. For,
he contended with himself that it was impossible to
foresee what that lady might pretend next; and he felt
assured that if she should take it into her brightly
ornamented head to pretend that she had seen him do a
murder and afterwards flay the victim, she would
infallibly go through with it until the play was played
out.
Therefore, when Sunday came, the mender of roads
was not enchanted (though he said he was) to find that
madame was to accompany monsieur and himself to
Versailles. It was additionally disconcerting to have
madame knitting all the way there, in a public
conveyance; it was additionally disconcerting yet, to
have madame in the crowd in the afternoon, still with her
knitting in her hands as the crowd waited to see the
carriage of the King and Queen.
"You work hard, madame," said a man near
her.
"Yes," answered Madame Defarge; "I have a good deal
to do."
"What do you make, madame?"
"Many things."
"For instance--"
"For instance," returned Madame Defarge,
composedly, "shrouds."
The man moved a little further away, as soon as he
could, and the mender of roads fanned himself with his
blue cap: feeling it mightily close and oppressive. If he
needed a King and Queen to restore him, he was fortunate
in having his remedy at hand; for, soon the large-faced
King and the fair-faced Queen came in their golden coach,
attended by the shining Bull's Eye of their Court, a
glittering multitude of laughing ladies and fine lords;
and in jewels and silks and powder and splendour and
elegantly spurning figures and handsomely disdainful
faces of both sexes, the mender of roads bathed himself,
so much to his temporary intoxication, that he cried Long
live the King, Long live the Queen, Long live everybody
and everything! as if he had never heard of ubiquitous
Jacques in his time. Then, there were gardens,
courtyards, terraces, fountains, green banks, more King
and Queen, more Bull's Eye,more lords and ladies, more
Long live they all! until he absolutely wept with
sentiment. During the whole of this scene, which lasted
some three hours, he had plenty of shouting and weeping
and sentimental company, and throughout Defarge held him
by the collar, as if to restrain him from flying at the
objects of his brief devotion and tearing them to
pieces.
"Bravo!" said Defarge, clapping him on the back
when it was over, like a patron; "you are a good
boy!"
The mender of roads was now coming to himself, and
was mistrustful of having made a mistake in his late
demonstrations; but no.
"You are the fellow we want," said Defarge, in his
ear; "you make these fools believe that it will last for
ever. Then, they are the more insolent, and it is the
nearer ended."
"Hey!" cried the mender of roads, reflectively;
"that's true."
"These fools know nothing. While they despise your
breath, and would stop it for ever and ever, in you or in
a hundred like you rather than in one of their own horses
or dogs, they only know what your breath tells them. Let
it deceive them, then, a little longer; it cannot deceive
them too much."
Madame Defarge looked superciliously at the client,
and nodded in confirmation.
"As to you," said she, "you would shout and shed
tears for anything, if it made a show and a noise. Say!
Would you not?"
"Truly, madame, I think so. For the moment."
"If you were shown a great heap of dolls, and were
set upon them to pluck them to pieces and despoil them
for your own advantage, you would pick out the richest
and gayest. Say! Would you not?"
"Truly yes, madame."
"Yes. And if you were shown a flock of birds,
unable to fly, and were set upon them to strip them of
their feathers for your own advantage, you would set upon
the birds of the finest feathers; would you not?"
"It is true, madame."
"You have seen both dolls and birds to-day," said
Madame Defarge, with a wave of her hand towards the place
where they had last been apparent; "now, go home!"
XVI
Still Knitting
Madame Defarge and monsieur her husband returned
amicably to the bosom of Saint Antoine, while a speck in
a blue cap toiled through the darkness, and through the
dust, and down the weary miles of avenue by the wayside,
slowly tending towards that point of the compass where
the chateau of Monsieur the Marquis, now in his grave,
listened to the whispering trees. Such ample leisure had
the stone faces, now, for listening to the trees and to
the fountain, that the few village scarecrows who, in
their quest for herbs to eat and fragments of dead stick
to burn, strayed within sight of the great stone
courtyard and terrace staircase, had it borne in upon
their starved fancy that the expression of the faces was
altered. A rumour just lived in the village--had a faint
and bare existence there, as its people had--that when
the knife struck home, the faces changed, from faces of
pride to faces of anger and pain; also, that when that
dangling figure was hauled up forty feet above the
fountain, they changed again, and bore a cruel look of
being avenged, which they would henceforth bear for ever.
In the stone face over the great window of the
bed-chamber where the murder was done, two fine dints
were pointed out in the sculptured nose, which everybody
recognised, and which nobody had seen of old; and on the
scarce occasions when two or three ragged peasants
emerged from the crowd to take a hurried peep at Monsieur
the Marquis petrified, a skinny finger would not have
pointed to it for a minute, before they all started away
among the moss and leaves, like the more fortunate hares
who could find a living there.
Chateau and hut, stone face and dangling figure,
the red stain on the stone floor, and the pure water in
the village well--thousands of acres of land--a whole
province of France--all France itself--lay under the
night sky, concentrated into a faint hair-breadth line.
So does a whole world, with all its greatnesses and
littlenesses, lie in a twinkling star. And as mere human
knowledge can split a ray of light and analyse the manner
of its composition, so, sublimer intelligences may read
in the feeble shining of this earth of ours, every
thought and act, every vice and virtue, of every
responsible creature on it.
The Defarges, husband and wife, came lumbering
under the starlight, in their public vehicle, to that
gate of Paris whereunto their journey naturally tended.
There was the usual stoppage at the barrier guardhouse,
and the usual lanterns came glancing forth for the usual
examination and inquiry. Monsieur Defarge alighted;
knowing one or two of the soldiery there, and one of the
police. The latter he was intimate with, and
affectionately embraced.
When Saint Antoine had again enfolded the Defarges
in his dusky wings, and they, having finally alighted
near the Saint's boundaries, were picking their way on
foot through the black mud and offal of his streets,
Madame Defarge spoke to her husband:
"Say then, my friend; what did Jacques of the
police tell thee?"
"Very little to-night, but all he knows. There is
another spy commissioned for our quarter. There may be
many more, for all that he can say, but he knows of
one."
"Eh well!" said Madame Defarge, raising her
eyebrows with a cool business air. "It is necessary to
register him. How do they call that man?"
"He is English."
"So much the better. His name?"
"Barsad," said Defarge, making it French by
pronunciation. But, he had been so careful to get it
accurately, that he then spelt it with perfect
correctness.
"Barsad," repeated madame. "Good. Christian
name?"
"John."
"John Barsad," repeated madame, after murmuring it
once to herself. "Good. His appearance; is it
known?"
"Age, about forty years; height, about five feet
nine; black hair; complexion dark; generally, rather
handsome visage; eyes dark, face thin, long, and sallow;
nose aquiline, but not straight, having a peculiar
inclination towards the left cheek; expression,
therefore, sinister."
"Eh my faith. It is a portrait!" said madame,
laughing. "He shall be registered to-morrow."
They turned into the wine-shop, which was closed
(for it was midnight), and where Madame Defarge
immediately took her post at her desk, counted the small
moneys that had been taken during her absence, examined
the stock, went through the entries in the book, made
other entries of her own, checked the serving man in
every possible way, and finally dismissed him to bed.
Then she turned out the contents of the bowl of money for
the second time, and began knotting them up in her
handkerchief, in a chain of separate knots, for safe
keeping through the night. All this while, Defarge, with
his pipe in his mouth, walked up and down, complacently
admiring, but never interfering; in which condition,
indeed, as to the business and his domestic affairs, he
walked up and down through life.
The night was hot, and the shop, close shut and
surrounded by so foul a neighbourhood, was ill-smelling.
Monsieur Defarge's olfactory sense was by no means
delicate, but the stock of wine smelt much stronger than
it ever tasted, and so did the stock of rum and brandy
and aniseed. He whiffed the compound of scents away, as
he put down his smoked-out pipe.
"You are fatigued," said madame, raising her glance
as she knotted the money. "There are only the usual
odours."
"I am a little tired," her husband
acknowledged.
"You are a little depressed, too," said madame,
whose quick eyes had never been so intent on the
accounts, but they had had a ray or two for him. "Oh, the
men, the men!"
"But my dear!" began Defarge.
"But my dear!" repeated madame, nodding firmly;
"but my dear! You are faint of heart to-night, my
dear!"
"Well, then," said Defarge, as if a thought were
wrung out of his breast, "it IS a long time."
"It is a long time," repeated his wife; "and when
is it not a long time? Vengeance and retribution require
a long time; it is the rule."
"It does not take a long time to strike a man with
Lightning," said Defarge.
"How long," demanded madame, composedly, "does it
take to make and store the lightning? Tell me."
Defarge raised his head thoughtfully, as if there
were something in that too.
"It does not take a long time," said madame, "for
an earthquake to swallow a town. Eh well! Tell me how
long it takes to prepare the earthquake?"
"A long time, I suppose," said Defarge.
"But when it is ready, it takes place, and grinds
to pieces everything before it. In the meantime, it is
always preparing, though it is not seen or heard. That is
your consolation. Keep it."
She tied a knot with flashing eyes, as if it
throttled a foe.
"I tell thee," said madame, extending her right
hand, for emphasis, "that although it is a long time on
the road, it is on the road and coming. I tell thee it
never retreats, and never stops. I tell thee it is always
advancing. Look around and consider the Eves of all the
world that we know, consider the faces of all the world
that we know, consider the rage and discontent to which
the Jacquerie addresses itself with more and more of
certainty every hour. Can such things last? Bah! I mock
you."
"My brave wife," returned Defarge, standing before
her with his head a little bent, and his hands clasped at
his back, like a docile and attentive pupil before his
catechist, "I do not question all this. But it has lasted
a long time, and it is possible--you know well, my wife,
it is possible--that it may not come, during our
lives."
"Eh well! How then?" demanded madame, tying another
knot, as if there were another enemy strangled.
"Well!" said Defarge, with a half complaining and
half apologetic shrug. "We shall not see the
triumph."
"We shall have helped it," returned madame, with
her extended hand in strong action. "Nothing that we do,
is done in vain. I believe, with all my soul, that we
shall see the triumph. But even if not, even if I knew
certainly not, show me the neck of an aristocrat and
tyrant, and still I would--"
Then madame, with her teeth set, tied a very
terrible knot indeed.
"Hold!" cried Defarge, reddening a little as if he
felt charged with cowardice; "I too, my dear, will stop
at nothing."
"Yes! But it is your weakness that you sometimes
need to see your victim and your opportunity, to sustain
you. Sustain yourself without that. When the time comes,
let loose a tiger and a devil; but wait for the time with
the tiger and the devil chained--not shown--yet always
ready."
Madame enforced the conclusion of this piece of
advice by striking her little counter with her chain of
money as if she knocked its brains out, and then
gathering the heavy handkerchief under her arm in a
serene manner, and observing that it was time to go to
bed.
Next noontide saw the admirable woman in her usual
place in the wine-shop, knitting away assiduously. A rose
lay beside her, and if she now and then glanced at the
flower, it was with no infraction of her usual
preoccupied air. There were a few customers, drinking or
not drinking, standing or seated, sprinkled about. The
day was very hot, and heaps of flies, who were extending
their inquisitive and adventurous perquisitions into all
the glutinous little glasses near madame, fell dead at
the bottom. Their decease made no impression on the other
flies out promenading, who looked at them in the coolest
manner (as if they themselves were elephants, or
something as far removed), until they met the same fate.
Curious to consider how heedless flies are!--perhaps they
thought as much at Court that sunny summer day.
A figure entering at the door threw a shadow on
Madame Defarge which she felt to be a new one. She laid
down her knitting, and began to pin her rose in her
head-dress, before she looked at the figure.
It was curious. The moment Madame Defarge took up
the rose, the customers ceased talking, and began
gradually to drop out of the wine-shop.
"Good day, madame," said the new-comer.
"Good day, monsieur."
She said it aloud, but added to herself, as she
resumed her knitting: "Hah! Good day, age about forty,
height about five feet nine, black hair, generally rather
handsome visage, complexion dark, eyes dark, thin, long
and sallow face, aquiline nose but not straight, having a
peculiar inclination towards the left cheek which imparts
a sinister expression! Good day, one and all!"
"Have the goodness to give me a little glass of old
cognac, and a mouthful of cool fresh water,
madame."
Madame complied with a polite air.
"Marvellous cognac this, madame!"
It was the first time it had ever been so
complemented, and Madame Defarge knew enough of its
antecedents to know better. She said, however, that the
cognac was flattered, and took up her knitting. The
visitor watched her fingers for a few moments, and took
the opportunity of observing the place in general.
"You knit with great skill, madame."
"I am accustomed to it."
"A pretty pattern too!"
"YOU think so?" said madame, looking at him with a
smile.
"Decidedly. May one ask what it is for?"
"Pastime," said madame, still looking at him with a
smile while her fingers moved nimbly.
"Not for use?"
"That depends. I may find a use for it one day. If
I do--Well," said madame, drawing a breath and nodding
her head with a stem kind of coquetry, "I'll use
it!"
It was remarkable; but, the taste of Saint Antoine
seemed to be decidedly opposed to a rose on the
head-dress of Madame Defarge. Two men had entered
separately, and had been about to order drink, when,
catching sight of that novelty, they faltered, made a
pretence of looking about as if for some friend who was
not there, and went away. Nor, of those who had been
there when this visitor entered, was there one left. They
had all dropped off. The spy had kept his eyes open, but
had been able to detect no sign. They had lounged away in
a poverty-stricken, purposeless, accidental manner, quite
natural and unimpeachable.
"JOHN," thought madame, checking off her work as
her fingers knitted, and her eyes looked at the stranger.
"Stay long enough, and I shall knit `BARSAD' before you
go."
"You have a husband, madame?"
"I have."
"Children?"
"No children."
"Business seems bad?"
"Business is very bad; the people are so
poor."
"Ah, the unfortunate, miserable people! So
oppressed, too--as you say."
"As YOU say," madame retorted, correcting him, and
deftly knitting an extra something into his name that
boded him no good.
"Pardon me; certainly it was I who said so, but you
naturally think so. Of course."
"_I_ think?" returned madame, in a high voice. "I
and my husband have enough to do to keep this wine-shop
open, without thinking. All we think, here, is how to
live. That is the subject WE think of, and it gives us,
from morning to night, enough to think about, without
embarrassing our heads concerning others. _I_ think for
others? No, no."
The spy, who was there to pick up any crumbs he
could find or make, did not allow his baffled state to
express itself in his sinister face; but, stood with an
air of gossiping gallantry, leaning his elbow on Madame
Defarge's little counter, and occasionally sipping his
cognac.
"A bad business this, madame, of Gaspard's
execution. Ah! the poor Gaspard!" With a sigh of great
compassion.
"My faith!" returned madame, coolly and lightly,
"if people use knives for such purposes, they have to pay
for it. He knew beforehand what the price of his luxury
was; he has paid the price."
"I believe," said the spy, dropping his soft voice
to a tone that invited confidence, and expressing an
injured revolutionary susceptibility in every muscle of
his wicked face: "I believe there is much compassion and
anger in this neighbourhood, touching the poor fellow?
Between ourselves."
"Is there?" asked madame, vacantly.
"Is there not?"
"--Here is my husband!" said Madame Defarge.
As the keeper of the wine-shop entered at the door,
the spy saluted him by touching his hat, and saying, with
an engaging smile, "Good day, Jacques!" Defarge stopped
short, and stared at him.
"Good day, Jacques!" the spy repeated; with not
quite so much confidence, or quite so easy a smile under
the stare.
"You deceive yourself, monsieur," returned the
keeper of the wine-shop. "You mistake me for another.
That is not my name. I am Ernest Defarge."
"It is all the same," said the spy, airily, but
discomfited too: "good day!"
"Good day!" answered Defarge, drily.
"I was saying to madame, with whom I had the
pleasure of chatting when you entered, that they tell me
there is--and no wonder!--much sympathy and anger in
Saint Antoine, touching the unhappy fate of poor
Gaspard."
"No one has told me so," said Defarge, shaking his
head. "I know nothing of it."
Having said it, he passed behind the little
counter, and stood with his hand on the back of his
wife's chair, looking over that barrier at the person to
whom they were both opposed, and whom either of them
would have shot with the greatest satisfaction.
The spy, well used to his business, did not change
his unconscious attitude, but drained his little glass of
cognac, took a sip of fresh water, and asked for another
glass of cognac. Madame Defarge poured it out for him,
took to her knitting again, and hummed a little song over
it.
"You seem to know this quarter well; that is to
say, better than I do?" observed Defarge.
"Not at all, but I hope to know it better. I am so
profoundly interested in its miserable
inhabitants."
"Hah!" muttered Defarge.
"The pleasure of conversing with you, Monsieur
Defarge, recalls to me," pursued the spy, "that I have
the honour of cherishing some interesting associations
with your name."
"Indeed!" said Defarge, with much
indifference.
"Yes, indeed. When Doctor Manette was released,
you, his old domestic, had the charge of him, I know. He
was delivered to you. You see I am informed of the
circumstances?"
"Such is the fact, certainly," said Defarge. He had
had it conveyed to him, in an accidental touch of his
wife's elbow as she knitted and warbled, that he would do
best to answer, but always with brevity.
"It was to you," said the spy, "that his daughter
came; and it was from your care that his daughter took
him, accompanied by a neat brown monsieur; how is he
called?--in a little wig--Lorry--of the bank of Tellson
and Company--over to England."
"Such is the fact," repeated Defarge.
"Very interesting remembrances!" said the spy. "I
have known Doctor Manette and his daughter, in
England."
"Yes?" said Defarge.
"You don't hear much about them now?" said the
spy.
"No," said Defarge.
"In effect," madame struck in, looking up from her
work and her little song, "we never hear about them. We
received the news of their safe arrival, and perhaps
another letter, or perhaps two; but, since then, they
have gradually taken their road in life--we, ours--and we
have held no correspondence."
"Perfectly so, madame," replied the spy. "She is
going to be married."
"Going?" echoed madame. "She was pretty enough to
have been married long ago. You English are cold, it
seems to me."
"Oh! You know I am English."
"I perceive your tongue is," returned madame; "and
what the tongue is, I suppose the man is."
He did not take the identification as a compliment;
but he made the best of it, and turned it off with a
laugh. After sipping his cognac to the end, he
added:
"Yes, Miss Manette is going to be married. But not
to an Englishman; to one who, like herself, is French by
birth. And speaking of Gaspard (ah, poor Gaspard! It was
cruel, cruel!), it is a curious thing that she is going
to marry the nephew of Monsieur the Marquis, for whom
Gaspard was exalted to that height of so many feet; in
other words, the present Marquis. But he lives unknown in
England, he is no Marquis there; he is Mr. Charles
Darnay. D'Aulnais is the name of his mother's
family."
Madame Defarge knitted steadily, but the
intelligence had a palpable effect upon her husband. Do
what he would, behind the little counter, as to the
striking of a light and the lighting of his pipe, he was
troubled, and his hand was not trustworthy. The spy would
have been no spy if he had failed to see it, or to record
it in his mind.
Having made, at least, this one hit, whatever it
might prove to be worth, and no customers coming in to
help him to any other, Mr. Barsad paid for what he had
drunk, and took his leave: taking occasion to say, in a
genteel manner, before he departed, that he looked
forward to the pleasure of seeing Monsieur and Madame
Defarge again. For some minutes after he had emerged into
the outer presence of Saint Antoine, the husband and wife
remained exactly as he had left them, lest he should come
back.
"Can it be true," said Defarge, in a low voice,
looking down at his wife as he stood smoking with his
hand on the back of her chair: "what he has said of
Ma'amselle Manette?"
"As he has said it," returned madame, lifting her
eyebrows a little, "it is probably false. But it may be
true."
"If it is--" Defarge began, and stopped.
"If it is?" repeated his wife.
"--And if it does come, while we live to see it
triumph--I hope, for her sake, Destiny will keep her
husband out of France."
"Her husband's destiny," said Madame Defarge, with
her usual composure, "will take him where he is to go,
and will lead him to the end that is to end him. That is
all I know."
"But it is very strange--now, at least, is it not
very strange"--said Defarge, rather pleading with his
wife to induce her to admit it, "that, after all our
sympathy for Monsieur her father, and herself, her
husband's name should be proscribed under your hand at
this moment, by the side of that infernal dog's who has
just left us?"
"Stranger things than that will happen when it does
come," answered madame. "I have them both here, of a
certainty; and they are both here for their merits; that
is enough."
She roiled up her knitting when she had said those
words, and presently took the rose out of the
handkerchief that was wound about her head. Either Saint
Antoine had an instinctive sense that the objectionable
decoration was gone, or Saint Antoine was on the watch
for its disappearance; howbeit, the Saint took courage to
lounge in, very shortly afterwards, and the wine-shop
recovered its habitual aspect.
In the evening, at which season of all others Saint
Antoine turned himself inside out, and sat on door-steps
and window-ledges, and came to the corners of vile
streets and courts, for a breath of air, Madame Defarge
with her work in her hand was accustomed to pass from
place to place and from group to group: a
Missionary--there were many like her--such as the world
will do well never to breed again. All the women knitted.
They knitted worthless things; but, the mechanical work
was a mechanical substitute for eating and drinking; the
hands moved for the jaws and the digestive apparatus: if
the bony fingers had been still, the stomachs would have
been more famine-pinched.
But, as the fingers went, the eyes went, and the
thoughts. And as Madame Defarge moved on from group to
group, all three went quicker and fiercer among every
little knot of women that she had spoken with, and left
behind.
Her husband smoked at his door, looking after her
with admiration. "A great woman," said he, "a strong
woman, a grand woman, a frightfully grand woman!"
Darkness closed around, and then came the ringing
of church bells and the distant beating of the military
drums in the Palace Courtyard, as the women sat knitting,
knitting. Darkness encompassed them. Another darkness was
closing in as surely, when the church bells, then ringing
pleasantly in many an airy steeple over France, should be
melted into thundering cannon; when the military drums
should be beating to drown a wretched voice, that night
all potent as the voice of Power and Plenty, Freedom and
Life. So much was closing in about the women who sat
knitting, knitting, that they their very selves were
closing in around a structure yet unbuilt, where they
were to sit knitting, knitting, counting dropping
heads.
XVII
One Night
Never did the sun go down with a brighter glory on
the quiet corner in Soho, than one memorable evening when
the Doctor and his daughter sat under the plane-tree
together. Never did the moon rise with a milder radiance
over great London, than on that night when it found them
still seated under the tree, and shone upon their faces
through its leaves.
Lucie was to be married to-morrow. She had reserved
this last evening for her father, and they sat alone
under the plane-tree.
"You are happy, my dear father?"
"Quite, my child."
They had said little, though they had been there a
long time. When it was yet light enough to work and read,
she had neither engaged herself in her usual work, nor
had she read to him. She had employed herself in both
ways, at his side under the tree, many and many a time;
but, this time was not quite like any other, and nothing
could make it so.
"And I am very happy to-night, dear father. I am
deeply happy in the love that Heaven has so blessed--my
love for Charles, and Charles's love for me. But, if my
life were not to be still consecrated to you, or if my
marriage were so arranged as that it would part us, even
by the length of a few of these streets, I should be more
unhappy and self-reproachful now than I can tell you.
Even as it is--"
Even as it was, she could not command her
voice.
In the sad moonlight, she clasped him by the neck,
and laid her face upon his breast. In the moonlight which
is always sad, as the light of the sun itself is--as the
light called human life is--at its coming and its
going.
"Dearest dear! Can you tell me, this last time,
that you feel quite, quite sure, no new affections of
mine, and no new duties of mine, will ever interpose
between us? _I_ know it well, but do you know it? In your
own heart, do you feel quite certain?"
Her father answered, with a cheerful firmness of
conviction he could scarcely have assumed, "Quite sure,
my darling! More than that," he added, as he tenderly
kissed her: "my future is far brighter, Lucie, seen
through your marriage, than it could have been--nay, than
it ever was--without it."
"If I could hope THAT, my father!--"
"Believe it, love! Indeed it is so. Consider how
natural and how plain it is, my dear, that it should be
so. You, devoted and young, cannot fully appreciate the
anxiety I have felt that your life should not be
wasted--"
She moved her hand towards his lips, but he took it
in his, and repeated the word.
"--wasted, my child--should not be wasted, struck
aside from the natural order of things--for my sake. Your
unselfishness cannot entirely comprehend how much my mind
has gone on this; but, only ask yourself, how could my
happiness be perfect, while yours was incomplete?"
"If I had never seen Charles, my father, I should
have been quite happy with you."
He smiled at her unconscious admission that she
would have been unhappy without Charles, having seen him;
and replied:
"My child, you did see him, and it is Charles. If
it had not been Charles, it would have been another. Or,
if it had been no other, I should have been the cause,
and then the dark part of my life would have cast its
shadow beyond myself, and would have fallen on
you."
It was the first time, except at the trial, of her
ever hearing him refer to the period of his suffering. It
gave her a strange and new sensation while his words were
in her ears; and she remembered it long
afterwards.
"See!" said the Doctor of Beauvais, raising his
hand towards the moon. "I have looked at her from my
prison-window, when I could not bear her light. I have
looked at her when it has been such torture to me to
think of her shining upon what I had lost, that I have
beaten my head against my prison-walls. I have looked at
her, in a state so dun and lethargic, that I have thought
of nothing but the number of horizontal lines I could
draw across her at the full, and the number of
perpendicular lines with which I could intersect them."
He added in his inward and pondering manner, as he looked
at the moon, "It was twenty either way, I remember, and
the twentieth was difficult to squeeze in."
The strange thrill with which she heard him go back
to that time, deepened as he dwelt upon it; but, there
was nothing to shock her in the manner of his reference.
He only seemed to contrast his present cheerfulness and
felicity with the dire endurance that was over.
"I have looked at her, speculating thousands of
times upon the unborn child from whom I had been rent.
Whether it was alive. Whether it had been born alive, or
the poor mother's shock had killed it. Whether it was a
son who would some day avenge his father. (There was a
time in my imprisonment, when my desire for vengeance was
unbearable.) Whether it was a son who would never know
his father's story; who might even live to weigh the
possibility of his father's having disappeared of his own
will and act. Whether it was a daughter who would grow to
be a woman."
She drew closer to him, and kissed his cheek and
his hand.
"I have pictured my daughter, to myself, as
perfectly forgetful of me --rather, altogether ignorant
of me, and unconscious of me. I have cast up the years of
her age, year after year. I have seen her married to a
man who knew nothing of my fate. I have altogether
perished from the remembrance of the living, and in the
next generation my place was a blank."
"My father! Even to hear that you had such thoughts
of a daughter who never existed, strikes to my heart as
if I had been that child."
"You, Lucie? It is out of the Consolation and
restoration you have brought to me, that these
remembrances arise, and pass between us and the moon on
this last night.--What did I say just now?"
"She knew nothing of you. She cared nothing for
you."
"So! But on other moonlight nights, when the
sadness and the silence have touched me in a different
way--have affected me with something as like a sorrowful
sense of peace, as any emotion that had pain for its
foundations could--I have imagined her as coming to me in
my cell, and leading me out into the freedom beyond the
fortress. I have seen her image in the moonlight often,
as I now see you; except that I never held her in my
arms; it stood between the little grated window and the
door. But, you understand that that was not the child I
am speaking of?"
"The figure was not; the--the--image; the
fancy?"
"No. That was another thing. It stood before my
disturbed sense of sight, but it never moved. The phantom
that my mind pursued, was another and more real child. Of
her outward appearance I know no more than that she was
like her mother. The other had that likeness too --as you
have--but was not the same. Can you follow me, Lucie?
Hardly, I think? I doubt you must have been a solitary
prisoner to understand these perplexed
distinctions."
His collected and calm manner could not prevent her
blood from running cold, as he thus tried to anatomise
his old condition.
"In that more peaceful state, I have imagined her,
in the moonlight, coming to me and taking me out to show
me that the home of her married life was full of her
loving remembrance of her lost father. My picture was in
her room, and I was in her prayers. Her life was active,
cheerful, useful; but my poor history pervaded it
all."
"I was that child, my father, I was not half so
good, but in my love that was I."
"And she showed me her children," said the Doctor
of Beauvais, "and they had heard of me, and had been
taught to pity me. When they passed a prison of the
State, they kept far from its frowning walls, and looked
up at its bars, and spoke in whispers. She could never
deliver me; I imagined that she always brought me back
after showing me such things. But then, blessed with the
relief of tears, I fell upon my knees, and blessed
her."
"I am that child, I hope, my father. O my dear, my
dear, will you bless me as fervently to-morrow?"
"Lucie, I recall these old troubles in the reason
that I have to-night for loving you better than words can
tell, and thanking God for my great happiness. My
thoughts, when they were wildest, never rose near the
happiness that I have known with you, and that we have
before us."
He embraced her, solemnly commended her to Heaven,
and humbly thanked Heaven for having bestowed her on him.
By-and-bye, they went into the house.
There was no one bidden to the marriage but Mr.
Lorry; there was even to be no bridesmaid but the gaunt
Miss Pross. The marriage was to make no change in their
place of residence; they had been able to extend it, by
taking to themselves the upper rooms formerly belonging
to the apocryphal invisible lodger, and they desired
nothing more.
Doctor Manette was very cheerful at the little
supper. They were only three at table, and Miss Pross
made the third. He regretted that Charles was not there;
was more than half disposed to object to the loving
little plot that kept him away; and drank to him
affectionately.
So, the time came for him to bid Lucie good night,
and they separated. But, in the stillness of the third
hour of the morning, Lucie came downstairs again, and
stole into his room; not free from unshaped fears,
beforehand.
All things, however, were in their places; all was
quiet; and he lay asleep, his white hair picturesque on
the untroubled pillow, and his hands lying quiet on the
coverlet. She put her needless candle in the shadow at a
distance, crept up to his bed, and put her lips to his;
then, leaned over him, and looked at him.
Into his handsome face, the bitter waters of
captivity had worn; but, he covered up their tracks with
a determination so strong, that he held the mastery of
them even in his sleep. A more remarkable face in its
quiet, resolute, and guarded struggle with an unseen
assailant, was not to be beheld in all the wide dominions
of sleep, that night.
She timidly laid her hand on his dear breast, and
put up a prayer that she might ever be as true to him as
her love aspired to be, and as his sorrows deserved.
Then, she withdrew her hand, and kissed his lips once
more, and went away. So, the sunrise came, and the
shadows of the leaves of the plane-tree moved upon his
face, as softly as her lips had moved in praying for
him.
XVIII
Nine Days
The marriage-day was shining brightly, and they
were ready outside the closed door of the Doctor's room,
where he was speaking with Charles Darnay. They were
ready to go to church; the beautiful bride, Mr. Lorry,
and Miss Pross--to whom the event, through a gradual
process of reconcilement to the inevitable, would have
been one of absolute bliss, but for the yet lingering
consideration that her brother Solomon should have been
the bridegroom.
"And so," said Mr. Lorry, who could not
sufficiently admire the bride, and who had been moving
round her to take in every point of her quiet, pretty
dress; "and so it was for this, my sweet Lucie, that I
brought you across the Channel, such a baby' Lord bless
me' How little I thought what I was doing! How lightly I
valued the obligation I was conferring on my friend Mr.
Charles!"
"You didn't mean it," remarked the matter-of-fact
Miss Pross, "and therefore how could you know it?
Nonsense!"
"Really? Well; but don't cry," said the gentle Mr.
Lorry.
"I am not crying," said Miss Pross; "YOU
are."
"I, my Pross?" (By this time, Mr. Lorry dared to be
pleasant with her, on occasion.)
"You were, just now; I saw you do it, and I don't
wonder at it. Such a present of plate as you have made
'em, is enough to bring tears into anybody's eyes.
There's not a fork or a spoon in the collection," said
Miss Pross, "that I didn't cry over, last night after the
box came, till I couldn't see it."
"I am highly gratified," said Mr. Lorry, "though,
upon my honour, I had no intention of rendering those
trifling articles of remembrance invisible to any one.
Dear me! This is an occasion that makes a man speculate
on all he has lost. Dear, dear, dear! To think that there
might have been a Mrs. Lorry, any time these fifty years
almost!"
"Not at all!" From Miss Pross.
"You think there never might have been a Mrs.
Lorry?" asked the gentleman of that name.
"Pooh!" rejoined Miss Pross; "you were a bachelor
in your cradle."
"Well!" observed Mr. Lorry, beamingly adjusting his
little wig, "that seems probable, too."
"And you were cut out for a bachelor," pursued Miss
Pross, "before you were put in your cradle."
"Then, I think," said Mr. Lorry, "that I was very
unhandsomely dealt with, and that I ought to have had a
voice in the selection of my pattern. Enough! Now, my
dear Lucie," drawing his arm soothingly round her waist,
"I hear them moving in the next room, and Miss Pross and
I, as two formal folks of business, are anxious not to
lose the final opportunity of saying something to you
that you wish to hear. You leave your good father, my
dear, in hands as earnest and as loving as your own; he
shall be taken every conceivable care of; during the next
fortnight, while you are in Warwickshire and thereabouts,
even Tellson's shall go to the wall (comparatively
speaking) before him. And when, at the fortnight's end,
he comes to join you and your beloved husband, on your
other fortnight's trip in Wales, you shall say that we
have sent him to you in the best health and in the
happiest frame. Now, I hear Somebody's step coming to the
door. Let me kiss my dear girl with an old-fashioned
bachelor blessing, before Somebody comes to claim his
own."
For a moment, he held the fair face from him to
look at the well-remembered expression on the forehead,
and then laid the bright golden hair against his little
brown wig, with a genuine tenderness and delicacy which,
if such things be old-fashioned, were as old as
Adam.
The door of the Doctor's room opened, and he came
out with Charles Darnay. He was so deadly pale--which had
not been the case when they went in together--that no
vestige of colour was to be seen in his face. But, in the
composure of his manner he was unaltered, except that to
the shrewd glance of Mr. Lorry it disclosed some shadowy
indication that the old air of avoidance and dread had
lately passed over him, like a cold wind.
He gave his arm to his daughter, and took her
down-stairs to the chariot which Mr. Lorry had hired in
honour of the day. The rest followed in another carriage,
and soon, in a neighbouring church, where no strange eyes
looked on, Charles Darnay and Lucie Manette were happily
married.
Besides the glancing tears that shone among the
smiles of the little group when it was done, some
diamonds, very bright and sparkling, glanced on the
bride's hand, which were newly released from the dark
obscurity of one of Mr. Lorry's pockets. They returned
home to breakfast, and all went well, and in due course
the golden hair that had mingled with the poor
shoemaker's white locks in the Paris garret, were mingled
with them again in the morning sunlight, on the threshold
of the door at parting.
It was a hard parting, though it was not for long.
But her father cheered her, and said at last, gently
disengaging himself from her enfolding arms, "Take her,
Charles! She is yours!"
And her agitated hand waved to them from a chaise
window, and she was gone.
The corner being out of the way of the idle and
curious, and the preparations having been very simple and
few, the Doctor, Mr. Lorry, and Miss Pross, were left
quite alone. It was when they turned into the welcome
shade of the cool old hall, that Mr. Lorry observed a
great change to have come over the Doctor; as if the
golden arm uplifted there, had struck him a poisoned
blow.
He had naturally repressed much, and some revulsion
might have been expected in him when the occasion for
repression was gone. But, it was the old scared lost look
that troubled Mr. Lorry; and through his absent manner of
clasping his head and drearily wandering away into his
own room when they got up-stairs, Mr. Lorry was reminded
of Defarge the wine-shop keeper, and the starlight
ride.
"I think," he whispered to Miss Pross, after
anxious consideration, "I think we had best not speak to
him just now, or at all disturb him. I must look in at
Tellson's; so I will go there at once and come back
presently. Then, we will take him a ride into the
country, and dine there, and all will be well."
It was easier for Mr. Lorry to look in at
Tellson's, than to look out of Tellson's. He was detained
two hours. When he came back, he ascended the old
staircase alone, having asked no question of the servant;
going thus into the Doctor's rooms, he was stopped by a
low sound of knocking.
"Good God!" he said, with a start. "What's
that?"
Miss Pross, with a terrified face, was at his ear.
"O me, O me! All is lost!" cried she, wringing her hands.
"What is to be told to Ladybird? He doesn't know me, and
is making shoes!"
Mr. Lorry said what he could to calm her, and went
himself into the Doctor's room. The bench was turned
towards the light, as it had been when he had seen the
shoemaker at his work before, and his head was bent down,
and he was very busy.
"Doctor Manette. My dear friend, Doctor
Manette!"
The Doctor looked at him for a moment--half
inquiringly, half as if he were angry at being spoken
to--and bent over his work again.
He had laid aside his coat and waistcoat; his shirt
was open at the throat, as it used to be when he did that
work; and even the old haggard, faded surface of face had
come back to him. He worked hard-- impatiently--as if in
some sense of having been interrupted.
Mr. Lorry glanced at the work in his hand, and
observed that it was a shoe of the old size and shape. He
took up another that was lying by him, and asked what it
was.
"A young lady's walking shoe," he muttered, without
looking up. "It ought to have been finished long ago. Let
it be."
"But, Doctor Manette. Look at me!"
He obeyed, in the old mechanically submissive
manner, without pausing in his work.
"You know me, my dear friend? Think again. This is
not your proper occupation. Think, dear friend!"
Nothing would induce him to speak more. He looked
up, for an instant at a time, when he was requested to do
so; but, no persuasion would extract a word from him. He
worked, and worked, and worked, in silence, and words
fell on him as they would have fallen on an echoless
wall, or on the air. The only ray of hope that Mr. Lorry
could discover, was, that he sometimes furtively looked
up without being asked. In that, there seemed a faint
expression of curiosity or perplexity--as though he were
trying to reconcile some doubts in his mind.
Two things at once impressed themselves on Mr.
Lorry, as important above all others; the first, that
this must be kept secret from Lucie; the second, that it
must be kept secret from all who knew him. In conjunction
with Miss Pross, he took immediate steps towards the
latter precaution, by giving out that the Doctor was not
well, and required a few days of complete rest. In aid of
the kind deception to be practised on his daughter, Miss
Pross was to write, describing his having been called
away professionally, and referring to an imaginary letter
of two or three hurried lines in his own hand,
represented to have been addressed to her by the same
post.
These measures, advisable to be taken in any case,
Mr. Lorry took in the hope of his coming to himself. If
that should happen soon, he kept another course in
reserve; which was, to have a certain opinion that he
thought the best, on the Doctor's case.
In the hope of his recovery, and of resort to this
third course being thereby rendered practicable, Mr.
Lorry resolved to watch him attentively, with as little
appearance as possible of doing so. He therefore made
arrangements to absent himself from Tellson's for the
first time in his life, and took his post by the window
in the same room.
He was not long in discovering that it was worse
than useless to speak to him, since, on being pressed, he
became worried. He abandoned that attempt on the first
day, and resolved merely to keep himself always before
him, as a silent protest against the delusion into which
he had fallen, or was failing. He remained, therefore, in
his seat near the window, reading and writing, and
expressing in as many pleasant and natural ways as he
could think of, that it was a free place.
Doctor Manette took what was given him to eat and
drink, and worked on, that first day, until it was too
dark to see--worked on, half an hour after Mr. Lorry
could not have seen, for his life, to read or write. When
he put his tools aside as useless, until morning, Mr.
Lorry rose and said to him:
"Will you go out?"
He looked down at the floor on either side of him
in the old manner, looked up in the old manner, and
repeated in the old low voice:
"Out?"
"Yes; for a walk with me. Why not?"
He made no effort to say why not, and said not a
word more. But, Mr. Lorry thought he saw, as he leaned
forward on his bench in the dusk, with his elbows on his
knees and his head in his hands, that he was in some
misty way asking himself, "Why not?" The sagacity of the
man of business perceived an advantage here, and
determined to hold it.
Miss Pross and he divided the night into two
watches, and observed him at intervals from the adjoining
room. He paced up and down for a long time before he lay
down; but, when he did finally lay himself down, he fell
asleep. In the morning, he was up betimes, and went
straight to his bench and to work.
On this second day, Mr. Lorry saluted him
cheerfully by his name, and spoke to him on topics that
had been of late familiar to them. He returned no reply,
but it was evident that he heard what was said, and that
he thought about it, however confusedly. This encouraged
Mr. Lorry to have Miss Pross in with her work, several
times during the day; at those times, they quietly spoke
of Lucie, and of her father then present, precisely in
the usual manner, and as if there were nothing amiss.
This was done without any demonstrative accompaniment,
not long enough, or often enough to harass him; and it
lightened Mr. Lorry's friendly heart to believe that he
looked up oftener, and that he appeared to be stirred by
some perception of inconsistencies surrounding
him.
When it fell dark again, Mr. Lorry asked him as
before:
"Dear Doctor, will you go out?"
As before, he repeated, "Out?"
"Yes; for a walk with me. Why not?"
This time, Mr. Lorry feigned to go out when he
could extract no answer from him, and, after remaining
absent for an hour, returned. In the meanwhile, the
Doctor had removed to the seat in the window, and had sat
there looking down at the plane-tree; but, on Mr. Lorry's
return, be slipped away to his bench.
The time went very slowly on, and Mr. Lorry's hope
darkened, and his heart grew heavier again, and grew yet
heavier and heavier every day. The third day came and
went, the fourth, the fifth. Five days, six days, seven
days, eight days, nine days.
With a hope ever darkening, and with a heart always
growing heavier and heavier, Mr. Lorry passed through
this anxious time. The secret was well kept, and Lucie
was unconscious and happy; but he could not fail to
observe that the shoemaker, whose hand had been a little
out at first, was growing dreadfully skilful, and that he
had never been so intent on his work, and that his hands
had never been so nimble and expert, as in the dusk of
the ninth evening.
XIX
An Opinion
Worn out by anxious watching, Mr. Lorry fell asleep
at his post. On the tenth morning of his suspense, he was
startled by the shining of the sun into the room where a
heavy slumber had overtaken him when it was dark
night.
He rubbed his eyes and roused himself; but he
doubted, when he had done so, whether he was not still
asleep. For, going to the door of the Doctor's room and
looking in, he perceived that the shoemaker's bench and
tools were put aside again, and that the Doctor himself
sat reading at the window. He was in his usual morning
dress, and his face (which Mr. Lorry could distinctly
see), though still very pale, was calmly studious and
attentive.
Even when he had satisfied himself that he was
awake, Mr. Lorry felt giddily uncertain for some few
moments whether the late shoemaking might not be a
disturbed dream of his own; for, did not his eyes show
him his friend before him in his accustomed clothing and
aspect, and employed as usual; and was there any sign
within their range, that the change of which he had so
strong an impression had actually happened?
It was but the inquiry of his first confusion and
astonishment, the answer being obvious. If the impression
were not produced by a real corresponding and sufficient
cause, how came he, Jarvis Lorry, there? How came he to
have fallen asleep, in his clothes, on the sofa in Doctor
Manette's consulting-room, and to be debating these
points outside the Doctor's bedroom door in the early
morning?
Within a few minutes, Miss Pross stood whispering
at his side. If he had had any particle of doubt left,
her talk would of necessity have resolved it; but he was
by that time clear-headed, and had none. He advised that
they should let the time go by until the regular
breakfast-hour, and should then meet the Doctor as if
nothing unusual had occurred. If he appeared to be in his
customary state of mind, Mr. Lorry would then cautiously
proceed to seek direction and guidance from the opinion
he had been, in his anxiety, so anxious to obtain.
Miss Pross, submitting herself to his judgment, the
scheme was worked out with care. Having abundance of time
for his usual methodical toilette, Mr. Lorry presented
himself at the breakfast-hour in his usual white linen,
and with his usual neat leg. The Doctor was summoned in
the usual way, and came to breakfast.
So far as it was possible to comprehend him without
overstepping those delicate and gradual approaches which
Mr. Lorry felt to be the only safe advance, he at first
supposed that his daughter's marriage had taken place
yesterday. An incidental allusion, purposely thrown out,
to the day of the week, and the day of the month, set him
thinking and counting, and evidently made him uneasy. In
all other respects, however, he was so composedly
himself, that Mr. Lorry determined to have the aid he
sought. And that aid was his own.
Therefore, when the breakfast was done and cleared
away, and he and the Doctor were left together, Mr. Lorry
said, feelingly:
"My dear Manette, I am anxious to have your
opinion, in confidence, on a very curious case in which I
am deeply interested; that is to say, it is very curious
to me; perhaps, to your better information it may be less
so."
Glancing at his hands, which were discoloured by
his late work, the Doctor looked troubled, and listened
attentively. He had already glanced at his hands more
than once.
"Doctor Manette," said Mr. Lorry, touching him
affectionately on the arm, "the case is the case of a
particularly dear friend of mine. Pray give your mind to
it, and advise me well for his sake--and above all, for
his daughter's--his daughter's, my dear Manette."
"If I understand," said the Doctor, in a subdued
tone, "some mental shock--?"
"Yes!"
"Be explicit," said the Doctor. "Spare no
detail."
Mr. Lorry saw that they understood one another, and
proceeded.
"My dear Manette, it is the case of an old and a
prolonged shock, of great acuteness and severity to the
affections, the feelings, the--the--as you express
it--the mind. The mind. It is the case of a shock under
which the sufferer was borne down, one cannot say for how
long, because I believe he cannot calculate the time
himself, and there are no other means of getting at it.
It is the case of a shock from which the sufferer
recovered, by a process that he cannot trace himself--as
I once heard him publicly relate in a striking manner. It
is the case of a shock from which he has recovered, so
completely, as to be a highly intelligent man, capable of
close application of mind, and great exertion of body,
and of constantly making fresh additions to his stock of
knowledge, which was already very large. But,
unfortunately, there has been," he paused and took a deep
breath--"a slight relapse."
The Doctor, in a low voice, asked, "Of how long
duration?"
"Nine days and nights."
"How did it show itself? I infer," glancing at his
hands again, "in the resumption of some old pursuit
connected with the shock?"
"That is the fact."
"Now, did you ever see him," asked the Doctor,
distinctly and collectedly, though in the same low voice,
"engaged in that pursuit originally?"
"Once."
"And when the relapse fell on him, was he in most
respects--or in all respects--as he was then?"
"I think in all respects."
"You spoke of his daughter. Does his daughter know
of the relapse?"
"No. It has been kept from her, and I hope will
always be kept from her. It is known only to myself, and
to one other who may be trusted."
The Doctor grasped his band, and murmured, "That
was very kind. That was very thoughtful!" Mr. Lorry
grasped his hand in return, and neither of the two spoke
for a little while.
"Now, my dear Manette," said Mr. Lorry, at length,
in his most considerate and most affectionate way, "I am
a mere man of business, and unfit to cope with such
intricate and difficult matters. I do not possess the
kind of information necessary; I do not possess the kind
of intelligence; I want guiding. There is no man in this
world on whom I could so rely for right guidance, as on
you. Tell me, how does this relapse come about? Is there
danger of another? Could a repetition of it be prevented?
How should a repetition of it be treated? How does it
come about at all? What can I do for my friend? No man
ever can have been more desirous in his heart to serve a
friend, than I am to serve mine, if I knew how.
But I don't know how to originate, in such a case.
If your sagacity, knowledge, and experience, could put me
on the right track, I might be able to do so much;
unenlightened and undirected, I can do so little. Pray
discuss it with me; pray enable me to see it a little
more clearly, and teach me how to be a little more
useful."
Doctor Manette sat meditating after these earnest
words were spoken, and Mr. Lorry did not press
him.
"I think it probable," said the Doctor, breaking
silence with an effort, "that the relapse you have
described, my dear friend, was not quite unforeseen by
its subject."
"Was it dreaded by him?" Mr. Lorry ventured to
ask.
"Very much." He said it with an involuntary
shudder.
"You have no idea how such an apprehension weighs
on the sufferer's mind, and how difficult--how almost
impossible--it is, for him to force himself to utter a
word upon the topic that oppresses him."
"Would he," asked Mr. Lorry, "be sensibly relieved
if he could prevail upon himself to impart that secret
brooding to any one, when it is on him?"
"I think so. But it is, as I have told you, next to
impossible. I even believe it--in some cases--to be quite
impossible."
"Now," said Mr. Lorry, gently laying his hand on
the Doctor's arm again, after a short silence on both
sides, "to what would you refer this attack? "
"I believe," returned Doctor Manette, "that there
had been a strong and extraordinary revival of the train
of thought and remembrance that was the first cause of
the malady. Some intense associations of a most
distressing nature were vividly recalled, I think. It is
probable that there had long been a dread lurking in his
mind, that those associations would be recalled--say,
under certain circumstances--say, on a particular
occasion. He tried to prepare himself in vain; perhaps
the effort to prepare himself made him less able to bear
it."
"Would he remember what took place in the relapse?"
asked Mr. Lorry, with natural hesitation.
The Doctor looked desolately round the room, shook
his head, and answered, in a low voice, "Not at
all."
"Now, as to the future," hinted Mr. Lorry.
"As to the future," said the Doctor, recovering
firmness, "I should have great hope. As it pleased Heaven
in its mercy to restore him so soon, I should have great
hope. He, yielding under the pressure of a complicated
something, long dreaded and long vaguely foreseen and
contended against, and recovering after the cloud had
burst and passed, I should hope that the worst was
over."
"Well, well! That's good comfort. I am thankful!"
said Mr. Lorry.
"I am thankful!" repeated the Doctor, bending his
head with reverence.
"There are two other points," said Mr. Lorry, "on
which I am anxious to be instructed. I may go on?"
"You cannot do your friend a better service." The
Doctor gave him his hand.
"To the first, then. He is of a studious habit, and
unusually energetic; he applies himself with great ardour
to the acquisition of professional knowledge, to the
conducting of experiments, to many things. Now, does he
do too much?"
"I think not. It may be the character of his mind,
to be always in singular need of occupation. That may be,
in part, natural to it; in part, the result of
affliction. The less it was occupied with healthy things,
the more it would be in danger of turning in the
unhealthy direction. He may have observed himself, and
made the discovery."
"You are sure that he is not under too great a
strain?"
"I think I am quite sure of it."
"My dear Manette, if he were overworked
now--"
"My dear Lorry, I doubt if that could easily be.
There has been a violent stress in one direction, and it
needs a counterweight."
"Excuse me, as a persistent man of business.
Assuming for a moment, that he WAS overworked; it would
show itself in some renewal of this disorder?"
"I do not think so. I do not think," said Doctor
Manette with the firmness of self-conviction, "that
anything but the one train of association would renew it.
I think that, henceforth, nothing but some extraordinary
jarring of that chord could renew it. After what has
happened, and after his recovery, I find it difficult to
imagine any such violent sounding of that string again. I
trust, and I almost believe, that the circumstances
likely to renew it are exhausted."
He spoke with the diffidence of a man who knew how
slight a thing would overset the delicate organisation of
the mind, and yet with the confidence of a man who had
slowly won his assurance out of personal endurance and
distress. It was not for his friend to abate that
confidence. He professed himself more relieved and
encouraged than he really was, and approached his second
and last point. He felt it to be the most difficult of
all; but, remembering his old Sunday morning conversation
with Miss Pross, and remembering what he had seen in the
last nine days, he knew that he must face it.
"The occupation resumed under the influence of this
passing affliction so happily recovered from," said Mr.
Lorry, clearing his throat, "we will call--Blacksmith's
work, Blacksmith's work. We will say, to put a case and
for the sake of illustration, that he had been used, in
his bad time, to work at a little forge. We will say that
he was unexpectedly found at his forge again. Is it not a
pity that he should keep it by him?"
The Doctor shaded his forehead with his hand, and
beat his foot nervously on the ground.
"He has always kept it by him," said Mr. Lorry,
with an anxious look at his friend. "Now, would it not be
better that he should let it go?"
Still, the Doctor, with shaded forehead, beat his
foot nervously on the ground.
"You do not find it easy to advise me?" said Mr.
Lorry. "I quite understand it to be a nice question. And
yet I think--" And there he shook his head, and
stopped.
"You see," said Doctor Manette, turning to him
after an uneasy pause, "it is very hard to explain,
consistently, the innermost workings of this poor man's
mind. He once yearned so frightfully for that occupation,
and it was so welcome when it came; no doubt it relieved
his pain so much, by substituting the perplexity of the
fingers for the perplexity of the brain, and by
substituting, as he became more practised, the ingenuity
of the hands, for the ingenuity of the mental torture;
that he has never been able to bear the thought of
putting it quite out of his reach. Even now, when I
believe he is more hopeful of himself than he has ever
been, and even speaks of himself with a kind of
confidence, the idea that he might need that old
employment, and not find it, gives him a sudden sense of
terror, like that which one may fancy strikes to the
heart of a lost child."
He looked like his illustration, as he raised his
eyes to Mr. Lorry's face.
"But may not--mind! I ask for information, as a
plodding man of business who only deals with such
material objects as guineas, shillings, and
bank-notes--may not the retention of the thing involve
the retention of the idea? If the thing were gone, my
dear Manette, might not the fear go with it? In short, is
it not a concession to the misgiving, to keep the
forge?"
There was another silence.
"You see, too," said the Doctor, tremulously, "it
is such an old companion."
"I would not keep it," said Mr. Lorry, shaking his
head; for he gained in firmness as he saw the Doctor
disquieted. "I would recommend him to sacrifice it. I
only want your authority. I am sure it does no good.
Come! Give me your authority, like a dear good man. For
his daughter's sake, my dear Manette!"
Very strange to see what a struggle there was
within him!
"In her name, then, let it be done; I sanction it.
But, I would not take it away while he was present. Let
it be removed when he is not there; let him miss his old
companion after an absence."
Mr. Lorry readily engaged for that, and the
conference was ended. They passed the day in the country,
and the Doctor was quite restored. On the three following
days he remained perfectly well, and on the fourteenth
day he went away to join Lucie and her husband. The
precaution that had been taken to account for his
silence, Mr. Lorry had previously explained to him, and
he had written to Lucie in accordance with it, and she
had no suspicions.
On the night of the day on which he left the house,
Mr. Lorry went into his room with a chopper, saw, chisel,
and hammer, attended by Miss Pross carrying a light.
There, with closed doors, and in a mysterious and guilty
manner, Mr. Lorry hacked the shoemaker's bench to pieces,
while Miss Pross held the candle as if she were assisting
at a murder--for which, indeed, in her grimness, she was
no unsuitable figure. The burning of the body (previously
reduced to pieces convenient for the purpose) was
commenced without delay in the kitchen fire; and the
tools, shoes, and leather, were buried in the garden. So
wicked do destruction and secrecy appear to honest minds,
that Mr. Lorry and Miss Pross, while engaged in the
commission of their deed and in the removal of its
traces, almost felt, and almost looked, like accomplices
in a horrible crime.
XX
A Plea
When the newly-married pair came home, the first
person who appeared, to offer his congratulations, was
Sydney Carton. They had not been at home many hours, when
he presented himself. He was not improved in habits, or
in looks, or in manner; but there was a certain rugged
air of fidelity about him, which was new to the
observation of Charles Darnay.
He watched his opportunity of taking Darnay aside
into a window, and of speaking to him when no one
overheard.
"Mr. Darnay," said Carton, "I wish we might be
friends."
"We are already friends, I hope."
"You are good enough to say so, as a fashion of
speech; but, I don't mean any fashion of speech. Indeed,
when I say I wish we might be friends, I scarcely mean
quite that, either."
Charles Darnay--as was natural--asked him, in all
good-humour and good-fellowship, what he did mean?
"Upon my life," said Carton, smiling, "I find that
easier to comprehend in my own mind, than to convey to
yours. However, let me try. You remember a certain famous
occasion when I was more drunk than-- than usual?"
"I remember a certain famous occasion when you
forced me to confess that you had been drinking."
"I remember it too. The curse of those occasions is
heavy upon me, for I always remember them. I hope it may
be taken into account one day, when all days are at an
end for me! Don't be alarmed; I am not going to
preach."
"I am not at all alarmed. Earnestness in you, is
anything but alarming to me."
"Ah!" said Carton, with a careless wave of his
hand, as if he waved that away. "On the drunken occasion
in question (one of a large number, as you know), I was
insufferable about liking you, and not liking you. I wish
you would forget it."
"I forgot it long ago."
"Fashion of speech again! But, Mr. Darnay, oblivion
is not so easy to me, as you represent it to be to you. I
have by no means forgotten it, and a light answer does
not help me to forget it."
"If it was a light answer," returned Darnay, "I beg
your forgiveness for it. I had no other object than to
turn a slight thing, which, to my surprise, seems to
trouble you too much, aside. I declare to you, on the
faith of a gentleman, that I have long dismissed it from
my mind. Good Heaven, what was there to dismiss! Have I
had nothing more important to remember, in the great
service you rendered me that day?"
"As to the great service," said Carton, "I am bound
to avow to you, when you speak of it in that way, that it
was mere professional claptrap, I don't know that I cared
what became of you, when I rendered it.--Mind! I say when
I rendered it; I am speaking of the past."
"You make light of the obligation," returned
Darnay, "but I will not quarrel with YOUR light
answer."
"Genuine truth, Mr. Darnay, trust me! I have gone
aside from my purpose; I was speaking about our being
friends. Now, you know me; you know I am incapable of all
the higher and better flights of men. If you doubt it,
ask Stryver, and he'll tell you so."
"I prefer to form my own opinion, without the aid
of his."
"Well! At any rate you know me as a dissolute dog,
who has never done any good, and never will."
"I don't know that you `never will.'"
"But I do, and you must take my word for it. Well!
If you could endure to have such a worthless fellow, and
a fellow of such indifferent reputation, coming and going
at odd times, I should ask that I might be permitted to
come and go as a privileged person here; that I might be
regarded as an useless (and I would add, if it were not
for the resemblance I detected between you and me, an
unornamental) piece of furniture, tolerated for its old
service, and taken no notice of. I doubt if I should
abuse the permission. It is a hundred to one if I should
avail myself of it four times in a year. It would satisfy
me, I dare say, to know that I had it."
"Will you try?"
"That is another way of saying that I am placed on
the footing I have indicated. I thank you, Darnay. I may
use that freedom with your name?"
"I think so, Carton, by this time."
They shook hands upon it, and Sydney turned away.
Within a minute afterwards, he was, to all outward
appearance, as unsubstantial as ever.
When he was gone, and in the course of an evening
passed with Miss Pross, the Doctor, and Mr. Lorry,
Charles Darnay made some mention of this conversation in
general terms, and spoke of Sydney Carton as a problem of
carelessness and recklessness. He spoke of him, in short,
not bitterly or meaning to bear hard upon him, but as
anybody might who saw him as he showed himself.
He had no idea that this could dwell in the
thoughts of his fair young wife; but, when he afterwards
joined her in their own rooms, he found her waiting for
him with the old pretty lifting of the forehead strongly
marked.
"We are thoughtful to-night!" said Darnay, drawing
his arm about her.
"Yes, dearest Charles," with her hands on his
breast, and the inquiring and attentive expression fixed
upon him; "we are rather thoughtful to-night, for we have
something on our mind to-night."
"What is it, my Lucie?"
"Will you promise not to press one question on me,
if I beg you not to ask it?"
"Will I promise? What will I not promise to my
Love?"
What, indeed, with his hand putting aside the
golden hair from the cheek, and his other hand against
the heart that beat for him!
"I think, Charles, poor Mr. Carton deserves more
consideration and respect than you expressed for him
to-night."
"Indeed, my own? Why so?"
"That is what you are not to ask me. But I think--I
know--he does."
"If you know it, it is enough. What would you have
me do, my Life?"
"I would ask you, dearest, to be very generous with
him always, and very lenient on his faults when he is not
by. I would ask you to believe that he has a heart he
very, very seldom reveals, and that there are deep wounds
in it. My dear, I have seen it bleeding."
"It is a painful reflection to me," said Charles
Darnay, quite astounded, "that I should have done him any
wrong. I never thought this of him."
"My husband, it is so. I fear he is not to be
reclaimed; there is scarcely a hope that anything in his
character or fortunes is reparable now. But, I am sure
that he is capable of good things, gentle things, even
magnanimous things."
She looked so beautiful in the purity of her faith
in this lost man, that her husband could have looked at
her as she was for hours.
"And, O my dearest Love!" she urged, clinging
nearer to him, laying her head upon his breast, and
raising her eyes to his, "remember how strong we are in
our happiness, and how weak he is in his misery!"
The supplication touched him home. "I will always
remember it, dear Heart! I will remember it as long as I
live."
He bent over the golden head, and put the rosy lips
to his, and folded her in his arms. If one forlorn
wanderer then pacing the dark streets, could have heard
her innocent disclosure, and could have seen the drops of
pity kissed away by her husband from the soft blue eyes
so loving of that husband, he might have cried to the
night--and the words would not have parted from his lips
for the first time--
"God bless her for her sweet compassion!"
XXI
Echoing Footsteps
A wonderful corner for echoes, it has been
remarked, that corner where the Doctor lived. Ever busily
winding the golden thread which bound her husband, and
her father, and herself, and her old directress and
companion, in a life of quiet bliss, Lucie sat in the
still house in the tranquilly resounding corner,
listening to the echoing footsteps of years.
At first, there were times, though she was a
perfectly happy young wife, when her work would slowly
fall from her hands, and her eyes would be dimmed. For,
there was something coming in the echoes, something
light, afar off, and scarcely audible yet, that stirred
her heart too much. Fluttering hopes and doubts--hopes,
of a love as yet unknown to her: doubts, of her remaining
upon earth, to enjoy that new delight--divided her
breast. Among the echoes then, there would arise the
sound of footsteps at her own early grave; and thoughts
of the husband who would be left so desolate, and who
would mourn for her so much, swelled to her eyes, and
broke like waves.
That time passed, and her little Lucie lay on her
bosom. Then, among the advancing echoes, there was the
tread of her tiny feet and the sound of her prattling
words. Let greater echoes resound as they would, the
young mother at the cradle side could always hear those
coming. They came, and the shady house was sunny with a
child's laugh, and the Divine friend of children, to whom
in her trouble she had confided hers, seemed to take her
child in his arms, as He took the child of old, and made
it a sacred joy to her.
Ever busily winding the golden thread that bound
them all together, weaving the service of her happy
influence through the tissue of all their lives, and
making it predominate nowhere, Lucie heard in the echoes
of years none but friendly and soothing sounds. Her
husband's step was strong and prosperous among them; her
father's firm and equal. Lo, Miss Pross, in harness of
string, awakening the echoes, as an unruly charger,
whip-corrected, snorting and pawing the earth under the
plane-tree in the garden!
Even when there were sounds of sorrow among the
rest, they were not harsh nor cruel. Even when golden
hair, like her own, lay in a halo on a pillow round the
worn face of a little boy, and he said, with a radiant
smile, "Dear papa and mamma, I am very sorry to leave you
both, and to leave my pretty sister; but I am called, and
I must go!" those were not tears all of agony that wetted
his young mother's cheek, as the spirit departed from her
embrace that had been entrusted to it. Suffer them and
forbid them not. They see my Father's face. O Father,
blessed words!
Thus, the rustling of an Angel's wings got blended
with the other echoes, and they were not wholly of earth,
but had in them that breath of Heaven. Sighs of the winds
that blew over a little garden-tomb were mingled with
them also, and both were audible to Lucie, in a hushed
murmur--like the breathing of a summer sea asleep upon a
sandy shore --as the little Lucie, comically studious at
the task of the morning, or dressing a doll at her
mother's footstool, chattered in the tongues of the Two
Cities that were blended in her life.
The Echoes rarely answered to the actual tread of
Sydney Carton. Some half-dozen times a year, at most, he
claimed his privilege of coming in uninvited, and would
sit among them through the evening, as he had once done
often. He never came there heated with wine. And one
other thing regarding him was whispered in the echoes,
which has been whispered by all true echoes for ages and
ages.
No man ever really loved a woman, lost her, and
knew her with a blameless though an unchanged mind, when
she was a wife and a mother, but her children had a
strange sympathy with him--an instinctive delicacy of
pity for him. What fine hidden sensibilities are touched
in such a case, no echoes tell; but it is so, and it was
so here. Carton was the first stranger to whom little
Lucie held out her chubby arms, and he kept his place
with her as she grew. The little boy had spoken of him,
almost at the last. "Poor Carton! Kiss him for
me!"
Mr. Stryver shouldered his way through the law,
like some great engine forcing itself through turbid
water, and dragged his useful friend in his wake, like a
boat towed astern. As the boat so favoured is usually in
a rough plight, and mostly under water, so, Sydney had a
swamped life of it. But, easy and strong custom,
unhappily so much easier and stronger in him than any
stimulating sense of desert or disgrace, made it the life
he was to lead; and he no more thought of emerging from
his state of lion's jackal, than any real jackal may be
supposed to think of rising to be a lion. Stryver was
rich; had married a florid widow with property and three
boys, who had nothing particularly shining about them but
the straight hair of their dumpling heads.
These three young gentlemen, Mr. Stryver, exuding
patronage of the most offensive quality from every pore,
had walked before him like three sheep to the quiet
corner in Soho, and had offered as pupils to Lucie's
husband: delicately saying "Halloa! here are three lumps
of bread-and- cheese towards your matrimonial picnic,
Darnay!" The polite rejection of the three lumps of
bread-and-cheese had quite bloated Mr. Stryver with
indignation, which he afterwards turned to account in the
training of the young gentlemen, by directing them to
beware of the pride of Beggars, like that tutor-fellow.
He was also in the habit of declaiming to Mrs. Stryver,
over his full-bodied wine, on the arts Mrs. Darnay had
once put in practice to "catch" him, and on the
diamond-cut-diamond arts in himself, madam, which had
rendered him "not to be caught." Some of his King's Bench
familiars, who were occasionally parties to the
full-bodied wine and the lie, excused him for the latter
by saying that he had told it so often, that he believed
it himself--which is surely such an incorrigible
aggravation of an originally bad offence, as to justify
any such offender's being carried off to some suitably
retired spot, and there hanged out of the way.
These were among the echoes to which Lucie,
sometimes pensive, sometimes amused and laughing,
listened in the echoing corner, until her little daughter
was six years old. How near to her heart the echoes of
her child's tread came, and those of her own dear
father's, always active and self-possessed, and those of
her dear husband's, need not be told. Nor, how the
lightest echo of their united home, directed by herself
with such a wise and elegant thrift that it was more
abundant than any waste, was music to her. Nor, how there
were echoes all about her, sweet in her ears, of the many
times her father had told her that he found her more
devoted to him married (if that could be) than single,
and of the many times her husband had said to her that no
cares and duties seemed to divide her love for him or her
help to him, and asked her "What is the magic secret, my
darling, of your being everything to all of us, as if
there were only one of us, yet never seeming to be
hurried, or to have too much to do?"
But, there were other echoes, from a distance, that
rumbled menacingly in the corner all through this space
of time. And it was now, about little Lucie's sixth
birthday, that they began to have an awful sound, as of a
great storm in France with a dreadful sea rising.
On a night in mid-July, one thousand seven hundred
and eighty-nine, Mr. Lorry came in late, from Tellson's,
and sat himself down by Lucie and her husband in the dark
window. It was a hot, wild night, and they were all three
reminded of the old Sunday night when they had looked at
the lightning from the same place.
"I began to think," said Mr. Lorry, pushing his
brown wig back, "that I should have to pass the night at
Tellson's. We have been so full of business all day, that
we have not known what to do first, or which way to turn.
There is such an uneasiness in Paris, that we have
actually a run of confidence upon us! Our customers over
there, seem not to be able to confide their property to
us fast enough. There is positively a mania among some of
them for sending it to England."
"That has a bad look," said Darnay--
"A bad look, you say, my dear Darnay? Yes, but we
don't know what reason there is in it. People are so
unreasonable! Some of us at Tellson's are getting old,
and we really can't be troubled out of the ordinary
course without due occasion."
"Still," said Darnay, "you know how gloomy and
threatening the sky is."
"I know that, to be sure," assented Mr. Lorry,
trying to persuade himself that his sweet temper was
soured, and that he grumbled, "but I am determined to be
peevish after my long day's botheration. Where is
Manette?"
"Here he is," said the Doctor, entering the dark
room at the moment.
"I am quite glad you are at home; for these hurries
and forebodings by which I have been surrounded all day
long, have made me nervous without reason. You are not
going out, I hope?"
"No; I am going to play backgammon with you, if you
like," said the Doctor.
"I don't think I do like, if I may speak my mind. I
am not fit to be pitted against you to-night. Is the
teaboard still there, Lucie? I can't see."
"Of course, it has been kept for you."
"Thank ye, my dear. The precious child is safe in
bed?"
"And sleeping soundly."
"That's right; all safe and well! I don't know why
anything should be otherwise than safe and well here,
thank God; but I have been so put out all day, and I am
not as young as I was! My tea, my dear! Thank ye. Now,
come and take your place in the circle, and let us sit
quiet, and hear the echoes about which you have your
theory."
"Not a theory; it was a fancy."
"A fancy, then, my wise pet," said Mr. Lorry,
patting her hand. "They are very numerous and very loud,
though, are they not? Only hear them!"
Headlong, mad, and dangerous footsteps to force
their way into anybody's life, footsteps not easily made
clean again if once stained red, the footsteps raging in
Saint Antoine afar off, as the little circle sat in the
dark London window.
Saint Antoine had been, that morning, a vast dusky
mass of scarecrows heaving to and fro, with frequent
gleams of light above the billowy heads, where steel
blades and bayonets shone in the sun. A tremendous roar
arose from the throat of Saint Antoine, and a forest of
naked arms struggled in the air like shrivelled branches
of trees in a winter wind: all the fingers convulsively
clutching at every weapon or semblance of a weapon that
was thrown up from the depths below, no matter how far
off.
Who gave them out, whence they last came, where
they began, through what agency they crookedly quivered
and jerked, scores at a time, over the heads of the
crowd, like a kind of lightning, no eye in the throng
could have told; but, muskets were being distributed--so
were cartridges, powder, and ball, bars of iron and wood,
knives, axes, pikes, every weapon that distracted
ingenuity could discover or devise. People who could lay
hold of nothing else, set themselves with bleeding hands
to force stones and bricks out of their places in walls.
Every pulse and heart in Saint Antoine was on high-fever
strain and at high-fever heat. Every living creature
there held life as of no account, and was demented with a
passionate readiness to sacrifice it.
As a whirlpool of boiling waters has a centre
point, so, all this raging circled round Defarge's
wine-shop, and every human drop in the caldron had a
tendency to be sucked towards the vortex where Defarge
himself, already begrimed with gunpowder and sweat,
issued orders, issued arms, thrust this man back, dragged
this man forward, disarmed one to arm another, laboured
and strove in the thickest of the uproar.
"Keep near to me, Jacques Three," cried Defarge;
"and do you, Jacques One and Two, separate and put
yourselves at the head of as many of these patriots as
you can. Where is my wife?"
"Eh, well! Here you see me!" said madame, composed
as ever, but not knitting to-day. Madame's resolute right
hand was occupied with an axe, in place of the usual
softer implements, and in her girdle were a pistol and a
cruel knife.
"Where do you go, my wife?"
"I go," said madame, "with you at present. You
shall see me at the head of women, by-and-bye."
"Come, then!" cried Defarge, in a resounding voice.
"Patriots and friends, we are ready! The
Bastille!"
With a roar that sounded as if all the breath in
France had been shaped into the detested word, the living
sea rose, wave on wave, depth on depth, and overflowed
the city to that point. Alarm-bells ringing, drums
beating, the sea raging and thundering on its new beach,
the attack began.
Deep ditches, double drawbridge, massive stone
walls, eight great towers, cannon, muskets, fire and
smoke. Through the fire and through the smoke--in the
fire and in the smoke, for the sea cast him up against a
cannon, and on the instant he became a cannonier--Defarge
of the wine-shop worked like a manful soldier, Two fierce
hours.
Deep ditch, single drawbridge, massive stone walls,
eight great towers, cannon, muskets, fire and smoke. One
drawbridge down! "Work, comrades all, work! Work, Jacques
One, Jacques Two, Jacques One Thousand, Jacques Two
Thousand, Jacques Five-and-Twenty Thousand; in the name
of all the Angels or the Devils--which you prefer--work!"
Thus Defarge of the wine-shop, still at his gun, which
had long gown hot.
"To me, women!" cried madame his wife. "What! We
can kill as well as the men when the place is taken!" And
to her, with a shrill thirsty cry, trooping women
variously armed, but all armed age in hunger and
revenge.
Cannon, muskets, fire and smoke; but, still the
deep ditch, the single drawbridge, the massive stone
wails, and the eight great towers. Slight displacements
of the raging sea, made by the falling wounded. Flashing
weapons, blazing torches, smoking waggonloads of wet
straw, hard work at neighbouring barricades in all
directions, shrieks, volleys, execrations, bravery
without stint, boom smash and rattle, and the furious
sounding of the living sea; but, still the deep ditch,
and the single drawbridge, and the massive stone walls,
and the eight great towers, and still Defarge of the
wine-shop at his gun, grown doubly hot by the service of
Four fierce hours.
A white flag from within the fortress, and a
parley--this dimly perceptible through the raging storm,
nothing audible in it--suddenly the sea rose immeasurably
wider and higher, and swept Defarge of the wine-shop over
the lowered drawbridge, past the massive stone outer
walls, in among the eight great towers
surrendered!
So resistless was the force of the ocean bearing
him on, that even to draw his breath or turn his head was
as impracticable as if he had been struggling in the surf
at the South Sea, until he was landed in the outer
courtyard of the Bastille. There, against an angle of a
wall, he made a struggle to look about him. Jacques Three
was nearly at his side; Madame Defarge, still heading
some of her women, was visible in the inner distance, and
her knife was in her hand. Everywhere was tumult,
exultation, deafening and maniacal bewilderment,
astounding noise, yet furious dumb-show.
"The Prisoners!"
"The Records!"
"The secret cells!"
"The instruments of torture!"
"The Prisoners!"
Of all these cries, and ten thousand incoherences,
"The Prisoners!" was the cry most taken up by the sea
that rushed in, as if there were an eternity of people,
as well as of time and space. When the foremost billows
rolled past, bearing the prison officers with them, and
threatening them all with instant death if any secret
nook remained undisclosed, Defarge laid his strong hand
on the breast of one of these men--a man with a grey
head, who had a lighted torch in his hand-- separated him
from the rest, and got him between himself and the
wall.
"Show me the North Tower!" said Defarge.
"Quick!"
"I will faithfully," replied the man, "if you will
come with me. But there is no one there."
"What is the meaning of One Hundred and Five, North
Tower?" asked Defarge. "Quick!"
"The meaning, monsieur?"
"Does it mean a captive, or a place of captivity?
Or do you mean that I shall strike you dead?"
"Kill him!" croaked Jacques Three, who had come
close up.
"Monsieur, it is a cell."
"Show it me!"
"Pass this way, then."
Jacques Three, with his usual craving on him, and
evidently disappointed by the dialogue taking a turn that
did not seem to promise bloodshed, held by Defarge's arm
as he held by the turnkey's. Their three heads had been
close together during this brief discourse, and it had
been as much as they could do to hear one another, even
then: so tremendous was the noise of the living ocean, in
its irruption into the Fortress, and its inundation of
the courts and passages and staircases. All around
outside, too, it beat the walls with a deep, hoarse roar,
from which, occasionally, some partial shouts of tumult
broke and leaped into the air like spray.
Through gloomy vaults where the light of day had
never shone, past hideous doors of dark dens and cages,
down cavernous flights of steps, and again up steep
rugged ascents of stone and brick, more like dry
waterfalls than staircases, Defarge, the turnkey, and
Jacques Three, linked hand and arm, went with all the
speed they could make. Here and there, especially at
first, the inundation started on them and swept by; but
when they had done descending, and were winding and
climbing up a tower, they were alone. Hemmed in here by
the massive thickness of walls and arches, the storm
within the fortress and without was only audible to them
in a dull, subdued way, as if the noise out of which they
had come had almost destroyed their sense of
hearing.
The turnkey stopped at a low door, put a key in a
clashing lock, swung the door slowly open, and said, as
they all bent their heads and passed in:
"One hundred and five, North Tower!"
There was a small, heavily-grated, unglazed window
high in the wall, with a stone screen before it, so that
the sky could be only seen by stooping low and looking
up. There was a small chimney, heavily barred across, a
few feet within. There was a heap of old feathery
wood-ashes on the hearth. There was a stool, and table,
and a straw bed. There were the four blackened walls, and
a rusted iron ring in one of them.
"Pass that torch slowly along these walls, that I
may see them," said Defarge to the turnkey.
The man obeyed, and Defarge followed the light
closely with his eyes.
"Stop!--Look here, Jacques!"
"A. M.!" croaked Jacques Three, as he read
greedily.
"Alexandre Manette," said Defarge in his ear,
following the letters with his swart forefinger, deeply
engrained with gunpowder. "And here he wrote `a poor
physician.' And it was he, without doubt, who scratched a
calendar on this stone. What is that in your hand? A
crowbar? Give it me!"
He had still the linstock of his gun in his own
hand. He made a sudden exchange of the two instruments,
and turning on the worm-eaten stool and table, beat them
to pieces in a few blows.
"Hold the light higher!" he said, wrathfully, to
the turnkey. "Look among those fragments with care,
Jacques. And see! Here is my knife," throwing it to him;
"rip open that bed, and search the straw. Hold the light
higher, you!"
With a menacing look at the turnkey he crawled upon
the hearth, and, peering up the chimney, struck and
prised at its sides with the crowbar, and worked at the
iron grating across it. In a few minutes, some mortar and
dust came dropping down, which he averted his face to
avoid; and in it, and in the old wood-ashes, and in a
crevice in the chimney into which his weapon had slipped
or wrought itself, he groped with a cautious
touch.
"Nothing in the wood, and nothing in the straw,
Jacques?"
"Nothing."
"Let us collect them together, in the middle of the
cell. So! Light them, you!"
The turnkey fired the little pile, which blazed
high and hot. Stooping again to come out at the
low-arched door, they left it burning, and retraced their
way to the courtyard; seeming to recover their sense of
hearing as they came down, until they were in the raging
flood once more.
They found it surging and tossing, in quest of
Defarge himself. Saint Antoine was clamorous to have its
wine-shop keeper foremost in the guard upon the governor
who had defended the Bastille and shot the people.
Otherwise, the governor would not be marched to the Hotel
de Ville for judgment. Otherwise, the governor would
escape, and the people's blood (suddenly of some value,
after many years of worthlessness) be unavenged.
In the howling universe of passion and contention
that seemed to encompass this grim old officer
conspicuous in his grey coat and red decoration, there
was but one quite steady figure, and that was a woman's.
"See, there is my husband!" she cried, pointing him out.
"See Defarge!" She stood immovable close to the grain old
officer, and remained immovable close to him; remained
immovable close to him through the streets, as Defarge
and the rest bore him along; remained immovable close to
him when he was got near his destination, and began to be
struck at from behind; remained immovable close to him
when the long-gathering rain of stabs and blows fell
heavy; was so close to him when he dropped dead under it,
that, suddenly animated, she put her foot upon his neck,
and with her cruel knife--long ready--hewed off his
head.
The hour was come, when Saint Antoine was to
execute his horrible idea of hoisting up men for lamps to
show what he could be and do. Saint Antoine's blood was
up, and the blood of tyranny and domination by the iron
hand was down--down on the steps of the Hotel de Ville
where the governor's body lay--down on the sole of the
shoe of Madame Defarge where she had trodden on the body
to steady it for mutilation. "Lower the lamp yonder!"
cried Saint Antoine, after glaring round for a new means
of death; "here is one of his soldiers to be left on
guard!" The swinging sentinel was posted, and the sea
rushed on.
The sea of black and threatening waters, and of
destructive upheaving of wave against wave, whose depths
were yet unfathomed and whose forces were yet unknown.
The remorseless sea of turbulently swaying shapes, voices
of vengeance, and faces hardened in the furnaces of
suffering until the touch of pity could make no mark on
them.
But, in the ocean of faces where every fierce and
furious expression was in vivid life, there were two
groups of faces--each seven in number --so fixedly
contrasting with the rest, that never did sea roll which
bore more memorable wrecks with it. Seven faces of
prisoners, suddenly released by the storm that had burst
their tomb, were carried high overhead: all scared, all
lost, all wondering and amazed, as if the Last Day were
come, and those who rejoiced around them were lost
spirits. Other seven faces there were, carried higher,
seven dead faces, whose drooping eyelids and half-seen
eyes awaited the Last Day. Impassive faces, yet with a
suspended--not an abolished--expression on them; faces,
rather, in a fearful pause, as having yet to raise the
dropped lids of the eyes, and bear witness with the
bloodless lips, "THOU DIDST IT!"
Seven prisoners released, seven gory heads on
pikes, the keys of the accursed fortress of the eight
strong towers, some discovered letters and other
memorials of prisoners of old time, long dead of broken
hearts,--such, and such--like, the loudly echoing
footsteps of Saint Antoine escort through the Paris
streets in mid-July, one thousand seven hundred and
eighty-nine. Now, Heaven defeat the fancy of Lucie
Darnay, and keep these feet far out of her life! For,
they are headlong, mad, and dangerous; and in the years
so long after the breaking of the cask at Defarge's
wine-shop door, they are not easily purified when once
stained red.
XXII
The Sea Still Rises
Haggard Saint Antoine had had only one exultant
week, in which to soften his modicum of hard and bitter
bread to such extent as he could, with the relish of
fraternal embraces and congratulations, when Madame
Defarge sat at her counter, as usual, presiding over the
customers. Madame Defarge wore no rose in her head, for
the great brotherhood of Spies had become, even in one
short week, extremely chary of trusting themselves to the
saint's mercies. The lamps across his streets had a
portentously elastic swing with them.
Madame Defarge, with her arms folded, sat in the
morning light and heat, contemplating the wine-shop and
the street. In both, there were several knots of
loungers, squalid and miserable, but now with a manifest
sense of power enthroned on their distress. The raggedest
nightcap, awry on the wretchedest head, had this crooked
significance in it: "I know how hard it has grown for me,
the wearer of this, to support life in myself; but do you
know how easy it has grown for me, the wearer of this, to
destroy life in you?" Every lean bare arm, that bad been
without work before, had this work always ready for it
now, that it could strike. The fingers of the knitting
women were vicious, with the experience that they could
tear. There was a change in the appearance of Saint
Antoine; the image had been hammering into this for
hundreds of years, and the last finishing blows had told
mightily on the expression.
Madame Defarge sat observing it, with such
suppressed approval as was to be desired in the leader of
the Saint Antoine women. One of her sisterhood knitted
beside her. The short, rather plump wife of a starved
grocer, and the mother of two children withal, this
lieutenant had already earned the complimentary name of
The Vengeance.
"Hark!" said The Vengeance. "Listen, then! Who
comes?"
As if a train of powder laid from the outermost
bound of Saint Antoine Quarter to the wine-shop door, had
been suddenly fired, a fast-spreading murmur came rushing
along.
"It is Defarge," said madame. "Silence,
patriots!"
Defarge came in breathless, pulled off a red cap he
wore, and looked around him! "Listen, everywhere!" said
madame again. "Listen to him!" Defarge stood, panting,
against a background of eager eyes and open mouths,
formed outside the door; all those within the wine-shop
had sprung to their feet.
"Say then, my husband. What is it?"
"News from the other world!"
"How, then?" cried madame, contemptuously. "The
other world?"
"Does everybody here recall old Foulon, who told
the famished people that they might eat grass, and who
died, and went to Hell?"
"Everybody!" from all throats.
"The news is of him. He is among us!"
"Among us!" from the universal throat again. "And
dead?"
"Not dead! He feared us so much--and with
reason--that he caused himself to be represented as dead,
and had a grand mock-funeral. But they have found him
alive, hiding in the country, and have brought him in. I
have seen him but now, on his way to the Hotel de Ville,
a prisoner. I have said that he had reason to fear us.
Say all! HAD he reason?"
Wretched old sinner of more than threescore years
and ten, if he had never known it yet, he would have
known it in his heart of hearts if he could have heard
the answering cry.
A moment of profound silence followed. Defarge and
his wife looked steadfastly at one another. The Vengeance
stooped, and the jar of a drum was heard as she moved it
at her feet behind the counter.
"Patriots!" said Defarge, in a determined voice,
"are we ready?"
Instantly Madame Defarge's knife was in her girdle;
the drum was beating in the streets, as if it and a
drummer had flown together by magic; and The Vengeance,
uttering terrific shrieks, and flinging her arms about
her head like all the forty Furies at once, was tearing
from house to house, rousing the women.
The men were terrible, in the bloody-minded anger
with which they looked from windows, caught up what arms
they had, and came pouring down into the streets; but,
the women were a sight to chill the boldest. From such
household occupations as their bare poverty yielded, from
their children, from their aged and their sick crouching
on the bare ground famished and naked, they ran out with
streaming hair, urging one another, and themselves, to
madness with the wildest cries and actions. Villain
Foulon taken, my sister! Old Foulon taken, my mother!
Miscreant Foulon taken, my daughter! Then, a score of
others ran into the midst of these, beating their
breasts, tearing their hair, and screaming, Foulon alive!
Foulon who told the starving people they might eat grass!
Foulon who told my old father that he might eat grass,
when I had no bread to give him! Foulon who told my baby
it might suck grass, when these breasts where dry with
want! O mother of God, this Foulon! O Heaven our
suffering! Hear me, my dead baby and my withered father:
I swear on my knees, on these stones, to avenge you on
Foulon! Husbands, and brothers, and young men, Give us
the blood of Foulon, Give us the head of Foulon, Give us
the heart of Foulon, Give us the body and soul of Foulon,
Rend Foulon to pieces, and dig him into the ground, that
grass may grow from him! With these cries, numbers of the
women, lashed into blind frenzy, whirled about, striking
and tearing at their own friends until they dropped into
a passionate swoon, and were only saved by the men
belonging to them from being trampled under foot.
Nevertheless, not a moment was lost; not a moment!
This Foulon was at the Hotel de Ville, and might be
loosed. Never, if Saint Antoine knew his own sufferings,
insults, and wrongs! Armed men and women flocked out of
the Quarter so fast, and drew even these last dregs after
them with such a force of suction, that within a quarter
of an hour there was not a human creature in Saint
Antoine's bosom but a few old crones and the wailing
children.
No. They were all by that time choking the Hall of
Examination where this old man, ugly and wicked, was, and
overflowing into the adjacent open space and streets. The
Defarges, husband and wife, The Vengeance, and Jacques
Three, were in the first press, and at no great distance
from him in the Hall.
"See!" cried madame, pointing with her knife. "See
the old villain bound with ropes. That was well done to
tie a bunch of grass upon his back. Ha, ha! That was well
done. Let him eat it now!" Madame put her knife under her
arm, and clapped her hands as at a play.
The people immediately behind Madame Defarge,
explaining the cause of her satisfaction to those behind
them, and those again explaining to others, and those to
others, the neighbouring streets resounded with the
clapping of hands. Similarly, during two or three hours
of drawl, and the winnowing of many bushels of words,
Madame Defarge's frequent expressions of impatience were
taken up, with marvellous quickness, at a distance: the
more readily, because certain men who had by some
wonderful exercise of agility climbed up the external
architecture to look in from the windows, knew Madame
Defarge well, and acted as a telegraph between her and
the crowd outside the building.
At length the sun rose so high that it struck a
kindly ray as of hope or protection, directly down upon
the old prisoner's head. The favour was too much to bear;
in an instant the barrier of dust and chaff that had
stood surprisingly long, went to the winds, and Saint
Antoine had got him!
It was known directly, to the furthest confines of
the crowd. Defarge had but sprung over a railing and a
table, and folded the miserable wretch in a deadly
embrace--Madame Defarge had but followed and turned her
hand in one of the ropes with which he was tied--The
Vengeance and Jacques Three were not yet up with them,
and the men at the windows had not yet swooped into the
Hall, like birds of prey from their high perches--when
the cry seemed to go up, all over the city, "Bring him
out! Bring him to the lamp!"
Down, and up, and head foremost on the steps of the
building; now, on his knees; now, on his feet; now, on
his back; dragged, and struck at, and stifled by the
bunches of grass and straw that were thrust into his face
by hundreds of hands; torn, bruised, panting, bleeding,
yet always entreating and beseeching for mercy; now full
of vehement agony of action, with a small clear space
about him as the people drew one another back that they
might see; now, a log of dead wood drawn through a forest
of legs; he was hauled to the nearest street corner where
one of the fatal lamps swung, and there Madame Defarge
let him go--as a cat might have done to a mouse--and
silently and composedly looked at him while they made
ready, and while he besought her: the women passionately
screeching at him all the time, and the men sternly
calling out to have him killed with grass in his mouth.
Once, he went aloft, and the rope broke, and they caught
him shrieking; twice, he went aloft, and the rope broke,
and they caught him shrieking; then, the rope was
merciful, and held him, and his head was soon upon a
pike, with grass enough in the mouth for all Saint
Antoine to dance at the sight of.
Nor was this the end of the day's bad work, for
Saint Antoine so shouted and danced his angry blood up,
that it boiled again, on hearing when the day closed in
that the son-in-law of the despatched, another of the
people's enemies and insulters, was coming into Paris
under a guard five hundred strong, in cavalry alone.
Saint Antoine wrote his crimes on flaring sheets of
paper, seized him--would have torn him out of the breast
of an army to bear Foulon company--set his head and heart
on pikes, and carried the three spoils of the day, in
Wolf-procession through the streets.
Not before dark night did the men and women come
back to the children, wailing and breadless. Then, the
miserable bakers' shops were beset by long files of them,
patiently waiting to buy bad bread; and while they waited
with stomachs faint and empty, they beguiled the time by
embracing one another on the triumphs of the day, and
achieving them again in gossip. Gradually, these strings
of ragged people shortened and frayed away; and then poor
lights began to shine in high windows, and slender fires
were made in the streets, at which neighbours cooked in
common, afterwards supping at their doors.
Scanty and insufficient suppers those, and innocent
of meat, as of most other sauce to wretched bread. Yet,
human fellowship infused some nourishment into the flinty
viands, and struck some sparks of cheerfulness out of
them. Fathers and mothers who had had their full share in
the worst of the day, played gently with their meagre
children; and lovers, with such a world around them and
before them, loved and hoped.
It was almost morning, when Defarge's wine-shop
parted with its last knot of customers, and Monsieur
Defarge said to madame his wife, in husky tones, while
fastening the door:
"At last it is come, my dear!"
"Eh well!" returned madame. "Almost."
Saint Antoine slept, the Defarges slept: even The
Vengeance slept with her starved grocer, and the drum was
at rest. The drum's was the only voice in Saint Antoine
that blood and hurry had not changed. The Vengeance, as
custodian of the drum, could have wakened him up and had
the same speech out of him as before the Bastille fell,
or old Foulon was seized; not so with the hoarse tones of
the men and women in Saint Antoine's bosom.
XXIII
Fire Rises
There was a change on the village where the
fountain fell, and where the mender of roads went forth
daily to hammer out of the stones on the highway such
morsels of bread as might serve for patches to hold his
poor ignorant soul and his poor reduced body together.
The prison on the crag was not so dominant as of yore;
there were soldiers to guard it, but not many; there were
officers to guard the soldiers, but not one of them knew
what his men would do--beyond this: that it would
probably not be what he was ordered.
Far and wide lay a ruined country, yielding nothing
but desolation. Every green leaf, every blade of grass
and blade of grain, was as shrivelled and poor as the
miserable people. Everything was bowed down, dejected,
oppressed, and broken. Habitations, fences, domesticated
animals, men, women, children, and the soil that bore
them--all worn out.
Monseigneur (often a most worthy individual
gentleman) was a national blessing, gave a chivalrous
tone to things, was a polite example of luxurious and
shining fife, and a great deal more to equal purpose;
nevertheless, Monseigneur as a class had, somehow or
other, brought things to this. Strange that Creation,
designed expressly for Monseigneur, should be so soon
wrung dry and squeezed out! There must be something
short-sighted in the eternal arrangements, surely! Thus
it was, however; and the last drop of blood having been
extracted from the flints, and the last screw of the rack
having been turned so often that its purchase crumbled,
and it now turned and turned with nothing to bite,
Monseigneur began to run away from a phenomenon so low
and unaccountable.
But, this was not the change on the village, and on
many a village like it. For scores of years gone by,
Monseigneur had squeezed it and wrung it, and had seldom
graced it with his presence except for the pleasures of
the chase--now, found in hunting the people; now, found
in hunting the beasts, for whose preservation Monseigneur
made edifying spaces of barbarous and barren wilderness.
No. The change consisted in the appearance of strange
faces of low caste, rather than in the disappearance of
the high caste, chiselled, and otherwise beautified and
beautifying features of Monseigneur.
For, in these times, as the mender of roads worked,
solitary, in the dust, not often troubling himself to
reflect that dust he was and to dust he must return,
being for the most part too much occupied in thinking how
little he had for supper and how much more he would eat
if he had it--in these times, as he raised his eyes from
his lonely labour, and viewed the prospect, he would see
some rough figure approaching on foot, the like of which
was once a rarity in those parts, but was now a frequent
presence. As it advanced, the mender of roads would
discern without surprise, that it was a shaggy-haired
man, of almost barbarian aspect, tall, in wooden shoes
that were clumsy even to the eyes of a mender of roads,
grim, rough, swart, steeped in the mud and dust of many
highways, dank with the marshy moisture of many low
grounds, sprinkled with the thorns and leaves and moss of
many byways through woods.
Such a man came upon him, like a ghost, at noon in
the July weather, as he sat on his heap of stones under a
bank, taking such shelter as he could get from a shower
of hail.
The man looked at him, looked at the village in the
hollow, at the mill, and at the prison on the crag. When
he had identified these objects in what benighted mind he
had, he said, in a dialect that was just
intelligible:
"How goes it, Jacques?"
"All well, Jacques."
"Touch then!"
They joined hands, and the man sat down on the heap
of stones.
"No dinner?"
"Nothing but supper now," said the mender of roads,
with a hungry face.
"It is the fashion," growled the man. "I meet no
dinner anywhere."
He took out a blackened pipe, filled it, lighted it
with flint and steel, pulled at it until it was in a
bright glow: then, suddenly held it from him and dropped
something into it from between his finger and thumb, that
blazed and went out in a puff of smoke.
"Touch then." It was the turn of the mender of
roads to say it this time, after observing these
operations. They again joined hands.
"To-night?" said the mender of roads.
"To-night," said the man, putting the pipe in his
mouth.
"Where?"
"Here."
He and the mender of roads sat on the heap of
stones looking silently at one another, with the hail
driving in between them like a pigmy charge of bayonets,
until the sky began to clear over the village.
"Show me!" said the traveller then, moving to the
brow of the hill.
"See!" returned the mender of roads, with extended
finger. "You go down here, and straight through the
street, and past the fountain--"
"To the Devil with all that!" interrupted the
other, rolling his eye over the landscape. "_I_ go
through no streets and past no fountains. Well?"
"Well! About two leagues beyond the summit of that
hill above the village."
"Good. When do you cease to work?"
"At sunset."
"Will you wake me, before departing? I have walked
two nights without resting. Let me finish my pipe, and I
shall sleep like a child. Will you wake me?"
"Surely."
The wayfarer smoked his pipe out, put it in his
breast, slipped off his great wooden shoes, and lay down
on his back on the heap of stones. He was fast asleep
directly.
As the road-mender plied his dusty labour, and the
hail-clouds, rolling away, revealed bright bars and
streaks of sky which were responded to by silver gleams
upon the landscape, the little man (who wore a red cap
now, in place of his blue one) seemed fascinated by the
figure on the heap of stones. His eyes were so often
turned towards it, that he used his tools mechanically,
and, one would have said, to very poor account. The
bronze face, the shaggy black hair and beard, the coarse
woollen red cap, the rough medley dress of home-spun
stuff and hairy skins of beasts, the powerful frame
attenuated by spare living, and the sullen and desperate
compression of the lips in sleep, inspired the mender of
roads with awe. The traveller had travelled far, and his
feet were footsore, and his ankles chafed and bleeding;
his great shoes, stuffed with leaves and grass, had been
heavy to drag over the many long leagues, and his clothes
were chafed into holes, as he himself was into sores.
Stooping down beside him, the road-mender tried to get a
peep at secret weapons in his breast or where not; but,
in vain, for he slept with his arms crossed upon him, and
set as resolutely as his lips. Fortified towns with their
stockades, guard-houses, gates, trenches, and
drawbridges, seemed to the mender of roads, to be so much
air as against this figure. And when he lifted his eyes
from it to the horizon and looked around, he saw in his
small fancy similar figures, stopped by no obstacle,
tending to centres all over France.
The man slept on, indifferent to showers of hail
and intervals of brightness, to sunshine on his face and
shadow, to the paltering lumps of dull ice on his body
and the diamonds into which the sun changed them, until
the sun was low in the west, and the sky was glowing.
Then, the mender of roads having got his tools together
and all things ready to go down into the village, roused
him.
"Good!" said the sleeper, rising on his elbow. "Two
leagues beyond the summit of the hill?"
"About."
"About. Good!"
The mender of roads went home, with the dust going
on before him according to the set of the wind, and was
soon at the fountain, squeezing himself in among the lean
kine brought there to drink, and appearing even to
whisper to them in his whispering to all the village.
When the village had taken its poor supper, it did not
creep to bed, as it usually did, but came out of doors
again, and remained there. A curious contagion of
whispering was upon it, and also, when it gathered
together at the fountain in the dark, another curious
contagion of looking expectantly at the sky in one
direction only. Monsieur Gabelle, chief functionary of
the place, became uneasy; went out on his house-top
alone, and looked in that direction too; glanced down
from behind his chimneys at the darkening faces by the
fountain below, and sent word to the sacristan who kept
the keys of the church, that there might be need to ring
the tocsin by-and-bye.
The night deepened. The trees environing the old
chateau, keeping its solitary state apart, moved in a
rising wind, as though they threatened the pile of
building massive and dark in the gloom. Up the two
terrace flights of steps the rain ran wildly, and beat at
the great door, like a swift messenger rousing those
within; uneasy rushes of wind went through the hall,
among the old spears and knives, and passed lamenting up
the stairs, and shook the curtains of the bed where the
last Marquis had slept. East, West, North, and South,
through the woods, four heavy-treading, unkempt figures
crushed the high grass and cracked the branches, striding
on cautiously to come together in the courtyard. Four
lights broke out there, and moved away in different
directions, and all was black again.
But, not for long. Presently, the chateau began to
make itself strangely visible by some light of its own,
as though it were growing luminous. Then, a flickering
streak played behind the architecture of the front,
picking out transparent places, and showing where
balustrades, arches, and windows were. Then it soared
higher, and grew broader and brighter. Soon, from a score
of the great windows, flames burst forth, and the stone
faces awakened, stared out of fire.
A faint murmur arose about the house from the few
people who were left there, and there was a saddling of a
horse and riding away. There was spurring and splashing
through the darkness, and bridle was drawn in the space
by the village fountain, and the horse in a foam stood at
Monsieur Gabelle's door. "Help, Gabelle! Help, every
one!" The tocsin rang impatiently, but other help (if
that were any) there was none. The mender of roads, and
two hundred and fifty particular friends, stood with
folded arms at the fountain, looking at the pillar of
fire in the sky. "It must be forty feet high," said they,
grimly; and never moved.
The rider from the chateau, and the horse in a
foam, clattered away through the village, and galloped up
the stony steep, to the prison on the crag. At the gate,
a group of officers were looking at the fire; removed
from them, a group of soldiers. "Help, gentlemen--
officers! The chateau is on fire; valuable objects may be
saved from the flames by timely aid! Help, help!" The
officers looked towards the soldiers who looked at the
fire; gave no orders; and answered, with shrugs and
biting of lips, "It must burn."
As the rider rattled down the hill again and
through the street, the village was illuminating. The
mender of roads, and the two hundred and fifty particular
friends, inspired as one man and woman by the idea of
lighting up, had darted into their houses, and were
putting candles in every dull little pane of glass. The
general scarcity of everything, occasioned candles to be
borrowed in a rather peremptory manner of Monsieur
Gabelle; and in a moment of reluctance and hesitation on
that functionary's part, the mender of roads, once so
submissive to authority, had remarked that carriages were
good to make bonfires with, and that post-horses would
roast.
The chateau was left to itself to flame and burn.
In the roaring and raging of the conflagration, a red-hot
wind, driving straight from the infernal regions, seemed
to be blowing the edifice away. With the rising and
falling of the blaze, the stone faces showed as if they
were in torment. When great masses of stone and timber
fell, the face with the two dints in the nose became
obscured: anon struggled out of the smoke again, as if it
were the face of the cruel Marquis, burning at the stake
and contending with the fire.
The chateau burned; the nearest trees, laid hold of
by the fire, scorched and shrivelled; trees at a
distance, fired by the four fierce figures, begirt the
blazing edifice with a new forest of smoke. Molten lead
and iron boiled in the marble basin of the fountain; the
water ran dry; the extinguisher tops of the towers
vanished like ice before the heat, and trickled down into
four rugged wells of flame. Great rents and splits
branched out in the solid walls, like crystallisation;
stupefied birds wheeled about and dropped into the
furnace; four fierce figures trudged away, East, West,
North, and South, along the night- enshrouded roads,
guided by the beacon they had lighted, towards their next
destination. The illuminated village had seized hold of
the tocsin, and, abolishing the lawful ringer, rang for
joy.
Not only that; but the village, light-headed with
famine, fire, and bell-ringing, and bethinking itself
that Monsieur Gabelle had to do with the collection of
rent and taxes--though it was but a small instalment of
taxes, and no rent at all, that Gabelle had got in those
latter days--became impatient for an interview with him,
and, surrounding his house, summoned him to come forth
for personal conference. Whereupon, Monsieur Gabelle did
heavily bar his door, and retire to hold counsel with
himself. The result of that conference was, that Gabelle
again withdrew himself to his housetop behind his stack
of chimneys; this time resolved, if his door were broken
in (he was a small Southern man of retaliative
temperament), to pitch himself head foremost over the
parapet, and crush a man or two below.
Probably, Monsieur Gabelle passed a long night up
there, with the distant chateau for fire and candle, and
the beating at his door, combined with the joy-ringing,
for music; not to mention his having an ill-omened lamp
slung across the road before his posting-house gate,
which the village showed a lively inclination to displace
in his favour. A trying suspense, to be passing a whole
summer night on the brink of the black ocean, ready to
take that plunge into it upon which Monsieur Gabelle had
resolved! But, the friendly dawn appearing at last, and
the rush-candles of the village guttering out, the people
happily dispersed, and Monsieur Gabelle came down
bringing his life with him for that while.
Within a hundred miles, and in the light of other
fires, there were other functionaries less fortunate,
that night and other nights, whom the rising sun found
hanging across once-peaceful streets, where they had been
born and bred; also, there were other villagers and
townspeople less fortunate than the mender of roads and
his fellows, upon whom the functionaries and soldiery
turned with success, and whom they strung up in their
turn. But, the fierce figures were steadily wending East,
West, North, and South, be that as it would; and
whosoever hung, fire burned. The altitude of the gallows
that would turn to water and quench it, no functionary,
by any stretch of mathematics, was able to calculate
successfully.
XXIV
Drawn to the Loadstone Rock
In such risings of fire and risings of sea--the
firm earth shaken by the rushes of an angry ocean which
had now no ebb, but was always on the flow, higher and
higher, to the terror and wonder of the beholders on the
shore--three years of tempest were consumed. Three more
birthdays of little Lucie had been woven by the golden
thread into the peaceful tissue of the life of her
home.
Many a night and many a day had its inmates
listened to the echoes in the corner, with hearts that
failed them when they heard the thronging feet. For, the
footsteps had become to their minds as the footsteps of a
people, tumultuous under a red flag and with their
country declared in danger, changed into wild beasts, by
terrible enchantment long persisted in.
Monseigneur, as a class, had dissociated himself
from the phenomenon of his not being appreciated: of his
being so little wanted in France, as to incur
considerable danger of receiving his dismissal from it,
and this life together. Like the fabled rustic who raised
the Devil with infinite pains, and was so terrified at
the sight of him that he could ask the Enemy no question,
but immediately fled; so, Monseigneur, after boldly
reading the Lord's Prayer backwards for a great number of
years, and performing many other potent spells for
compelling the Evil One, no sooner beheld him in his
terrors than he took to his noble heels.
The shining Bull's Eye of the Court was gone, or it
would have been the mark for a hurricane of national
bullets. It had never been a good eye to see with--had
long had the mote in it of Lucifer's pride,
Sardana--palus's luxury, and a mole's blindness--but it
had dropped out and was gone. The Court, from that
exclusive inner circle to its outermost rotten ring of
intrigue, corruption, and dissimulation, was all gone
together. Royalty was gone; had been besieged in its
Palace and "suspended," when the last tidings came
over.
The August of the year one thousand seven hundred
and ninety-two was come, and Monseigneur was by this time
scattered far and wide.
As was natural, the head-quarters and great
gathering-place of Monseigneur, in London, was Tellson's
Bank. Spirits are supposed to haunt the places where
their bodies most resorted, and Monseigneur without a
guinea haunted the spot where his guineas used to be.
Moreover, it was the spot to which such French
intelligence as was most to be relied upon, came
quickest. Again: Tellson's was a munificent house, and
extended great liberality to old customers who had fallen
from their high estate. Again: those nobles who had seen
the coming storm in time, and anticipating plunder or
confiscation, had made provident remittances to
Tellson's, were always to be heard of there by their
needy brethren. To which it must be added that every
new-comer from France reported himself and his tidings at
Tellson's, almost as a matter of course. For such variety
of reasons, Tellson's was at that time, as to French
intelligence, a kind of High Exchange; and this was so
well known to the public, and the inquiries made there
were in consequence so numerous, that Tellson's sometimes
wrote the latest news out in a line or so and posted it
in the Bank windows, for all who ran through Temple Bar
to read.
On a steaming, misty afternoon, Mr. Lorry sat at
his desk, and Charles Darnay stood leaning on it, talking
with him in a low voice. The penitential den once set
apart for interviews with the House, was now the
news-Exchange, and was filled to overflowing. It was
within half an hour or so of the time of closing.
"But, although you are the youngest man that ever
lived," said Charles Darnay, rather hesitating, "I must
still suggest to you--"
"I understand. That I am too old?" said Mr.
Lorry.
"Unsettled weather, a long journey, uncertain means
of travelling, a disorganised country, a city that may
not be even safe for you."
"My dear Charles," said Mr. Lorry, with cheerful
confidence, "you touch some of the reasons for my going:
not for my staying away. It is safe enough for me; nobody
will care to interfere with an old fellow of hard upon
fourscore when there are so many people there much better
worth interfering with. As to its being a disorganised
city, if it were not a disorganised city there would be
no occasion to send somebody from our House here to our
House there, who knows the city and the business, of old,
and is in Tellson's confidence. As to the uncertain
travelling, the long journey, and the winter weather, if
I were not prepared to submit myself to a few
inconveniences for the sake of Tellson's, after all these
years, who ought to be?"
"I wish I were going myself," said Charles Darnay,
somewhat restlessly, and like one thinking aloud.
"Indeed! You are a pretty fellow to object and
advise!" exclaimed Mr. Lorry. "You wish you were going
yourself? And you a Frenchman born? You are a wise
counsellor."
"My dear Mr. Lorry, it is because I am a Frenchman
born, that the thought (which I did not mean to utter
here, however) has passed through my mind often. One
cannot help thinking, having had some sympathy for the
miserable people, and having abandoned something to
them," he spoke here in his former thoughtful manner,
"that one might be listened to, and might have the power
to persuade to some restraint. Only last night, after you
had left us, when I was talking to Lucie--"
"When you were talking to Lucie," Mr. Lorry
repeated. "Yes. I wonder you are not ashamed to mention
the name of Lucie! Wishing you were going to France at
this time of day!"
"However, I am not going," said Charles Darnay,
with a smile. "It is more to the purpose that you say you
are."
"And I am, in plain reality. The truth is, my dear
Charles," Mr. Lorry glanced at the distant House, and
lowered his voice, "you can have no conception of the
difficulty with which our business is transacted, and of
the peril in which our books and papers over yonder are
involved. The Lord above knows what the compromising
consequences would be to numbers of people, if some of
our documents were seized or destroyed; and they might
be, at any time, you know, for who can say that Paris is
not set afire to-day, or sacked to-morrow! Now, a
judicious selection from these with the least possible
delay, and the burying of them, or otherwise getting of
them out of harm's way, is within the power (without loss
of precious time) of scarcely any one but myself, if any
one. And shall I hang back, when Tellson's knows this and
says this--Tellson's, whose bread I have eaten these
sixty years--because I am a little stiff about the
joints? Why, I am a boy, sir, to half a dozen old codgers
here!"
"How I admire the gallantry of your youthful
spirit, Mr. Lorry."
"Tut! Nonsense, sir!--And, my dear Charles," said
Mr. Lorry, glancing at the House again, "you are to
remember, that getting things out of Paris at this
present time, no matter what things, is next to an
impossibility. Papers and precious matters were this very
day brought to us here (I speak in strict confidence; it
is not business-like to whisper it, even to you), by the
strangest bearers you can imagine, every one of whom had
his head hanging on by a single hair as he passed the
Barriers. At another time, our parcels would come and go,
as easily as in business-like Old England; but now,
everything is stopped."
"And do you really go to-night?"
"I really go to-night, for the case has become too
pressing to admit of delay."
"And do you take no one with you?"
"All sorts of people have been proposed to me, but
I will have nothing to say to any of them. I intend to
take Jerry. Jerry has been my bodyguard on Sunday nights
for a long time past and I am used to him. Nobody will
suspect Jerry of being anything but an English bull-dog,
or of having any design in his head but to fly at anybody
who touches his master."
"I must say again that I heartily admire your
gallantry and youthfulness."
"I must say again, nonsense, nonsense! When I have
executed this little commission, I shall, perhaps, accept
Tellson's proposal to retire and live at my ease. Time
enough, then, to think about growing old."
This dialogue had taken place at Mr. Lorry's usual
desk, with Monseigneur swarming within a yard or two of
it, boastful of what he would do to avenge himself on the
rascal-people before long. It was too much the way of
Monseigneur under his reverses as a refugee, and it was
much too much the way of native British orthodoxy, to
talk of this terrible Revolution as if it were the only
harvest ever known under the skies that had not been
sown--as if nothing had ever been done, or omitted to be
done, that had led to it--as if observers of the wretched
millions in France, and of the misused and perverted
resources that should have made them prosperous, had not
seen it inevitably coming, years before, and had not in
plain words recorded what they saw. Such vapouring,
combined with the extravagant plots of Monseigneur for
the restoration of a state of things that had utterly
exhausted itself, and worn out Heaven and earth as well
as itself, was hard to be endured without some
remonstrance by any sane man who knew the truth. And it
was such vapouring all about his ears, like a troublesome
confusion of blood in his own head, added to a latent
uneasiness in his mind, which had already made Charles
Darnay restless, and which still kept him so.
Among the talkers, was Stryver, of the King's Bench
Bar, far on his way to state promotion, and, therefore,
loud on the theme: broaching to Monseigneur, his devices
for blowing the people up and exterminating them from the
face of the earth, and doing without them: and for
accomplishing many similar objects akin in their nature
to the abolition of eagles by sprinkling salt on the
tails of the race. Him, Darnay heard with a particular
feeling of objection; and Darnay stood divided between
going away that he might hear no more, and remaining to
interpose his word, when the thing that was to be, went
on to shape itself out.
The House approached Mr. Lorry, and laying a soiled
and unopened letter before him, asked if he had yet
discovered any traces of the person to whom it was
addressed? The House laid the letter down so close to
Darnay that he saw the direction--the more quickly
because it was his own right name. The address, turned
into English, ran:
"Very pressing. To Monsieur heretofore the Marquis
St. Evremonde, of France. Confided to the cares of
Messrs. Tellson and Co., Bankers, London,
England."
On the marriage morning, Doctor Manette bad made it
his one urgent and express request to Charles Darnay,
that the secret of this name should be--unless he, the
Doctor, dissolved the obligation--kept inviolate between
them. Nobody else knew it to be his name; his own wife
had no suspicion of the fact; Mr. Lorry could have
none.
"No," said Mr. Lorry, in reply to the House; "I
have referred it, I think, to everybody now here, and no
one can tell me where this gentleman is to be
found."
The hands of the clock verging upon the hour of
closing the Bank, there was a general set of the current
of talkers past Mr. Lorry's desk. He held the letter out
inquiringly; and Monseigneur looked at it, in the person
of this plotting and indignant refugee; and Monseigneur
looked at it in the person of that plotting and indignant
refugee; and This, That, and The Other, all had something
disparaging to say, in French or in English, concerning
the Marquis who was not to be found.
"Nephew, I believe--but in any case degenerate
successor--of the polished Marquis who was murdered,"
said one. "Happy to say, I never knew him."
"A craven who abandoned his post," said
another--this Monseigneur had been got out of Paris, legs
uppermost and half suffocated, in a load of hay--"some
years ago."
"Infected with the new doctrines," said a third,
eyeing the direction through his glass in passing; "set
himself in opposition to the last Marquis, abandoned the
estates when he inherited them, and left them to the
ruffian herd. They will recompense him now, I hope, as he
deserves."
"Hey?" cried the blatant Stryver. "Did he though?
Is that the sort of fellow? Let us look at his infamous
name. D--n the fellow!"
Darnay, unable to restrain himself any longer,
touched Mr. Stryver on the shoulder, and said:
"I know the fellow."
"Do you, by Jupiter?" said Stryver. "I am sorry for
it."
"Why?"
"Why, Mr. Darnay? D'ye hear what he did? Don't ask,
why, in these times."
"But I do ask why?"
"Then I tell you again, Mr. Darnay, I am sorry for
it. I am sorry to hear you putting any such extraordinary
questions. Here is a fellow, who, infected by the most
pestilent and blasphemous code of devilry that ever was
known, abandoned his property to the vilest scum of the
earth that ever did murder by wholesale, and you ask me
why I am sorry that a man who instructs youth knows him?
Well, but I'll answer you. I am sorry because I believe
there is contamination in such a scoundrel. That's
why."
Mindful of the secret, Darnay with great difficulty
checked himself, and said: "You may not understand the
gentleman."
"I understand how to put YOU in a corner, Mr.
Darnay," said Bully Stryver, "and I'll do it. If this
fellow is a gentleman, I DON'T understand him. You may
tell him so, with my compliments. You may also tell him,
from me, that after abandoning his worldly goods and
position to this butcherly mob, I wonder he is not at the
head of them. But, no, gentlemen," said Stryver, looking
all round, and snapping his fingers, "I know something of
human nature, and I tell you that you'll never find a
fellow like this fellow, trusting himself to the mercies
of such precious PROTEGES. No, gentlemen; he'll always
show 'em a clean pair of heels very early in the scuffle,
and sneak away."
With those words, and a final snap of his fingers,
Mr. Stryver shouldered himself into Fleet-street, amidst
the general approbation of his hearers. Mr. Lorry and
Charles Darnay were left alone at the desk, in the
general departure from the Bank.
"Will you take charge of the letter?" said Mr.
Lorry. "You know where to deliver it?"
"I do."
"Will you undertake to explain, that we suppose it
to have been addressed here, on the chance of our knowing
where to forward it, and that it has been here some
time?"
"I will do so. Do you start for Paris from
here?"
"From here, at eight."
"I will come back, to see you off."
Very ill at ease with himself, and with Stryver and
most other men, Darnay made the best of his way into the
quiet of the Temple, opened the letter, and read it.
These were its contents:
"Prison of the Abbaye, Paris.
"June 21, 1792. "MONSIEUR HERETOFORE THE
MARQUIS.
"After having long been in danger of my life at the
hands of the village, I have been seized, with great
violence and indignity, and brought a long journey on
foot to Paris. On the road I have suffered a great deal.
Nor is that all; my house has been destroyed--razed to
the ground.
"The crime for which I am imprisoned, Monsieur
heretofore the Marquis, and for which I shall be summoned
before the tribunal, and shall lose my life (without your
so generous help), is, they tell me, treason against the
majesty of the people, in that I have acted against them
for an emigrant. It is in vain I represent that I have
acted for them, and not against, according to your
commands. It is in vain I represent that, before the
sequestration of emigrant property, I had remitted the
imposts they had ceased to pay; that I had collected no
rent; that I had had recourse to no process. The only
response is, that I have acted for an emigrant, and where
is that emigrant?
"Ah! most gracious Monsieur heretofore the Marquis,
where is that emigrant? I cry in my sleep where is he? I
demand of Heaven, will he not come to deliver me? No
answer. Ah Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, I send my
desolate cry across the sea, hoping it may perhaps reach
your ears through the great bank of Tilson known at
Paris!
"For the love of Heaven, of justice, of generosity,
of the honour of your noble name, I supplicate you,
Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, to succour and release
me. My fault is, that I have been true to you. Oh
Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, I pray you be you true
to me!
"From this prison here of horror, whence I every
hour tend nearer and nearer to destruction, I send you,
Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, the assurance of my
dolorous and unhappy service.
"Your afflicted,
"Gabelle."
The latent uneasiness in Darnay's mind was roused
to vigourous life by this letter. The peril of an old
servant and a good one, whose only crime was fidelity to
himself and his family, stared him so reproachfully in
the face, that, as he walked to and fro in the Temple
considering what to do, he almost hid his face from the
passersby.
He knew very well, that in his horror of the deed
which had culminated the bad deeds and bad reputation of
the old family house, in his resentful suspicions of his
uncle, and in the aversion with which his conscience
regarded the crumbling fabric that he was supposed to
uphold, he had acted imperfectly. He knew very well, that
in his love for Lucie, his renunciation of his social
place, though by no means new to his own mind, had been
hurried and incomplete. He knew that he ought to have
systematically worked it out and supervised it, and that
he had meant to do it, and that it had never been
done.
The happiness of his own chosen English home, the
necessity of being always actively employed, the swift
changes and troubles of the time which bad followed on
one another so fast, that the events of this week
annihilated the immature plans of last week, and the
events of the week following made all new again; he knew
very well, that to the force of these circumstances he
had yielded:--not without disquiet, but still without
continuous and accumulating resistance. That he had
watched the times for a time of action, and that they had
shifted and struggled until the time had gone by, and the
nobility were trooping from France by every highway and
byway, and their property was in course of confiscation
and destruction, and their very names were blotting out,
was as well known to himself as it could be to any new
authority in France that might impeach him for it.
But, he had oppressed no man, he had imprisoned no
man; he was so far from having harshly exacted payment of
his dues, that he had relinquished them of his own will,
thrown himself on a world with no favour in it, won his
own private place there, and earned his own bread.
Monsieur Gabelle had held the impoverished and involved
estate on written instructions, to spare the people, to
give them what little there was to give--such fuel as the
heavy creditors would let them have in the winter, and
such produce as could be saved from the same grip in the
summer--and no doubt he had put the fact in plea and
proof, for his own safety, so that it could not but
appear now.
This favoured the desperate resolution Charles
Darnay had begun to make, that he would go to
Paris.
Yes. Like the mariner in the old story, the winds
and streams had driven him within the influence of the
Loadstone Rock, and it was drawing him to itself, and he
must go. Everything that arose before his mind drifted
him on, faster and faster, more and more steadily, to the
terrible attraction. His latent uneasiness had been, that
bad aims were being worked out in his own unhappy land by
bad instruments, and that he who could not fail to know
that he was better than they, was not there, trying to do
something to stay bloodshed, and assert the claims of
mercy and humanity. With this uneasiness half stifled,
and half reproaching him, he had been brought to the
pointed comparison of himself with the brave old
gentleman in whom duty was so strong; upon that
comparison (injurious to himself) had instantly followed
the sneers of Monseigneur, which had stung him bitterly,
and those of Stryver, which above all were coarse and
galling, for old reasons. Upon those, had followed
Gabelle's letter: the appeal of an innocent prisoner, in
danger of death, to his justice, honour, and good
name.
His resolution was made. He must go to
Paris.
Yes. The Loadstone Rock was drawing him, and he
must sail on, until he struck. He knew of no rock; he saw
hardly any danger. The intention with which he had done
what he had done, even although he had left it
incomplete, presented it before him in an aspect that
would be gratefully acknowledged in France on his
presenting himself to assert it. Then, that glorious
vision of doing good, which is so often the sanguine
mirage of so many good minds, arose before him, and he
even saw himself in the illusion with some influence to
guide this raging Revolution that was running so
fearfully wild.
As he walked to and fro with his resolution made,
he considered that neither Lucie nor her father must know
of it until he was gone. Lucie should be spared the pain
of separation; and her father, always reluctant to turn
his thoughts towards the dangerous ground of old, should
come to the knowledge of the step, as a step taken, and
not in the balance of suspense and doubt. How much of the
incompleteness of his situation was referable to her
father, through the painful anxiety to avoid reviving old
associations of France in his mind, he did not discuss
with himself. But, that circumstance too, had had its
influence in his course.
He walked to and fro, with thoughts very busy,
until it was time to return to Tellson's and take leave
of Mr. Lorry. As soon as he arrived in Paris he would
present himself to this old friend, but he must say
nothing of his intention now.
A carriage with post-horses was ready at the Bank
door, and Jerry was booted and equipped.
"I have delivered that letter," said Charles Darnay
to Mr. Lorry. "I would not consent to your being charged
with any written answer, but perhaps you will take a
verbal one?"
"That I will, and readily," said Mr. Lorry, "if it
is not dangerous."
"Not at all. Though it is to a prisoner in the
Abbaye."
"What is his name?" said Mr. Lorry, with his open
pocket-book in his hand.
"Gabelle."
"Gabelle. And what is the message to the
unfortunate Gabelle in prison?"
"Simply, `that he has received the letter, and will
come.'"
"Any time mentioned?"
"He will start upon his journey to-morrow
night."
"Any person mentioned?"
"No."
He helped Mr. Lorry to wrap himself in a number of
coats and cloaks, and went out with him from the warm
atmosphere of the old Bank, into the misty air of
Fleet-street. "My love to Lucie, and to little Lucie,"
said Mr. Lorry at parting, "and take precious care of
them till I come back." Charles Darnay shook his head and
doubtfully smiled, as the carriage rolled away.
That night--it was the fourteenth of August--he sat
up late, and wrote two fervent letters; one was to Lucie,
explaining the strong obligation he was under to go to
Paris, and showing her, at length, the reasons that he
had, for feeling confident that he could become involved
in no personal danger there; the other was to the Doctor,
confiding Lucie and their dear child to his care, and
dwelling on the same topics with the strongest
assurances. To both, he wrote that he would despatch
letters in proof of his safety, immediately after his
arrival.
It was a hard day, that day of being among them,
with the first reservation of their joint lives on his
mind. It was a hard matter to preserve the innocent
deceit of which they were profoundly unsuspicious. But,
an affectionate glance at his wife, so happy and busy,
made him resolute not to tell her what impended (he had
been half moved to do it, so strange it was to him to act
in anything without her quiet aid), and the day passed
quickly. Early in the evening he embraced her, and her
scarcely less dear namesake, pretending that he would
return by-and-bye (an imaginary engagement took him out,
and he had secreted a valise of clothes ready), and so he
emerged into the heavy mist of the heavy streets, with a
heavier heart.
The unseen force was drawing him fast to itself,
now, and all the tides and winds were setting straight
and strong towards it. He left his two letters with a
trusty porter, to be delivered half an hour before
midnight, and no sooner; took horse for Dover; and began
his journey. "For the love of Heaven, of justice, of
generosity, of the honour of your noble name!" was the
poor prisoner's cry with which he strengthened his
sinking heart, as he left all that was dear on earth
behind him, and floated away for the Loadstone
Rock.
The end of the second book.
Book the Third--the Track of a Storm
I
In Secret
The traveller fared slowly on his way, who fared
towards Paris from England in the autumn of the year one
thousand seven hundred and ninety-two. More than enough
of bad roads, bad equipages, and bad horses, he would
have encountered to delay him, though the fallen and
unfortunate King of France had been upon his throne in
all his glory; but, the changed times were fraught with
other obstacles than these. Every town-gate and village
taxing-house had its band of citizen- patriots, with
their national muskets in a most explosive state of
readiness, who stopped all comers and goers,
cross-questioned them, inspected their papers, looked for
their names in lists of their own, turned them back, or
sent them on, or stopped them and laid them in hold, as
their capricious judgment or fancy deemed best for the
dawning Republic One and Indivisible, of Liberty,
Equality, Fraternity, or Death.
A very few French leagues of his journey were
accomplished, when Charles Darnay began to perceive that
for him along these country roads there was no hope of
return until he should have been declared a good citizen
at Paris. Whatever might befall now, he must on to his
journey's end. Not a mean village closed upon him, not a
common barrier dropped across the road behind him, but he
knew it to be another iron door in the series that was
barred between him and England. The universal
watchfulness so encompassed him, that if he had been
taken in a net, or were being forwarded to his
destination in a cage, he could not have felt his freedom
more completely gone.
This universal watchfulness not only stopped him on
the highway twenty times in a stage, but retarded his
progress twenty times in a day, by riding after him and
taking him back, riding before him and stopping him by
anticipation, riding with him and keeping him in charge.
He had been days upon his journey in France alone, when
he went to bed tired out, in a little town on the high
road, still a long way from Paris.
Nothing but the production of the afflicted
Gabelle's letter from his prison of the Abbaye would have
got him on so far. Ms difficulty at the guard-house in
this small place had been such, that he felt his journey
to have come to a crisis. And he was, therefore, as
little surprised as a man could be, to find himself
awakened at the small inn to which he had been remitted
until morning, in the middle of the night.
Awakened by a timid local functionary and three
armed patriots in rough red caps and with pipes in their
mouths, who sat down on the bed.
"Emigrant," said the functionary, "I am going to
send you on to Paris, under an escort."
"Citizen, I desire nothing more than to get to
Paris, though I could dispense with the escort."
"Silence!" growled a red-cap, striking at the
coverlet with the butt-end of his musket. "Peace,
aristocrat!"
"It is as the good patriot says," observed the
timid functionary. "You are an aristocrat, and must have
an escort--and must pay for it."
"I have no choice," said Charles Darnay.
"Choice! Listen to him!" cried the same scowling
red-cap. "As if it was not a favour to be protected from
the lamp-iron!"
"It is always as the good patriot says," observed
the functionary. "Rise and dress yourself,
emigrant."
Darnay complied, and was taken back to the
guard-house, where other patriots in rough red caps were
smoking, drinking, and sleeping, by a watch-fire. Here he
paid a heavy price for his escort, and hence he started
with it on the wet, wet roads at three o'clock in the
morning.
The escort were two mounted patriots in red caps
and tri-coloured cockades, armed with national muskets
and sabres, who rode one on either side of him.
The escorted governed his own horse, but a loose
line was attached to his bridle, the end of which one of
the patriots kept girded round his wrist. In this state
they set forth with the sharp rain driving in their
faces: clattering at a heavy dragoon trot over the uneven
town pavement, and out upon the mire-deep roads. In this
state they traversed without change, except of horses and
pace, all the mire- deep leagues that lay between them
and the capital.
They travelled in the night, halting an hour or two
after daybreak, and lying by until the twilight fell. The
escort were so wretchedly clothed, that they twisted
straw round their bare legs, and thatched their ragged
shoulders to keep the wet off. Apart from the personal
discomfort of being so attended, and apart from such
considerations of present danger as arose from one of the
patriots being chronically drunk, and carrying his musket
very recklessly, Charles Darnay did not allow the
restraint that was laid upon him to awaken any serious
fears in his breast; for, he reasoned with himself that
it could have no reference to the merits of an individual
case that was not yet stated, and of representations,
confirmable by the prisoner in the Abbaye, that were not
yet made.
But when they came to the town of Beauvais--which
they did at eventide, when the streets were filled with
people--he could not conceal from himself that the aspect
of affairs was very alarming. An ominous crowd gathered
to see him dismount of the posting-yard, and many voices
called out loudly, "Down with the emigrant!"
He stopped in the act of swinging himself out of
his saddle, and, resuming it as his safest place,
said:
"Emigrant, my friends! Do you not see me here, in
France, of my own will?"
"You are a cursed emigrant," cried a farrier,
making at him in a furious manner through the press,
hammer in hand; "and you are a cursed aristocrat!"
The postmaster interposed himself between this man
and the rider's bridle (at which he was evidently
making), and soothingly said, "Let him be; let him be! He
will be judged at Paris."
"Judged!" repeated the farrier, swinging his
hammer. "Ay! and condemned as a traitor." At this the
crowd roared approval.
Checking the postmaster, who was for turning his
horse's head to the yard (the drunken patriot sat
composedly in his saddle looking on, with the line round
his wrist), Darnay said, as soon as he could make his
voice heard:
"Friends, you deceive yourselves, or you are
deceived. I am not a traitor."
"He lies!" cried the smith. "He is a traitor since
the decree. His life is forfeit to the people. His cursed
life is not his own!"
At the instant when Darnay saw a rush in the eyes
of the crowd, which another instant would have brought
upon him, the postmaster turned his horse into the yard,
the escort rode in close upon his horse's flanks, and the
postmaster shut and barred the crazy double gates. The
farrier struck a blow upon them with his hammer, and the
crowd groaned; but, no more was done.
"What is this decree that the smith spoke of?"
Darnay asked the postmaster, when he had thanked him, and
stood beside him in the yard.
"Truly, a decree for selling the property of
emigrants."
"When passed?"
"On the fourteenth."
"The day I left England!"
"Everybody says it is but one of several, and that
there will be others--if there are not already-banishing
all emigrants, and condemning all to death who return.
That is what he meant when he said your life was not your
own."
"But there are no such decrees yet?"
"What do I know!" said the postmaster, shrugging
his shoulders; "there may be, or there will be. It is all
the same. What would you have?"
They rested on some straw in a loft until the
middle of the night, and then rode forward again when all
the town was asleep. Among the many wild changes
observable on familiar things which made this wild ride
unreal, not the least was the seeming rarity of sleep.
After long and lonely spurring over dreary roads, they
would come to a cluster of poor cottages, not steeped in
darkness, but all glittering with lights, and would find
the people, in a ghostly manner in the dead of the night,
circling hand in hand round a shrivelled tree of Liberty,
or all drawn up together singing a Liberty song. Happily,
however, there was sleep in Beauvais that night to help
them out of it and they passed on once more into solitude
and loneliness: jingling through the untimely cold and
wet, among impoverished fields that had yielded no fruits
of the earth that year, diversified by the blackened
remains of burnt houses, and by the sudden emergence from
ambuscade, and sharp reining up across their way, of
patriot patrols on the watch on all the roads.
Daylight at last found them before the wall of
Paris. The barrier was closed and strongly guarded when
they rode up to it.
"Where are the papers of this prisoner?" demanded a
resolute-looking man in authority, who was summoned out
by the guard.
Naturally struck by the disagreeable word, Charles
Darnay requested the speaker to take notice that he was a
free traveller and French citizen, in charge of an escort
which the disturbed state of the country had imposed upon
him, and which he had paid for.
"Where," repeated the same personage, without
taking any heed of him whatever, "are the papers of this
prisoner?"
The drunken patriot had them in his cap, and
produced them. Casting his eyes over Gabelle's letter,
the same personage in authority showed some disorder and
surprise, and looked at Darnay with a close
attention.
He left escort and escorted without saying a word,
however, and went into the guard-room; meanwhile, they
sat upon their horses outside the gate. Looking about him
while in this state of suspense, Charles Darnay observed
that the gate was held by a mixed guard of soldiers and
patriots, the latter far outnumbering the former; and
that while ingress into the city for peasants' carts
bringing in supplies, and for similar traffic and
traffickers, was easy enough, egress, even for the
homeliest people, was very difficult. A numerous medley
of men and women, not to mention beasts and vehicles of
various sorts, was waiting to issue forth; but, the
previous identification was so strict, that they filtered
through the barrier very slowly. Some of these people
knew their turn for examination to be so far off, that
they lay down on the ground to sleep or smoke, while
others talked together, or loitered about. The red cap
and tri-colour cockade were universal, both among men and
women.
When he had sat in his saddle some half-hour,
taking note of these things, Darnay found himself
confronted by the same man in authority, who directed the
guard to open the barrier. Then he delivered to the
escort, drunk and sober, a receipt for the escorted, and
requested him to dismount. He did so, and the two
patriots, leading his tired horse, turned and rode away
without entering the city.
He accompanied his conductor into a guard-room,
smelling of common wine and tobacco, where certain
soldiers and patriots, asleep and awake, drunk and sober,
and in various neutral states between sleeping and
waking, drunkenness and sobriety, were standing and lying
about. The light in the guard-house, half derived from
the waning oil-lamps of the night, and half from the
overcast day, was in a correspondingly uncertain
condition. Some registers were lying open on a desk, and
an officer of a coarse, dark aspect, presided over
these.
"Citizen Defarge," said he to Darnay's conductor,
as he took a slip of paper to write on. "Is this the
emigrant Evremonde?"
"This is the man."
"Your age, Evremonde?"
"Thirty-seven."
"Married, Evremonde?"
"Yes."
"Where married?"
"In England."
"Without doubt. Where is your wife,
Evremonde?"
"In England."
"Without doubt. You are consigned, Evremonde, to
the prison of La Force."
"Just Heaven!" exclaimed Darnay. "Under what law,
and for what offence?"
The officer looked up from his slip of paper for a
moment.
"We have new laws, Evremonde, and new offences,
since you were here." He said it with a hard smile, and
went on writing.
"I entreat you to observe that I have come here
voluntarily, in response to that written appeal of a
fellow-countryman which lies before you. I demand no more
than the opportunity to do so without delay. Is not that
my right?"
"Emigrants have no rights, Evremonde," was the
stolid reply. The officer wrote until he had finished,
read over to himself what he had written, sanded it, and
handed it to Defarge, with the words "In secret."
Defarge motioned with the paper to the prisoner
that he must accompany him. The prisoner obeyed, and a
guard of two armed patriots attended them.
"Is it you," said Defarge, in a low voice, as they
went down the guardhouse steps and turned into Paris,
"who married the daughter of Doctor Manette, once a
prisoner in the Bastille that is no more?"
"Yes," replied Darnay, looking at him with
surprise.
"My name is Defarge, and I keep a wine-shop in the
Quarter Saint Antoine. Possibly you have heard of
me."
"My wife came to your house to reclaim her father?
Yes!"
The word "wife" seemed to serve as a gloomy
reminder to Defarge, to say with sudden impatience, "In
the name of that sharp female newly-born, and called La
Guillotine, why did you come to France?"
"You heard me say why, a minute ago. Do you not
believe it is the truth?"
"A bad truth for you," said Defarge, speaking with
knitted brows, and looking straight before him.
"Indeed I am lost here. All here is so
unprecedented, so changed, so sudden and unfair, that I
am absolutely lost. Will you render me a little
help?"
"None." Defarge spoke, always looking straight
before him.
"Will you answer me a single question?"
"Perhaps. According to its nature. You can say what
it is."
"In this prison that I am going to so unjustly,
shall I have some free communication with the world
outside?"
"You will see."
"I am not to be buried there, prejudged, and
without any means of presenting my case?"
"You will see. But, what then? Other people have
been similarly buried in worse prisons, before
now."
"But never by me, Citizen Defarge."
Defarge glanced darkly at him for answer, and
walked on in a steady and set silence. The deeper he sank
into this silence, the fainter hope there was--or so
Darnay thought--of his softening in any slight degree.
He, therefore, made haste to say:
"It is of the utmost importance to me (you know,
Citizen, even better than I, of how much importance),
that I should be able to communicate to Mr. Lorry of
Tellson's Bank, an English gentleman who is now in Paris,
the simple fact, without comment, that I have been thrown
into the prison of La Force. Will you cause that to be
done for me?"
"I will do," Defarge doggedly rejoined, "nothing
for you. My duty is to my country and the People. I am
the sworn servant of both, against you. I will do nothing
for you."
Charles Darnay felt it hopeless to entreat him
further, and his pride was touched besides. As they
walked on in silence, he could not but see how used the
people were to the spectacle of prisoners passing along
the streets. The very children scarcely noticed him. A
few passers turned their heads, and a few shook their
fingers at him as an aristocrat; otherwise, that a man in
good clothes should be going to prison, was no more
remarkable than that a labourer in working clothes should
be going to work. In one narrow, dark, and dirty street
through which they passed, an excited orator, mounted on
a stool, was addressing an excited audience on the cranes
against the people, of the king and the royal family. The
few words that he caught from this man's lips, first made
it known to Charles Darnay that the king was in prison,
and that the foreign ambassadors had one and all left
Paris. On the road (except at Beauvais) he had heard
absolutely nothing. The escort and the universal
watchfulness had completely isolated him.
That he had fallen among far greater dangers than
those which had developed themselves when he left
England, he of course knew now. That perils had thickened
about him fast, and might thicken faster and faster yet,
he of course knew now. He could not but admit to himself
that he might not have made this journey, if he could
have foreseen the events of a few days. And yet his
misgivings were not so dark as, imagined by the light of
this later time, they would appear. Troubled as the
future was, it was the unknown future, and in its
obscurity there was ignorant hope. The horrible massacre,
days and nights long, which, within a few rounds of the
clock, was to set a great mark of blood upon the blessed
garnering time of harvest, was as far out of his
knowledge as if it had been a hundred thousand years
away. The "sharp female newly-born, and called La
Guillotine," was hardly known to him, or to the
generality of people, by name. The frightful deeds that
were to be soon done, were probably unimagined at that
time in the brains of the doers. How could they have a
place in the shadowy conceptions of a gentle mind?
Of unjust treatment in detention and hardship, and
in cruel separation from his wife and child, he
foreshadowed the likelihood, or the certainty; but,
beyond this, he dreaded nothing distinctly. With this on
his mind, which was enough to carry into a dreary prison
courtyard, he arrived at the prison of La Force.
A man with a bloated face opened the strong wicket,
to whom Defarge presented "The Emigrant
Evremonde."
"What the Devil! How many more of them!" exclaimed
the man with the bloated face.
Defarge took his receipt without noticing the
exclamation, and withdrew, with his two
fellow-patriots.
"What the Devil, I say again!" exclaimed the
gaoler, left with his wife. "How many more!"
The gaoler's wife, being provided with no answer to
the question, merely replied, "One must have patience, my
dear!" Three turnkeys who entered responsive to a bell
she rang, echoed the sentiment, and one added, "For the
love of Liberty;" which sounded in that place like an
inappropriate conclusion.
The prison of La Force was a gloomy prison, dark
and filthy, and with a horrible smell of foul sleep in
it. Extraordinary how soon the noisome flavour of
imprisoned sleep, becomes manifest in all such places
that are ill cared for!
"In secret, too," grumbled the gaoler, looking at
the written paper. "As if I was not already full to
bursting!"
He stuck the paper on a file, in an ill-humour, and
Charles Darnay awaited his further pleasure for half an
hour: sometimes, pacing to and fro in the strong arched
room: sometimes, resting on a stone seat: in either case
detained to be imprinted on the memory of the chief and
his subordinates.
"Come!" said the chief, at length taking up his
keys, "come with me, emigrant."
Through the dismal prison twilight, his new charge
accompanied him by corridor and staircase, many doors
clanging and locking behind them, until they came into a
large, low, vaulted chamber, crowded with prisoners of
both sexes. The women were seated at a long table,
reading and writing, knitting, sewing, and embroidering;
the men were for the most part standing behind their
chairs, or lingering up and down the room.
In the instinctive association of prisoners with
shameful crime and disgrace, the new-comer recoiled from
this company. But the crowning unreality of his long
unreal ride, was, their all at once rising to receive
him, with every refinement of manner known to the time,
and with all the engaging graces and courtesies of
life.
So strangely clouded were these refinements by the
prison manners and gloom, so spectral did they become in
the inappropriate squalor and misery through which they
were seen, that Charles Darnay seemed to stand in a
company of the dead. Ghosts all! The ghost of beauty, the
ghost of stateliness, the ghost of elegance, the ghost of
pride, the ghost of frivolity, the ghost of wit, the
ghost of youth, the ghost of age, all waiting their
dismissal from the desolate shore, all turning on him
eyes that were changed by the death they had died in
coming there.
It struck him motionless. The gaoler standing at
his side, and the other gaolers moving about, who would
have been well enough as to appearance in the ordinary
exercise of their functions, looked so extravagantly
coarse contrasted with sorrowing mothers and blooming
daughters who were there--with the apparitions of the
coquette, the young beauty, and the mature woman
delicately bred--that the inversion of all experience and
likelihood which the scene of shadows presented, was
heightened to its utmost. Surely, ghosts all. Surely, the
long unreal ride some progress of disease that had
brought him to these gloomy shades!
"In the name of the assembled companions in
misfortune," said a gentleman of courtly appearance and
address, coming forward, "I have the honour of giving you
welcome to La Force, and of condoling with you on the
calamity that has brought you among us. May it soon
terminate happily! It would be an impertinence elsewhere,
but it is not so here, to ask your name and
condition?"
Charles Darnay roused himself, and gave the
required information, in words as suitable as he could
find.
"But I hope," said the gentleman, following the
chief gaoler with his eyes, who moved across the room,
"that you are not in secret?"
"I do not understand the meaning of the term, but I
have heard them say so."
"Ah, what a pity! We so much regret it! But take
courage; several members of our society have been in
secret, at first, and it has lasted but a short time."
Then he added, raising his voice, "I grieve to inform the
society--in secret."
There was a murmur of commiseration as Charles
Darnay crossed the room to a grated door where the gaoler
awaited him, and many voices--among which, the soft and
compassionate voices of women were conspicuous--gave him
good wishes and encouragement. He turned at the grated
door, to render the thanks of his heart; it closed under
the gaoler's hand; and the apparitions vanished from his
sight forever.
The wicket opened on a stone staircase, leading
upward. When they bad ascended forty steps (the prisoner
of half an hour already counted them), the gaoler opened
a low black door, and they passed into a solitary cell.
It struck cold and damp, but was not dark.
"Yours," said the gaoler.
"Why am I confined alone?"
"How do I know!"
"I can buy pen, ink, and paper?"
"Such are not my orders. You will be visited, and
can ask then. At present, you may buy your food, and
nothing more."
There were in the cell, a chair, a table, and a
straw mattress. As the gaoler made a general inspection
of these objects, and of the four walls, before going
out, a wandering fancy wandered through the mind of the
prisoner leaning against the wall opposite to him, that
this gaoler was so unwholesomely bloated, both in face
and person, as to look like a man who had been drowned
and filled with water. When the gaoler was gone, he
thought in the same wandering way, "Now am I left, as if
I were dead." Stopping then, to look down at the
mattress, he turned from it with a sick feeling, and
thought, "And here in these crawling creatures is the
first condition of the body after death."
"Five paces by four and a half, five paces by four
and a half, five paces by four and a half." The prisoner
walked to and fro in his cell, counting its measurement,
and the roar of the city arose like muffled drums with a
wild swell of voices added to them. "He made shoes, he
made shoes, he made shoes." The prisoner counted the
measurement again, and paced faster, to draw his mind
with him from that latter repetition. "The ghosts that
vanished when the wicket closed. There was one among
them, the appearance of a lady dressed in black, who was
leaning in the embrasure of a window, and she had a light
shining upon her golden hair, and she looked like * * * *
Let us ride on again, for God's sake, through the
illuminated villages with the people all awake! * * * *
He made shoes, he made shoes, he made shoes. * * * * Five
paces by four and a half." With such scraps tossing and
rolling upward from the depths of his mind, the prisoner
walked faster and faster, obstinately counting and
counting; and the roar of the city changed to this
extent--that it still rolled in like muffled drums, but
with the wail of voices that he knew, in the swell that
rose above them.
II
The Grindstone
Tellson's Bank, established in the Saint Germain
Quarter of Paris, was in a wing of a large house,
approached by a courtyard and shut off from the street by
a high wall and a strong gate. The house belonged to a
great nobleman who had lived in it until he made a flight
from the troubles, in his own cook's dress, and got
across the borders. A mere beast of the chase flying from
hunters, he was still in his metempsychosis no other than
the same Monseigneur, the preparation of whose chocolate
for whose lips had once occupied three strong men besides
the cook in question.
Monseigneur gone, and the three strong men
absolving themselves from the sin of having drawn his
high wages, by being more than ready and willing to cut
his throat on the altar of the dawning Republic one and
indivisible of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death,
Monseigneur's house had been first sequestrated, and then
confiscated. For, all things moved so fast, and decree
followed decree with that fierce precipitation, that now
upon the third night of the autumn month of September,
patriot emissaries of the law were in possession of
Monseigneur's house, and had marked it with the
tri-colour, and were drinking brandy in its state
apartments.
A place of business in London like Tellson's place
of business in Paris, would soon have driven the House
out of its mind and into the Gazette. For, what would
staid British responsibility and respectability have said
to orange-trees in boxes in a Bank courtyard, and even to
a Cupid over the counter? Yet such things were. Tellson's
had whitewashed the Cupid, but he was still to be seen on
the ceiling, in the coolest linen, aiming (as he very
often does) at money from morning to night. Bankruptcy
must inevitably have come of this young Pagan, in
Lombard-street, London, and also of a curtained alcove in
the rear of the immortal boy, and also of a looking-glass
let into the wall, and also of clerks not at all old, who
danced in public on the slightest provocation. Yet, a
French Tellson's could get on with these things
exceedingly well, and, as long as the times held
together, no man had taken fright at them, and drawn out
his money.
What money would be drawn out of Tellson's
henceforth, and what would lie there, lost and forgotten;
what plate and jewels would tarnish in Tellson's
hiding-places, while the depositors rusted in prisons,
and when they should have violently perished; how many
accounts with Tellson's never to be balanced in this
world, must be carried over into the next; no man could
have said, that night, any more than Mr. Jarvis Lorry
could, though he thought heavily of these questions. He
sat by a newly-lighted wood fire (the blighted and
unfruitful year was prematurely cold), and on his honest
and courageous face there was a deeper shade than the
pendent lamp could throw, or any object in the room
distortedly reflect--a shade of horror.
He occupied rooms in the Bank, in his fidelity to
the House of which he had grown to be a part, lie strong
root-ivy. it chanced that they derived a kind of security
from the patriotic occupation of the main building, but
the true-hearted old gentleman never calculated about
that. All such circumstances were indifferent to him, so
that he did his duty. On the opposite side of the
courtyard, under a colonnade, was extensive standin--for
carriages--where, indeed, some carriages of Monseigneur
yet stood. Against two of the pillars were fastened two
great flaring flambeaux, and in the light of these,
standing out in the open air, was a large grindstone: a
roughly mounted thing which appeared to have hurriedly
been brought there from some neighbouring smithy, or
other workshop. Rising and looking out of window at these
harmless objects, Mr. Lorry shivered, and retired to his
seat by the fire. He had opened, not only the glass
window, but the lattice blind outside it, and he had
closed both again, and he shivered through his
frame.
From the streets beyond the high wall and the
strong gate, there came the usual night hum of the city,
with now and then an indescribable ring in it, weird and
unearthly, as if some unwonted sounds of a terrible
nature were going up to Heaven.
"Thank God," said Mr. Lorry, clasping his hands,
"that no one near and dear to me is in this dreadful town
to-night. May He have mercy on all who are in
danger!"
Soon afterwards, the bell at the great gate
sounded, and he thought, "They have come back!" and sat
listening. But, there was no loud irruption into the
courtyard, as he had expected, and he heard the gate
clash again, and all was quiet.
The nervousness and dread that were upon him
inspired that vague uneasiness respecting the Bank, which
a great change would naturally awaken, with such feelings
roused. It was well guarded, and he got up to go among
the trusty people who were watching it, when his door
suddenly opened, and two figures rushed in, at sight of
which he fell back in amazement.
Lucie and her father! Lucie with her arms stretched
out to him, and with that old look of earnestness so
concentrated and intensified, that it seemed as though it
had been stamped upon her face expressly to give force
and power to it in this one passage of her life.
"What is this?" cried Mr. Lorry, breathless and
confused. "What is the matter? Lucie! Manette! What has
happened? What has brought you here? What is it?"
With the look fixed upon him, in her paleness and
wildness, she panted out in his arms, imploringly, "O my
dear friend! My husband!"
"Your husband, Lucie?"
"Charles."
"What of Charles?"
"Here.
"Here, in Paris?"
"Has been here some days--three or four--I don't
know how many-- I can't collect my thoughts. An errand of
generosity brought him here unknown to us; he was stopped
at the barrier, and sent to prison."
The old man uttered an irrepressible cry. Almost at
the same moment, the beg of the great gate rang again,
and a loud noise of feet and voices came pouring into the
courtyard.
"What is that noise?" said the Doctor, turning
towards the window.
"Don't look!" cried Mr. Lorry. "Don't look out!
Manette, for your life, don't touch the blind!"
The Doctor turned, with his hand upon the fastening
of the window, and said, with a cool, bold smile:
"My dear friend, I have a charmed life in this
city. I have been a Bastille prisoner. There is no
patriot in Paris--in Paris? In France--who, knowing me to
have been a prisoner in the Bastille, would touch me,
except to overwhelm me with embraces, or carry me in
triumph. My old pain has given me a power that has
brought us through the barrier, and gained us news of
Charles there, and brought us here. I knew it would be
so; I knew I could help Charles out of all danger; I told
Lucie so.--What is that noise?" His hand was again upon
the window.
"Don't look!" cried Mr. Lorry, absolutely
desperate. "No, Lucie, my dear, nor you!" He got his arm
round her, and held her. "Don't be so terrified, my love.
I solemnly swear to you that I know of no harm having
happened to Charles; that I had no suspicion even of his
being in this fatal place. What prison is he in?"
"La Force!"
"La Force! Lucie, my child, if ever you were brave
and serviceable in your life--and you were always
both--you will compose yourself now, to do exactly as I
bid you; for more depends upon it than you can think, or
I can say. There is no help for you in any action on your
part to-night; you cannot possibly stir out. I say this,
because what I must bid you to do for Charles's sake, is
the hardest thing to do of all. You must instantly be
obedient, still, and quiet. You must let me put you in a
room at the back here. You must leave your father and me
alone for two minutes, and as there are Life and Death in
the world you must not delay."
"I will be submissive to you. I see in your face
that you know I can do nothing else than this. I know you
are true."
The old man kissed her, and hurried her into his
room, and turned the key; then, came hurrying back to the
Doctor, and opened the window and partly opened the
blind, and put his hand upon the Doctor's arm, and looked
out with him into the courtyard.
Looked out upon a throng of men and women: not
enough in number, or near enough, to fill the courtyard:
not more than forty or fifty in all. The people in
possession of the house had let them in at the gate, and
they had rushed in to work at the grindstone; it had
evidently been set up there for their purpose, as in a
convenient and retired spot.
But, such awful workers, and such awful
work!
The grindstone had a double handle, and, turning at
it madly were two men, whose faces, as their long hair
Rapped back when the whirlings of the grindstone brought
their faces up, were more horrible and cruel than the
visages of the wildest savages in their most barbarous
disguise. False eyebrows and false moustaches were stuck
upon them, and their hideous countenances were all bloody
and sweaty, and all awry with howling, and all staring
and glaring with beastly excitement and want of sleep. As
these ruffians turned and turned, their matted locks now
flung forward over their eyes, now flung backward over
their necks, some women held wine to their mouths that
they might drink; and what with dropping blood, and what
with dropping wine, and what with the stream of sparks
struck out of the stone, all their wicked atmosphere
seemed gore and fire. The eye could not detect one
creature in the group free from the smear of blood.
Shouldering one another to get next at the
sharpening-stone, were men stripped to the waist, with
the stain all over their limbs and bodies; men in all
sorts of rags, with the stain upon those rags; men
devilishly set off with spoils of women's lace and silk
and ribbon, with the stain dyeing those trifles through
and through. Hatchets, knives, bayonets, swords, all
brought to be sharpened, were all red with it. Some of
the hacked swords were tied to the wrists of those who
carried them, with strips of linen and fragments of
dress: ligatures various in kind, but all deep of the one
colour. And as the frantic wielders of these weapons
snatched them from the stream of sparks and tore away
into the streets, the same red hue was red in their
frenzied eyes;--eyes which any unbrutalised beholder
would have given twenty years of life, to petrify with a
well-directed gun.
All this was seen in a moment, as the vision of a
drowning man, or of any human creature at any very great
pass, could see a world if it were there. They drew back
from the window, and the Doctor looked for explanation in
his friend's ashy face.
"They are," Mr. Lorry whispered the words, glancing
fearfully round at the locked room, "murdering the
prisoners. If you are sure of what you say; if you really
have the power you think you have--as I believe you
have--make yourself known to these devils, and get taken
to La Force. It may be too late, I don't know, but let it
not be a minute later!"
Doctor Manette pressed his hand, hastened
bareheaded out of the room, and was in the courtyard when
Mr. Lorry regained the blind.
His streaming white hair, his remarkable face, and
the impetuous confidence of his manner, as he put the
weapons aside like water, carried him in an instant to
the heart of the concourse at the stone. For a few
moments there was a pause, and a hurry, and a murmur, and
the unintelligible sound of his voice; and then Mr. Lorry
saw him, surrounded by all, and in the midst of a line of
twenty men long, all linked shoulder to shoulder, and
hand to shoulder, hurried out with cries of--"Live the
Bastille prisoner! Help for the Bastille prisoner's
kindred in La Force! Room for the Bastille prisoner in
front there! Save the prisoner Evremonde at La Force!"
and a thousand answering shouts.
He closed the lattice again with a fluttering
heart, closed the window and the curtain, hastened to
Lucie, and told her that her father was assisted by the
people, and gone in search of her husband. He found her
child and Miss Pross with her; but, it never occurred to
him to be surprised by their appearance until a long time
afterwards, when he sat watching them in such quiet as
the night knew.
Lucie had, by that time, fallen into a stupor on
the floor at his feet, clinging to his hand. Miss Pross
had laid the child down on his own bed, and her head had
gradually fallen on the pillow beside her pretty charge.
O the long, long night, with the moans of the poor wife!
And O the long, long night, with no return of her father
and no tidings!
Twice more in the darkness the bell at the great
gate sounded, and the irruption was repeated, and the
grindstone whirled and spluttered. "What is it?" cried
Lucie, affrighted. "Hush! The soldiers' swords are
sharpened there," said Mr. Lorry. "The place is national
property now, and used as a kind of armoury, my
love."
Twice more in all; but, the last spell of work was
feeble and fitful. Soon afterwards the day began to dawn,
and he softly detached himself from the clasping hand,
and cautiously looked out again. A man, so besmeared that
he might have been a sorely wounded soldier creeping back
to consciousness on a field of slain, was rising from the
pavement by the side of the grindstone, and looking about
him with a vacant air. Shortly, this worn-out murderer
descried in the imperfect light one of the carriages of
Monseigneur, and, staggering to that gorgeous vehicle,
climbed in at the door, and shut himself up to take his
rest on its dainty cushions.
The great grindstone, Earth, had turned when Mr.
Lorry looked out again, and the sun was red on the
courtyard. But, the lesser grindstone stood alone there
in the calm morning air, with a red upon it that the sun
had never given, and would never take away.
III
The Shadow
One of the first considerations which arose in the
business mind of Mr. Lorry when business hours came
round, was this:--that he had no right to imperil
Tellson's by sheltering the wife of an emigrant prisoner
under the Bank roof, His own possessions, safety, life,
he would have hazarded for Lucie and her child, without a
moment's demur; but the great trust he held was not his
own, and as to that business charge he was a strict man
of business.
At first, his mind reverted to Defarge, and he
thought of finding out the wine-shop again and taking
counsel with its master in reference to the safest
dwelling-place in the distracted state of the city. But,
the same consideration that suggested him, repudiated
him; he lived in the most violent Quarter, and doubtless
was influential there, and deep in its dangerous
workings.
Noon coming, and the Doctor not returning, and
every minute's delay tending to compromise Tellson's, Mr.
Lorry advised with Lucie. She said that her father had
spoken of hiring a lodging for a short term, in that
Quarter, near the Banking-house. As there was no business
objection to this, and as he foresaw that even if it were
all well with Charles, and he were to be released, he
could not hope to leave the city, Mr. Lorry went out in
quest of such a lodging, and found a suitable one, high
up in a removed by-street where the closed blinds in all
the other windows of a high melancholy square of
buildings marked deserted homes.
To this lodging he at once removed Lucie and her
child, and Miss Pross: giving them what comfort he could,
and much more than he had himself. He left Jerry with
them, as a figure to fill a doorway that would bear
considerable knocking on the head, and retained to his
own occupations. A disturbed and doleful mind he brought
to bear upon them, and slowly and heavily the day lagged
on with him.
It wore itself out, and wore him out with it, until
the Bank closed. He was again alone in his room of the
previous night, considering what to do next, when he
heard a foot upon the stair. In a few moments, a man
stood in his presence, who, with a keenly observant look
at him, addressed him by his name.
"Your servant," said Mr. Lorry. "Do you know
me?"
He was a strongly made man with dark curling hair,
from forty-five to fifty years of age. For answer he
repeated, without any change of emphasis, the
words:
"Do you know me?"
"I have seen you somewhere."
"Perhaps at my wine-shop?"
Much interested and agitated, Mr. Lorry said: "You
come from Doctor Manette?"
"Yes. I come from Doctor Manette."
"And what says he? What does he send me?"
Defarge gave into his anxious hand, an open scrap
of paper. It bore the words in the Doctor's
writing:
"Charles is safe, but I cannot safely leave this
place yet. I have obtained the favour that the bearer has
a short note from Charles to his wife. Let the bearer see
his wife."
It was dated from La Force, within an hour.
"Will you accompany me," said Mr. Lorry, joyfully
relieved after reading this note aloud, "to where his
wife resides?"
"Yes," returned Defarge.
Scarcely noticing as yet, in what a curiously
reserved and mechanical way Defarge spoke, Mr. Lorry put
on his hat and they went down into the courtyard. There,
they found two women; one, knitting.
"Madame Defarge, surely!" said Mr. Lorry, who had
left her in exactly the same attitude some seventeen
years ago.
"It is she," observed her husband.
"Does Madame go with us?" inquired Mr. Lorry,
seeing that she moved as they moved.
"Yes. That she may be able to recognise the faces
and know the persons. It is for their safety."
Beginning to be struck by Defarge's manner, Mr.
Lorry looked dubiously at him, and led the way. Both the
women followed; the second woman being The
Vengeance.
They passed through the intervening streets as
quickly as they might, ascended the staircase of the new
domicile, were admitted by Jerry, and found Lucie
weeping, alone. She was thrown into a transport by the
tidings Mr. Lorry gave her of her husband, and clasped
the hand that delivered his note--little thinking what it
had been doing near him in the night, and might, but for
a chance, have done to him.
"DEAREST,--Take courage. I am well, and your father
has influence around me. You cannot answer this. Kiss our
child for me."
That was all the writing. It was so much, however,
to her who received it, that she turned from Defarge to
his wife, and kissed one of the hands that knitted. It
was a passionate, loving, thankful, womanly action, but
the hand made no response--dropped cold and heavy, and
took to its knitting again.
There was something in its touch that gave Lucie a
check. She stopped in the act of putting the note in her
bosom, and, with her hands yet at her neck, looked
terrified at Madame Defarge. Madame Defarge met the
lifted eyebrows and forehead with a cold, impassive
stare.
"My dear," said Mr. Lorry, striking in to explain;
"there are frequent risings in the streets; and, although
it is not likely they will ever trouble you, Madame
Defarge wishes to see those whom she has the power to
protect at such times, to the end that she may know
them--that she may identify them. I believe," said Mr.
Lorry, rather halting in his reassuring words, as the
stony manner of all the three impressed itself upon him
more and more, "I state the case, Citizen
Defarge?"
Defarge looked gloomily at his wife, and gave no
other answer than a gruff sound of acquiescence.
"You had better, Lucie," said Mr. Lorry, doing all
he could to propitiate, by tone and manner, "have the
dear child here, and our good Pross. Our good Pross,
Defarge, is an English lady, and knows no French."
The lady in question, whose rooted conviction that
she was more than a match for any foreigner, was not to
be shaken by distress and, danger, appeared with folded
arms, and observed in English to The Vengeance, whom her
eyes first encountered, "Well, I am sure, Boldface! I
hope YOU are pretty well!" She also bestowed a British
cough on Madame Defarge; but, neither of the two took
much heed of her.
"Is that his child?" said Madame Defarge, stopping
in her work for the first time, and pointing her
knitting-needle at little Lucie as if it were the finger
of Fate.
"Yes, madame," answered Mr. Lorry; "this is our
poor prisoner's darling daughter, and only child."
The shadow attendant on Madame Defarge and her
party seemed to fall so threatening and dark on the
child, that her mother instinctively kneeled on the
ground beside her, and held her to her breast. The shadow
attendant on Madame Defarge and her party seemed then to
fall, threatening and dark, on both the mother and the
child.
"It is enough, my husband," said Madame Defarge. "I
have seen them. We may go."
But, the suppressed manner had enough of menace in
it--not visible and presented, but indistinct and
withheld--to alarm Lucie into saying, as she laid her
appealing hand on Madame Defarge's dress:
"You will be good to my poor husband. You will do
him no harm. You will help me to see him if you
can?"
"Your husband is not my business here," returned
Madame Defarge, looking down at her with perfect
composure. "It is the daughter of your father who is my
business here."
"For my sake, then, be merciful to my husband. For
my child's sake! She will put her hands together and pray
you to be merciful. We are more afraid of you than of
these others."
Madame Defarge received it as a compliment, and
looked at her husband. Defarge, who had been uneasily
biting his thumb-nail and looking at her, collected his
face into a sterner expression.
"What is it that your husband says in that little
letter?" asked Madame Defarge, with a lowering smile.
"Influence; he says something touching influence?"
"That my father," said Lucie, hurriedly taking the
paper from her breast, but with her alarmed eyes on her
questioner and not on it, "has much influence around
him."
"Surely it will release him!" said Madame Defarge.
"Let it do so."
"As a wife and mother," cried Lucie, most
earnestly, "I implore you to have pity on me and not to
exercise any power that you possess, against my innocent
husband, but to use it in his behalf. O sister-woman,
think of me. As a wife and mother!"
Madame Defarge looked, coldly as ever, at the
suppliant, and said, turning to her friend The
Vengeance:
"The wives and mothers we have been used to see,
since we were as little as this child, and much less,
have not been greatly considered? We have known THEIR
husbands and fathers laid in prison and kept from them,
often enough? All our lives, we have seen our
sister-women suffer, in themselves and in their children,
poverty, nakedness, hunger, thirst, sickness, misery,
oppression and neglect of all kinds?"
"We have seen nothing else," returned The
Vengeance.
"We have borne this a long time," said Madame
Defarge, turning her eyes again upon Lucie. "Judge you!
Is it likely that the trouble of one wife and mother
would be much to us now?"
She resumed her knitting and went out. The
Vengeance followed. Defarge went last, and closed the
door.
"Courage, my dear Lucie," said Mr. Lorry, as he
raised her. "Courage, courage! So far all goes well with
us--much, much better than it has of late gone with many
poor souls. Cheer up, and have a thankful heart."
"I am not thankless, I hope, but that dreadful
woman seems to throw a shadow on me and on all my
hopes."
"Tut, tut!" said Mr. Lorry; "what is this
despondency in the brave little breast? A shadow indeed!
No substance in it, Lucie."
But the shadow of the manner of these Defarges was
dark upon himself, for all that, and in his secret mind
it troubled him greatly.
IV
Calm in Storm
Doctor Manette did not return until the morning of
the fourth day of his absence. So much of what had
happened in that dreadful time as could be kept from the
knowledge of Lucie was so well concealed from her, that
not until long afterwards, when France and she were far
apart, did she know that eleven hundred defenceless
prisoners of both sexes and all ages had been killed by
the populace; that four days and nights had been darkened
by this deed of horror; and that the air around her had
been tainted by the slain. She only knew that there had
been an attack upon the prisons, that all political
prisoners had been in danger, and that some had been
dragged out by the crowd and murdered.
To Mr. Lorry, the Doctor communicated under an
injunction of secrecy on which he had no need to dwell,
that the crowd had taken him through a scene of carnage
to the prison of La Force. That, in the prison he had
found a self-appointed Tribunal sitting, before which the
prisoners were brought singly, and by which they were
rapidly ordered to be put forth to be massacred, or to be
released, or (in a few cases) to be sent back to their
cells. That, presented by his conductors to this
Tribunal, he had announced himself by name and profession
as having been for eighteen years a secret and unaccused
prisoner in the Bastille; that, one of the body so
sitting in judgment had risen and identified him, and
that this man was Defarge.
That, hereupon he had ascertained, through the
registers on the table, that his son-in-law was among the
living prisoners, and had pleaded hard to the
Tribunal--of whom some members were asleep and some
awake, some dirty with murder and some clean, some sober
and some not--for his life and liberty. That, in the
first frantic greetings lavished on himself as a notable
sufferer under the overthrown system, it had been
accorded to him to have Charles Darnay brought before the
lawless Court, and examined. That, he seemed on the point
of being at once released, when the tide in his favour
met with some unexplained check (not intelligible to the
Doctor), which led to a few words of secret conference.
That, the man sitting as President had then informed
Doctor Manette that the prisoner must remain in custody,
but should, for his sake, be held inviolate in safe
custody. That, immediately, on a signal, the prisoner was
removed to the interior of the prison again; but, that
he, the Doctor, had then so strongly pleaded for
permission to remain and assure himself that his
son-in-law was, through no malice or mischance, delivered
to the concourse whose murderous yells outside the gate
had often drowned the proceedings, that he had obtained
the permission, and had remained in that Hall of Blood
until the danger was over.
The sights he had seen there, with brief snatches
of food and sleep by intervals, shall remain untold. The
mad joy over the prisoners who were saved, had astounded
him scarcely less than the mad ferocity against those who
were cut to pieces. One prisoner there was, he said, who
had been discharged into the street free, but at whom a
mistaken savage had thrust a pike as he passed out. Being
besought to go to him and dress the wound, the Doctor had
passed out at the same gate, and had found him in the
arms of a company of Samaritans, who were seated on the
bodies of their victims. With an inconsistency as
monstrous as anything in this awful nightmare, they had
helped the healer, and tended the wounded man with the
gentlest solicitude-- had made a litter for him and
escorted him carefully from the spot-- had then caught up
their weapons and plunged anew into a butchery so
dreadful, that the Doctor had covered his eyes with his
hands, and swooned away in the midst of it.
As Mr. Lorry received these confidences, and as he
watched the face of his friend now sixty-two years of
age, a misgiving arose within him that such dread
experiences would revive the old danger.
But, he had never seen his friend in his present
aspect: he had never at all known him in his present
character. For the first time the Doctor felt, now, that
his suffering was strength and power. For the first time
he felt that in that sharp fire, he had slowly forged the
iron which could break the prison door of his daughter's
husband, and deliver him. "It all tended to a good end,
my friend; it was not mere waste and ruin. As my beloved
child was helpful in restoring me to myself, I will be
helpful now in restoring the dearest part of herself to
her; by the aid of Heaven I will do it!" Thus, Doctor
Manette. And when Jarvis Lorry saw the kindled eyes, the
resolute face, the calm strong look and bearing of the
man whose life always seemed to him to have been stopped,
like a clock, for so many years, and then set going again
with an energy which had lain dormant during the
cessation of its usefulness, he believed.
Greater things than the Doctor had at that time to
contend with, would have yielded before his persevering
purpose. While he kept himself in his place, as a
physician, whose business was with all degrees of
mankind, bond and free, rich and poor, bad and good, he
used his personal influence so wisely, that he was soon
the inspecting physician of three prisons, and among them
of La Force. He could now assure Lucie that her husband
was no longer confined alone, but was mixed with the
general body of prisoners; he saw her husband weekly, and
brought sweet messages to her, straight from his lips;
sometimes her husband himself sent a letter to her
(though never by the Doctor's hand), but she was not
permitted to write to him: for, among the many wild
suspicions of plots in the prisons, the wildest of all
pointed at emigrants who were known to have made friends
or permanent connections abroad.
This new life of the Doctor's was an anxious life,
no doubt; still, the sagacious Mr. Lorry saw that there
was a new sustaining pride in it. Nothing unbecoming
tinged the pride; it was a natural and worthy one; but he
observed it as a curiosity. The Doctor knew, that up to
that time, his imprisonment had been associated in the
minds of his daughter and his friend, with his personal
affliction, deprivation, and weakness. Now that this was
changed, and he knew himself to be invested through that
old trial with forces to which they both looked for
Charles's ultimate safety and deliverance, he became so
far exalted by the change, that he took the lead and
direction, and required them as the weak, to trust to him
as the strong. The preceding relative positions of
himself and Lucie were reversed, yet only as the
liveliest gratitude and affection could reverse them, for
he could have had no pride but in rendering some service
to her who had rendered so much to him. "All curious to
see," thought Mr. Lorry, in his amiably shrewd way, "but
all natural and right; so, take the lead, my dear friend,
and keep it; it couldn't be in better hands."
But, though the Doctor tried hard, and never ceased
trying, to get Charles Darnay set at liberty, or at least
to get him brought to trial, the public current of the
time set too strong and fast for him. The new era began;
the king was tried, doomed, and beheaded; the Republic of
Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death, declared for
victory or death against the world in arms; the black
flag waved night and day from the great towers of Notre
Dame; three hundred thousand men, summoned to rise
against the tyrants of the earth, rose from all the
varying soils of France, as if the dragon's teeth had
been sown broadcast, and had yielded fruit equally on
hill and plain, on rock, in gravel, and alluvial mud,
under the bright sky of the South and under the clouds of
the North, in fell and forest, in the vineyards and the
olive-grounds and among the cropped grass and the stubble
of the corn, along the fruitful banks of the broad
rivers, and in the sand of the sea-shore. What private
solicitude could rear itself against the deluge of the
Year One of Liberty--the deluge rising from below, not
falling from above, and with the windows of Heaven shut,
not opened!
There was no pause, no pity, no peace, no interval
of relenting rest, no measurement of time. Though days
and nights circled as regularly as when time was young,
and the evening and morning were the first day, other
count of time there was none. Hold of it was lost in the
raging fever of a nation, as it is in the fever of one
patient. Now, breaking the unnatural silence of a whole
city, the executioner showed the people the head of the
king--and now, it seemed almost in the same breath, the
bead of his fair wife which had had eight weary months of
imprisoned widowhood and misery, to turn it grey.
And yet, observing the strange law of contradiction
which obtains in all such cases, the time was long, while
it flamed by so fast. A revolutionary tribunal in the
capital, and forty or fifty thousand revolutionary
committees all over the land; a law of the Suspected,
which struck away all security for liberty or life, and
delivered over any good and innocent person to any bad
and guilty one; prisons gorged with people who had
committed no offence, and could obtain no hearing; these
things became the established order and nature of
appointed things, and seemed to be ancient usage before
they were many weeks old. Above all, one hideous figure
grew as familiar as if it had been before the general
gaze from the foundations of the world--the figure of the
sharp female called La Guillotine.
It was the popular theme for jests; it was the best
cure for headache, it infallibly prevented the hair from
turning grey, it imparted a peculiar delicacy to the
complexion, it was the National Razor which shaved close:
who kissed La Guillotine, looked through the little
window and sneezed into the sack. It was the sign of the
regeneration of the human race. It superseded the Cross.
Models of it were worn on breasts from which the Cross
was discarded, and it was bowed down to and believed in
where the Cross was denied.
It sheared off heads so many, that it, and the
ground it most polluted, were a rotten red. It was taken
to pieces, like a toy-puzzle for a young Devil, and was
put together again when the occasion wanted it. It hushed
the eloquent, struck down the powerful, abolished the
beautiful and good. Twenty-two friends of high public
mark, twenty-one living and one dead, it had lopped the
heads off, in one morning, in as many minutes. The name
of the strong man of Old Scripture had descended to the
chief functionary who worked it; but, so armed, he was
stronger than his namesake, and blinder, and tore away
the gates of God's own Temple every day.
Among these terrors, and the brood belonging to
them, the Doctor walked with a steady head: confident in
his power, cautiously persistent in his end, never
doubting that he would save Lucie's husband at last. Yet
the current of the time swept by, so strong and deep, and
carried the time away so fiercely, that Charles had lain
in prison one year and three months when the Doctor was
thus steady and confident. So much more wicked and
distracted had the Revolution grown in that December
month, that the rivers of the South were encumbered with
the bodies of the violently drowned by night, and
prisoners were shot in lines and squares under the
southern wintry sun. Still, the Doctor walked among the
terrors with a steady head. No man better known than he,
in Paris at that day; no man in a stranger situation.
Silent, humane, indispensable in hospital and prison,
using his art equally among assassins and victims, he was
a man apart. In the exercise of his skill, the appearance
and the story of the Bastille Captive removed him from
all other men. He was not suspected or brought in
question, any more than if he bad indeed been recalled to
life some eighteen years before, or were a Spirit moving
among mortals.
V
The Wood-Sawyer
One year and three months. During all that time
Lucie was never sure, from hour to hour, but that the
Guillotine would strike off her husband's head next day.
Every day, through the stony streets, the tumbrils now
jolted heavily, filled with Condemned. Lovely girls;
bright women, brown-haired, black-haired, and grey;
youths; stalwart men and old; gentle born and peasant
born; all red wine for La Guillotine, all daily brought
into light from the dark cellars of the loathsome
prisons, and carried to her through the streets to slake
her devouring thirst. Liberty, equality, fraternity, or
death;--the last, much the easiest to bestow, O
Guillotine!
If the suddenness of her calamity, and the whirling
wheels of the time, had stunned the Doctor's daughter
into awaiting the result in idle despair, it would but
have been with her as it was with many. But, from the
hour when she had taken the white head to her fresh young
bosom in the garret of Saint Antoine, she had been true
to her duties. She was truest to them in the season of
trial, as all the quietly loyal and good will always
be.
As soon as they were established in their new
residence, and her father had entered on the routine of
his avocations, she arranged the little household as
exactly as if her husband had been there. Everything had
its appointed place and its appointed time. Little Lucie
she taught, as regularly, as if they had all been united
in their English home. The slight devices with which she
cheated herself into the show of a belief that they would
soon be reunited-- the little preparations for his speedy
return, the setting aside of his chair and his
books--these, and the solemn prayer at night for one dear
prisoner especially, among the many unhappy souls in
prison and the shadow of death--were almost the only
outspoken reliefs of her heavy mind.
She did not greatly alter in appearance. The plain
dark dresses, akin to mourning dresses, which she and her
child wore, were as neat and as well attended to as the
brighter clothes of happy days. She lost her colour, and
the old and intent expression was a constant, not an
occasional, thing; otherwise, she remained very pretty
and comely. Sometimes, at night on kissing her father,
she would burst into the grief she had repressed all day,
and would say that her sole reliance, under Heaven, was
on him. He always resolutely answered: "Nothing can
happen to him without my knowledge, and I know that I can
save him, Lucie."
They had not made the round of their changed life
many weeks, when her father said to her, on coming home
one evening:
"My dear, there is an upper window in the prison,
to which Charles can sometimes gain access at three in
the afternoon. When he can get to it--which depends on
many uncertainties and incidents--he might see you in the
street, he thinks, if you stood in a certain place that I
can show you. But you will not be able to see him, my
poor child, and even if you could, it would be unsafe for
you to make a sign of recognition."
"O show me the place, my father, and I will go
there every day."
From that time, in all weathers, she waited there
two hours. As the clock struck two, she was there, and at
four she turned resignedly away. When it was not too wet
or inclement for her child to be with her, they went
together; at other times she was alone; but, she never
missed a single day.
It was the dark and dirty corner of a small winding
street. The hovel of a cutter of wood into lengths for
burning, was the only house at that end; all else was
wall. On the third day of her being there, he noticed
her.
"Good day, citizeness."
"Good day, citizen."
This mode of address was now prescribed by decree.
It had been established voluntarily some time ago, among
the more thorough patriots; but, was now law for
everybody.
"Walking here again, citizeness?"
"You see me, citizen!"
The wood-sawyer, who was a little man with a
redundancy of gesture (he had once been a mender of
roads), cast a glance at the prison, pointed at the
prison, and putting his ten fingers before his face to
represent bars, peeped through them jocosely.
"But it's not my business," said he. And went on
sawing his wood.
Next day he was looking out for her, and accosted
her the moment she appeared.
"What? Walking here again, citizeness?"
"Yes, citizen."
"Ah! A child too! Your mother, is it not, my little
citizeness?"
"Do I say yes, mamma?" whispered little Lucie,
drawing close to her.
"Yes, dearest."
"Yes, citizen."
"Ah! But it's not my business. My work is my
business. See my saw! I call it my Little Guillotine. La,
la, la; La, la, la! And off his head comes!"
The billet fell as he spoke, and he threw it into a
basket.
"I call myself the Samson of the firewood
guillotine. See here again! Loo, loo, loo; Loo, loo, loo!
And off HER head comes! Now, a child. Tickle, tickle;
Pickle, pickle! And off ITS head comes. All the
family!"
Lucie shuddered as he threw two more billets into
his basket, but it was impossible to be there while the
wood-sawyer was at work, and not be in his sight.
Thenceforth, to secure his good will, she always spoke to
him first, and often gave him drink-money, which he
readily received.
He was an inquisitive fellow, and sometimes when
she had quite forgotten him in gazing at the prison roof
and grates, and in lifting her heart up to her husband,
she would come to herself to find him looking at her,
with his knee on his bench and his saw stopped in its
work. "But it's not my business!" he would generally say
at those times, and would briskly fall to his sawing
again.
In all weathers, in the snow and frost of winter,
in the bitter winds of spring, in the hot sunshine of
summer, in the rains of autumn, and again in the snow and
frost of winter, Lucie passed two hours of every day at
this place; and every day on leaving it, she kissed the
prison wall. Her husband saw her (so she learned from her
father) it might be once in five or six times: it might
be twice or thrice running: it might be, not for a week
or a fortnight together. It was enough that he could and
did see her when the chances served, and on that
possibility she would have waited out the day, seven days
a week.
These occupations brought her round to the December
month, wherein her father walked among the terrors with a
steady head. On a lightly-snowing afternoon she arrived
at the usual corner. It was a day of some wild rejoicing,
and a festival. She had seen the houses, as she came
along, decorated with little pikes, and with little red
caps stuck upon them; also, with tricoloured ribbons;
also, with the standard inscription (tricoloured letters
were the favourite), Republic One and Indivisible.
Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death!
The miserable shop of the wood-sawyer was so small,
that its whole surface furnished very indifferent space
for this legend. He had got somebody to scrawl it up for
him, however, who had squeezed Death in with most
inappropriate difficulty. On his house-top, he displayed
pike and cap, as a good citizen must, and in a window he
had stationed his saw inscribed as his "Little Sainte
Guillotine"-- for the great sharp female was by that time
popularly canonised. His shop was shut and he was not
there, which was a relief to Lucie, and left her quite
alone.
But, he was not far off, for presently she heard a
troubled movement and a shouting coming along, which
filled her with fear. A moment afterwards, and a throng
of people came pouring round the corner by the prison
wall, in the midst of whom was the wood-sawyer hand in
hand with The Vengeance. There could not be fewer than
five hundred people, and they were dancing like five
thousand demons. There was no other music than their own
singing. They danced to the popular Revolution song,
keeping a ferocious time that was like a gnashing of
teeth in unison. Men and women danced together, women
danced together, men danced together, as hazard had
brought them together. At first, they were a mere storm
of coarse red caps and coarse woollen rags; but, as they
filled the place, and stopped to dance about Lucie, some
ghastly apparition of a dance-figure gone raving mad
arose among them. They advanced, retreated, struck at one
another's hands, clutched at one another's heads, spun
round alone, caught one another and spun round in pairs,
until many of them dropped. While those were down, the
rest linked hand in hand, and all spun round together:
then the ring broke, and in separate rings of two and
four they turned and turned until they all stopped at
once, began again, struck, clutched, and tore, and then
reversed the spin, and all spun round another way.
Suddenly they stopped again, paused, struck out the time
afresh, formed into lines the width of the public way,
and, with their heads low down and their hands high up,
swooped screaming off. No fight could have been half so
terrible as this dance. It was so emphatically a fallen
sport--a something, once innocent, delivered over to all
devilry--a healthy pastime changed into a means of
angering the blood, bewildering the senses, and steeling
the heart. Such grace as was visible in it, made it the
uglier, showing how warped and perverted all things good
by nature were become. The maidenly bosom bared to this,
the pretty almost-child's head thus distracted, the
delicate foot mincing in this slough of blood and dirt,
were types of the disjointed time.
This was the Carmagnole. As it passed, leaving
Lucie frightened and bewildered in the doorway of the
wood-sawyer's house, the feathery snow fell as quietly
and lay as white and soft, as if it had never
been.
"O my father!" for he stood before her when she
lifted up the eyes she had momentarily darkened with her
hand; "such a cruel, bad sight."
"I know, my dear, I know. I have seen it many
times. Don't be frightened! Not one of them would harm
you."
"I am not frightened for myself, my father. But
when I think of my husband, and the mercies of these
people--"
"We will set him above their mercies very soon. I
left him climbing to the window, and I came to tell you.
There is no one here to see. You may kiss your hand
towards that highest shelving roof."
"I do so, father, and I send him my Soul with
it!"
"You cannot see him, my poor dear?"
"No, father," said Lucie, yearning and weeping as
she kissed her hand, "no."
A footstep in the snow. Madame Defarge. "I salute
you, citizeness," from the Doctor. "I salute you,
citizen." This in passing. Nothing more. Madame Defarge
gone, like a shadow over the white road.
"Give me your arm, my love. Pass from here with an
air of cheerfulness and courage, for his sake. That was
well done;" they had left the spot; "it shall not be in
vain. Charles is summoned for to-morrow."
"For to-morrow!"
"There is no time to lose. I am well prepared, but
there are precautions to be taken, that could not be
taken until he was actually summoned before the Tribunal.
He has not received the notice yet, but I know that he
will presently be summoned for to-morrow, and removed to
the Conciergerie; I have timely information. You are not
afraid?"
She could scarcely answer, "I trust in you."
"Do so, implicitly. Your suspense is nearly ended,
my darling; he shall be restored to you within a few
hours; I have encompassed him with every protection. I
must see Lorry."
He stopped. There was a heavy lumbering of wheels
within hearing. They both knew too well what it meant.
One. Two. Three. Three tumbrils faring away with their
dread loads over the hushing snow.
"I must see Lorry," the Doctor repeated, turning
her another way.
The staunch old gentleman was still in his trust;
had never left it. He and his books were in frequent
requisition as to property confiscated and made national.
What he could save for the owners, he saved. No better
man living to hold fast by what Tellson's had in keeping,
and to hold his peace.
A murky red and yellow sky, and a rising mist from
the Seine, denoted the approach of darkness. It was
almost dark when they arrived at the Bank. The stately
residence of Monseigneur was altogether blighted and
deserted. Above a heap of dust and ashes in the court,
ran the letters: National Property. Republic One and
Indivisible. Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or
Death!
Who could that be with Mr. Lorry--the owner of the
riding-coat upon the chair--who must not be seen? From
whom newly arrived, did he come out, agitated and
surprised, to take his favourite in his arms? To whom did
he appear to repeat her faltering words, when, raising
his voice and turning his head towards the door of the
room from which he had issued, he said: "Removed to the
Conciergerie, and summoned for to-morrow?"
VI
Triumph
The dread tribunal of five Judges, Public
Prosecutor, and determined Jury, sat every day. Their
lists went forth every evening, and were read out by the
gaolers of the various prisons to their prisoners. The
standard gaoler-joke was, "Come out and listen to the
Evening Paper, you inside there!"
"Charles Evremonde, called Darnay!"
So at last began the Evening Paper at La
Force.
When a name was called, its owner stepped apart
into a spot reserved for those who were announced as
being thus fatally recorded. Charles Evremonde, called
Darnay, had reason to know the usage; he had seen
hundreds pass away so.
His bloated gaoler, who wore spectacles to read
with, glanced over them to assure himself that he had
taken his place, and went through the list, making a
similar short pause at each name. There were twenty-three
names, but only twenty were responded to; for one of the
prisoners so summoned had died in gaol and been
forgotten, and two had already been guillotined and
forgotten. The list was read, in the vaulted chamber
where Darnay had seen the associated prisoners on the
night of his arrival. Every one of those had perished in
the massacre; every human creature he had since cared for
and parted with, had died on the scaffold.
There were hurried words of farewell and kindness,
but the parting was soon over. It was the incident of
every day, and the society of La Force were engaged in
the preparation of some games of forfeits and a little
concert, for that evening. They crowded to the grates and
shed tears there; but, twenty places in the projected
entertainments had to be refilled, and the time was, at
best, short to the lock-up hour, when the common rooms
and corridors would be delivered over to the great dogs
who kept watch there through the night. The prisoners
were far from insensible or unfeeling; their ways arose
out of the condition of the time. Similarly, though with
a subtle difference, a species of fervour or
intoxication, known, without doubt, to have led some
persons to brave the guillotine unnecessarily, and to die
by it, was not mere boastfulness, but a wild infection of
the wildly shaken public mind. In seasons of pestilence,
some of us will have a secret attraction to the disease--
a terrible passing inclination to die of it. And all of
us have like wonders hidden in our breasts, only needing
circumstances to evoke them.
The passage to the Conciergerie was short and dark;
the night in its vermin-haunted cells was long and cold.
Next day, fifteen prisoners were put to the bar before
Charles Darnay's name was called. All the fifteen were
condemned, and the trials of the whole occupied an hour
and a half.
"Charles Evremonde, called Darnay," was at length
arraigned.
His judges sat upon the Bench in feathered hats;
but the rough red cap and tricoloured cockade was the
head-dress otherwise prevailing. Looking at the Jury and
the turbulent audience, he might have thought that the
usual order of things was reversed, and that the felons
were trying the honest men. The lowest, cruelest, and
worst populace of a city, never without its quantity of
low, cruel, and bad, were the directing spirits of the
scene: noisily commenting, applauding, disapproving,
anticipating, and precipitating the result, without a
check. Of the men, the greater part were armed in various
ways; of the women, some wore knives, some daggers, some
ate and drank as they looked on, many knitted. Among
these last, was one, with a spare piece of knitting under
her arm as she worked. She was in a front row, by the
side of a man whom he had never seen since his arrival at
the Barrier, but whom he directly remembered as Defarge.
He noticed that she once or twice whispered in his ear,
and that she seemed to be his wife; but, what he most
noticed in the two figures was, that although they were
posted as close to himself as they could be, they never
looked towards him. They seemed to be waiting for
something with a dogged determination, and they looked at
the Jury, but at nothing else. Under the President sat
Doctor Manette, in his usual quiet dress. As well as the
prisoner could see, he and Mr. Lorry were the only men
there, unconnected with the Tribunal, who wore their
usual clothes, and had not assumed the coarse garb of the
Carmagnole.
Charles Evremonde, called Darnay, was accused by
the public prosecutor as an emigrant, whose life was
forfeit to the Republic, under the decree which banished
all emigrants on pain of Death. It was nothing that the
decree bore date since his return to France. There he
was, and there was the decree; he had been taken in
France, and his head was demanded.
"Take off his head!" cried the audience. "An enemy
to the Republic!"
The President rang his bell to silence those cries,
and asked the prisoner whether it was not true that he
had lived many years in England?
Undoubtedly it was.
Was he not an emigrant then? What did he call
himself?
Not an emigrant, he hoped, within the sense and
spirit of the law.
Why not? the President desired to know.
Because he had voluntarily relinquished a title
that was distasteful to him, and a station that was
distasteful to him, and had left his country--he
submitted before the word emigrant in the present
acceptation by the Tribunal was in use--to live by his
own industry in England, rather than on the industry of
the overladen people of France.
What proof had he of this?
He handed in the names of two witnesses; Theophile
Gabelle, and Alexandre Manette.
But he had married in England? the President
reminded him.
True, but not an English woman.
A citizeness of France?
Yes. By birth.
Her name and family?
"Lucie Manette, only daughter of Doctor Manette,
the good physician who sits there."
This answer had a happy effect upon the audience.
Cries in exaltation of the well-known good physician rent
the hall. So capriciously were the people moved, that
tears immediately rolled down several ferocious
countenances which had been glaring at the prisoner a
moment before, as if with impatience to pluck him out
into the streets and kill him.
On these few steps of his dangerous way, Charles
Darnay had set his foot according to Doctor Manette's
reiterated instructions. The same cautious counsel
directed every step that lay before him, and had prepared
every inch of his road.
The President asked, why had he returned to France
when he did, and not sooner?
He had not returned sooner, he replied, simply
because he had no means of living in France, save those
he had resigned; whereas, in England, he lived by giving
instruction in the French language and literature. He had
returned when he did, on the pressing and written
entreaty of a French citizen, who represented that his
life was endangered by his absence. He had come back, to
save a citizen's life, and to bear his testimony, at
whatever personal hazard, to the truth. Was that criminal
in the eyes of the Republic?
The populace cried enthusiastically, "No!" and the
President rang his bell to quiet them. Which it did not,
for they continued to cry "No!" until they left off, of
their own will.
The President required the name of that citizen.
The accused explained that the citizen was his first
witness. He also referred with confidence to the
citizen's letter, which had been taken from him at the
Barrier, but which he did not doubt would be found among
the papers then before the President.
The Doctor had taken care that it should be
there--had assured him that it would be there--and at
this stage of the proceedings it was produced and read.
Citizen Gabelle was called to confirm it, and did so.
Citizen Gabelle hinted, with infinite delicacy and
politeness, that in the pressure of business imposed on
the Tribunal by the multitude of enemies of the Republic
with which it had to deal, he had been slightly
overlooked in his prison of the Abbaye--in fact, had
rather passed out of the Tribunal's patriotic
remembrance--until three days ago; when he had been
summoned before it, and had been set at liberty on the
Jury's declaring themselves satisfied that the accusation
against him was answered, as to himself, by the surrender
of the citizen Evremonde, called Darnay.
Doctor Manette was next questioned. His high
personal popularity, and the clearness of his answers,
made a great impression; but, as he proceeded, as he
showed that the Accused was his first friend on his
release from his long imprisonment; that, the accused had
remained in England, always faithful and devoted to his
daughter and himself in their exile; that, so far from
being in favour with the Aristocrat government there, he
had actually been tried for his life by it, as the foe of
England and friend of the United States--as he brought
these circumstances into view, with the greatest
discretion and with the straightforward force of truth
and earnestness, the Jury and the populace became one. At
last, when he appealed by name to Monsieur Lorry, an
English gentleman then and there present, who, like
himself, had been a witness on that English trial and
could corroborate his account of it, the Jury declared
that they had heard enough, and that they were ready with
their votes if the President were content to receive
them.
At every vote (the Jurymen voted aloud and
individually), the populace set up a shout of applause.
All the voices were in the prisoner's favour, and the
President declared him free.
Then, began one of those extraordinary scenes with
which the populace sometimes gratified their fickleness,
or their better impulses towards generosity and mercy, or
which they regarded as some set-off against their swollen
account of cruel rage. No man can decide now to which of
these motives such extraordinary scenes were referable;
it is probable, to a blending of all the three, with the
second predominating. No sooner was the acquittal
pronounced, than tears were shed as freely as blood at
another time, and such fraternal embraces were bestowed
upon the prisoner by as many of both sexes as could rush
at him, that after his long and unwholesome confinement
he was in danger of fainting from exhaustion; none the
less because he knew very well, that the very same
people, carried by another current, would have rushed at
him with the very same intensity, to rend him to pieces
and strew him over the streets.
His removal, to make way for other accused persons
who were to be tried, rescued him from these caresses for
the moment. Five were to be tried together, next, as
enemies of the Republic, forasmuch as they had not
assisted it by word or deed. So quick was the Tribunal to
compensate itself and the nation for a chance lost, that
these five came down to him before he left the place,
condemned to die within twenty-four hours. The first of
them told him so, with the customary prison sign of
Death--a raised finger--and they all added in words,
"Long live the Republic!"
The five had had, it is true, no audience to
lengthen their proceedings, for when he and Doctor
Manette emerged from the gate, there was a great crowd
about it, in which there seemed to be every face he had
seen in Court--except two, for which he looked in vain.
On his coming out, the concourse made at him anew,
weeping, embracing, and shouting, all by turns and all
together, until the very tide of the river on the bank of
which the mad scene was acted, seemed to run mad, like
the people on the shore.
They put him into a great chair they had among
them, and which they had taken either out of the Court
itself, or one of its rooms or passages. Over the chair
they had thrown a red flag, and to the back of it they
had bound a pike with a red cap on its top. In this car
of triumph, not even the Doctor's entreaties could
prevent his being carried to his home on men's shoulders,
with a confused sea of red caps heaving about him, and
casting up to sight from the stormy deep such wrecks of
faces, that he more than once misdoubted his mind being
in confusion, and that he was in the tumbril on his way
to the Guillotine.
In wild dreamlike procession, embracing whom they
met and pointing him out, they carried him on. Reddening
the snowy streets with the prevailing Republican colour,
in winding and tramping through them, as they had
reddened them below the snow with a deeper dye, they
carried him thus into the courtyard of the building where
he lived. Her father had gone on before, to prepare her,
and when her husband stood upon his feet, she dropped
insensible in his arms.
As he held her to his heart and turned her
beautiful head between his face and the brawling crowd,
so that his tears and her lips might come together
unseen, a few of the people fell to dancing. Instantly,
all the rest fell to dancing, and the courtyard
overflowed with the Carmagnole. Then, they elevated into
the vacant chair a young woman from the crowd to be
carried as the Goddess of Liberty, and then swelling and
overflowing out into the adjacent streets, and along the
river's bank, and over the bridge, the Carmagnole
absorbed them every one and whirled them away.
After grasping the Doctor's hand, as he stood
victorious and proud before him; after grasping the hand
of Mr. Lorry, who came panting in breathless from his
struggle against the waterspout of the Carmagnole; after
kissing little Lucie, who was lifted up to clasp her arms
round his neck; and after embracing the ever zealous and
faithful Pross who lifted her; he took his wife in his
arms, and carried her up to their rooms.
"Lucie! My own! I am safe."
"O dearest Charles, let me thank God for this on my
knees as I have prayed to Him."
They all reverently bowed their heads and hearts.
When she was again in his arms, he said to her:
"And now speak to your father, dearest. No other
man in all this France could have done what he has done
for me."
She laid her head upon her father's breast, as she
had laid his poor head on her own breast, long, long ago.
He was happy in the return he had made her, he was
recompensed for his suffering, be was proud of his
strength. "You must not be weak, my darling," he
remonstrated; "don't tremble so. I have saved
him."
VII
A Knock at the Door
"I have saved him." It was not another of the
dreams in which he had often come back; he was really
here. And yet his wife trembled, and a vague but heavy
fear was upon her.
All the air round was so thick and dark, the people
were so passionately revengeful and fitful, the innocent
were so constantly put to death on vague suspicion and
black malice, it was so impossible to forget that many as
blameless as her husband and as dear to others as he was
to her, every day shared the fate from which he had been
clutched, that her heart could not be as lightened of its
load as she felt it ought to be. The shadows of the
wintry afternoon were beginning to fall, and even now the
dreadful carts were rolling through the streets. Her mind
pursued them, looking for him among the Condemned; and
then she clung closer to his real presence and trembled
more.
Her father, cheering her, showed a compassionate
superiority to this woman's weakness, which was wonderful
to see. No garret, no shoemaking, no One Hundred and
Five, North Tower, now! He had accomplished the task he
had set himself, his promise was redeemed, he had saved
Charles. Let them all lean upon him.
Their housekeeping was of a very frugal kind: not
only because that was the safest way of life, involving
the least offence to the people, but because they were
not rich, and Charles, throughout his imprisonment, had
had to pay heavily for his bad food, and for his guard,
and towards the living of the poorer prisoners. Partly on
this account, and partly to avoid a domestic spy, they
kept no servant; the citizen and citizeness who acted as
porters at the courtyard gate, rendered them occasional
service; and Jerry (almost wholly transferred to them by
Mr. Lorry) had become their daily retainer, and had his
bed there every night.
It was an ordinance of the Republic One and
Indivisible of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death,
that on the door or doorpost of every house, the name of
every inmate must be legibly inscribed in letters of a
certain size, at a certain convenient height from the
ground. Mr. Jerry Cruncher's name, therefore, duly
embellished the doorpost down below; and, as the
afternoon shadows deepened, the owner of that name
himself appeared, from overlooking a painter whom Doctor
Manette had employed to add to the list the name of
Charles Evremonde, called Darnay.
In the universal fear and distrust that darkened
the time, all the usual harmless ways of life were
changed. In the Doctor's little household, as in very
many others, the articles of daily consumption that were
wanted were purchased every evening, in small quantities
and at various small shops. To avoid attracting notice,
and to give as little occasion as possible for talk and
envy, was the general desire.
For some months past, Miss Pross and Mr. Cruncher
had discharged the office of purveyors; the former
carrying the money; the latter, the basket. Every
afternoon at about the time when the public lamps were
lighted, they fared forth on this duty, and made and
brought home such purchases as were needful. Although
Miss Pross, through her long association with a French
family, might have known as much of their language as of
her own, if she had had a mind, she had no mind in that
direction; consequently she knew no more of that
"nonsense" (as she was pleased to call it) than Mr.
Cruncher did. So her manner of marketing was to plump a
noun-substantive at the head of a shopkeeper without any
introduction in the nature of an article, and, if it
happened not to be the name of the thing she wanted, to
look round for that thing, lay hold of it, and hold on by
it until the bargain was concluded. She always made a
bargain for it, by holding up, as a statement of its just
price, one finger less than the merchant held up,
whatever his number might be.
"Now, Mr. Cruncher," said Miss Pross, whose eyes
were red with felicity; "if you are ready, I am."
Jerry hoarsely professed himself at Miss Pross's
service. He had worn all his rust off long ago, but
nothing would file his spiky head down.
"There's all manner of things wanted," said Miss
Pross, "and we shall have a precious time of it. We want
wine, among the rest. Nice toasts these Redheads will be
drinking, wherever we buy it."
"It will be much the same to your knowledge, miss,
I should think," retorted Jerry, "whether they drink your
health or the Old Un's."
"Who's he?" said Miss Pross.
Mr. Cruncher, with some diffidence, explained
himself as meaning "Old Nick's."
"Ha!" said Miss Pross, "it doesn't need an
interpreter to explain the meaning of these creatures.
They have but one, and it's Midnight Murder, and
Mischief."
"Hush, dear! Pray, pray, be cautious!" cried
Lucie.
"Yes, yes, yes, I'll be cautious," said Miss Pross;
"but I may say among ourselves, that I do hope there will
be no oniony and tobaccoey smotherings in the form of
embracings all round, going on in the streets. Now,
Ladybird, never you stir from that fire till I come back!
Take care of the dear husband you have recovered, and
don't move your pretty head from his shoulder as you have
it now, till you see me again! May I ask a question,
Doctor Manette, before I go?"
"I think you may take that liberty," the Doctor
answered, smiling.
"For gracious sake, don't talk about Liberty; we
have quite enough of that," said Miss Pross.
"Hush, dear! Again?" Lucie remonstrated.
"Well, my sweet," said Miss Pross, nodding her head
emphatically, "the short and the long of it is, that I am
a subject of His Most Gracious Majesty King George the
Third;" Miss Pross curtseyed at the name; "and as such,
my maxim is, Confound their politics, Frustrate their
knavish tricks, On him our hopes we fix, God save the
King!"
Mr. Cruncher, in an access of loyalty, growlingly
repeated the words after Miss Pross, Re somebody at
church.
"I am glad you have so much of the Englishman in
you, though I wish you had never taken that cold in your
voice," said Miss Pross, approvingly. "But the question,
Doctor Manette. Is there"--it was the good creature's way
to affect to make light of anything that was a great
anxiety with them all, and to come at it in this chance
manner--"is there any prospect yet, of our getting out of
this place?"
"I fear not yet. It would be dangerous for Charles
yet."
"Heigh-ho-hum!" said Miss Pross, cheerfully
repressing a sigh as she glanced at her darling's golden
hair in the light of the fire, "then we must have
patience and wait: that's all. We must hold up our heads
and fight low, as my brother Solomon used to say. Now,
Mr. Cruncher!--Don't you move, Ladybird!"
They went out, leaving Lucie, and her husband, her
father, and the child, by a bright fire. Mr. Lorry was
expected back presently from the Banking House. Miss
Pross had lighted the lamp, but had put it aside in a
corner, that they might enjoy the fire-light undisturbed.
Little Lucie sat by her grandfather with her hands
clasped through his arm: and he, in a tone not rising
much above a whisper, began to ten her a story of a great
and powerful Fairy who had opened a prison-wall and let
out a captive who had once done the Fairy a service. All
was subdued and quiet, and Lucie was more at ease than
she had been.
"What is that?" she cried, all at once.
"My dear!" said her father, stopping in his story,
and laying his hand on hers, "command yourself. What a
disordered state you are in! The least
thing--nothing--startles you! YOU, your father's
daughter!"
"I thought, my father," said Lucie, excusing
herself, with a pale face and in a faltering voice, "that
I heard strange feet upon the stairs."
"My love, the staircase is as still as
Death."
As he said the word, a blow was struck upon the
door.
"Oh father, father. What can this be! Hide Charles.
Save him!"
"My child," said the Doctor, rising, and laying his
hand upon her shoulder, "I HAVE saved him. What weakness
is this, my dear! Let me go to the door."
He took the lamp in his hand, crossed the two
intervening outer rooms, and opened it. A rude clattering
of feet over the floor, and four rough men in red caps,
armed with sabres and pistols, entered the room.
"The Citizen Evremonde, called Darnay," said the
first.
"Who seeks him?" answered Darnay.
"I seek him. We seek him. I know you, Evremonde; I
saw you before the Tribunal to-day. You are again the
prisoner of the Republic."
The four surrounded him, where he stood with his
wife and child clinging to him.
"Tell me how and why am I again a prisoner?"
"It is enough that you return straight to the
Conciergerie, and will know to-morrow. You are summoned
for to-morrow."
Doctor Manette, whom this visitation had so turned
into stone, that be stood with the lamp in his band, as
if be woe a statue made to hold it, moved after these
words were spoken, put the lamp down, and confronting the
speaker, and taking him, not ungently, by the loose front
of his red woollen shirt, said:
"You know him, you have said. Do you know
me?"
"Yes, I know you, Citizen Doctor."
"We all know you, Citizen Doctor," said the other
three.
He looked abstractedly from one to another, and
said, in a lower voice, after a pause:
"Will you answer his question to me then? How does
this happen?"
"Citizen Doctor," said the first, reluctantly, "he
has been denounced to the Section of Saint Antoine. This
citizen," pointing out the second who had entered, "is
from Saint Antoine."
The citizen here indicated nodded his head, and
added:
"He is accused by Saint Antoine."
"Of what?" asked the Doctor.
"Citizen Doctor," said the first, with his former
reluctance, "ask no more. If the Republic demands
sacrifices from you, without doubt you as a good patriot
will be happy to make them. The Republic goes before all.
The People is supreme. Evremonde, we are pressed."
"One word," the Doctor entreated. "Will you tell me
who denounced him?"
"It is against rule," answered the first; "but you
can ask Him of Saint Antoine here."
The Doctor turned his eyes upon that man. Who moved
uneasily on his feet, rubbed his beard a little, and at
length said:
"Well! Truly it is against rule. But he is
denounced--and gravely--by the Citizen and Citizeness
Defarge. And by one other."
"What other?"
"Do YOU ask, Citizen Doctor?"
"Yes."
"Then," said he of Saint Antoine, with a strange
look, "you will be answered to-morrow. Now, I am
dumb!"
VIII
A Hand at Cards
Happily unconscious of the new calamity at home,
Miss Pross threaded her way along the narrow streets and
crossed the river by the bridge of the Pont-Neuf,
reckoning in her mind the number of indispensable
purchases she had to make. Mr. Cruncher, with the basket,
walked at her side. They both looked to the right and to
the left into most of the shops they passed, had a wary
eye for all gregarious assemblages of people, and turned
out of their road to avoid any very excited group of
talkers. It was a raw evening, and the misty river,
blurred to the eye with blazing lights and to the ear
with harsh noises, showed where the barges were stationed
in which the smiths worked, making guns for the Army of
the Republic. Woe to the man who played tricks with THAT
Army, or got undeserved promotion in it! Better for him
that his beard had never grown, for the National Razor
shaved him close.
Having purchased a few small articles of grocery,
and a measure of oil for the lamp, Miss Pross bethought
herself of the wine they wanted. After peeping into
several wine-shops, she stopped at the sign of the Good
Republican Brutus of Antiquity, not far from the National
Palace, once (and twice) the Tuileries, where the aspect
of things rather took her fancy. It had a quieter look
than any other place of the same description they had
passed, and, though red with patriotic caps, was not so
red as the rest. Sounding Mr. Cruncher, and finding him
of her opinion, Miss Pross resorted to the Good
Republican Brutus of Antiquity, attended by her
cavalier.
Slightly observant of the smoky lights; of the
people, pipe in mouth, playing with limp cards and yellow
dominoes; of the one bare- breasted, bare-armed,
soot-begrimed workman reading a journal aloud, and of the
others listening to him; of the weapons worn, or laid
aside to be resumed; of the two or three customers fallen
forward asleep, who in the popular high-shouldered shaggy
black spencer looked, in that attitude, like slumbering
bears or dogs; the two outlandish customers approached
the counter, and showed what they wanted.
As their wine was measuring out, a man parted from
another man in a corner, and rose to depart. In going, he
had to face Miss Pross. No sooner did he face her, than
Miss Pross uttered a scream, and clapped her
hands.
In a moment, the whole company were on their feet.
That somebody was assassinated by somebody vindicating a
difference of opinion was the likeliest occurrence.
Everybody looked to see somebody fall, but only saw a man
and a woman standing staring at each other; the man with
all the outward aspect of a Frenchman and a thorough
Republican; the woman, evidently English.
What was said in this disappointing anti-climax, by
the disciples of the Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity,
except that it was something very voluble and loud, would
have been as so much Hebrew or Chaldean to Miss Pross and
her protector, though they had been all ears. But, they
bad no ears for anything in their surprise. For, it must
be recorded, that not only was Miss Pross lost in
amazement and agitation, but, Mr. Cruncher--though it
seemed on his own separate and individual account--was in
a state of the greatest wonder.
"What is the matter?" said the man who had caused
Miss Pross to scream; speaking in a vexed, abrupt voice
(though in a low tone), and in English.
"Oh, Solomon, dear Solomon!" cried Miss Pross,
clapping her hands again. "After not setting eyes upon
you or hearing of you for so long a time, do I find you
here!"
"Don't call me Solomon. Do you want to be the death
of me?" asked the man, in a furtive, frightened
way.
"Brother, brother!" cried Miss Pross, bursting into
tears. "Have I ever been so hard with you that you ask me
such a cruel question?"
"Then hold your meddlesome tongue," said Solomon,
"and come out, if you want to speak to me. Pay for your
wine, and come out. Who's this man?"
Miss Pross, shaking her loving and dejected head at
her by no means affectionate brother, said through her
tears, "Mr. Cruncher."
"Let him come out too," said Solomon. "Does he
think me a ghost?"
Apparently, Mr. Cruncher did, to judge from his
looks. He said not a word, however, and Miss Pross,
exploring the depths of her reticule through her tears
with great difficulty paid for her wine. As she did so,
Solomon turned to the followers of the Good Republican
Brutus of Antiquity, and offered a few words of
explanation in the French language, which caused them all
to relapse into their former places and pursuits.
"Now," said Solomon, stopping at the dark street
corner, "what do you want?"
"How dreadfully unkind in a brother nothing has
ever turned my love away from!" cried Miss Pross, "to
give me such a greeting, and show me no
affection."
"There. Confound it! There," said Solomon, making a
dab at Miss Pross's lips with his own. "Now are you
content?"
Miss Pross only shook her head and wept in
silence.
"If you expect me to be surprised," said her
brother Solomon, "I am not surprised; I knew you were
here; I know of most people who are here. If you really
don't want to endanger my existence--which I half believe
you do--go your ways as soon as possible, and let me go
mine. I am busy. I am an official."
"My English brother Solomon," mourned Miss Pross,
casting up her tear-fraught eyes, "that had the makings
in him of one of the best and greatest of men in his
native country, an official among foreigners, and such
foreigners! I would almost sooner have seen the dear boy
lying in his--"
"I said so!" cried her brother, interrupting. "I
knew it. You want to be the death of me. I shall be
rendered Suspected, by my own sister. Just as I am
getting on!"
"The gracious and merciful Heavens forbid!" cried
Miss Pross. "Far rather would I never see you again, dear
Solomon, though I have ever loved you truly, and ever
shall. Say but one affectionate word to me, and tell me
there is nothing angry or estranged between us, and I
will detain you no longer."
Good Miss Pross! As if the estrangement between
them had come of any culpability of hers. As if Mr. Lorry
had not known it for a fact, years ago, in the quiet
corner in Soho, that this precious brother had spent her
money and left her!
He was saying the affectionate word, however, with
a far more grudging condescension and patronage than he
could have shown if their relative merits and positions
had been reversed (which is invariably the case, all the
world over), when Mr. Cruncher, touching him on the
shoulder, hoarsely and unexpectedly interposed with the
following singular question:
"I say! Might I ask the favour? As to whether your
name is John Solomon, or Solomon John?"
The official turned towards him with sudden
distrust. He had not previously uttered a word.
"Come!" said Mr. Cruncher. "Speak out, you know."
(Which, by the way, was more than he could do himself.)
"John Solomon, or Solomon John? She calls you Solomon,
and she must know, being your sister. And _I_ know you're
John, you know. Which of the two goes first? And
regarding that name of Pross, likewise. That warn't your
name over the water."
"What do you mean?"
"Well, I don't know all I mean, for I can't call to
mind what your name was, over the water."
"No?"
"No. But I'll swear it was a name of two
syllables."
"Indeed?"
"Yes. T'other one's was one syllable. I know you.
You was a spy-- witness at the Bailey. What, in the name
of the Father of Lies, own father to yourself, was you
called at that time?"
"Barsad," said another voice, striking in.
"That's the name for a thousand pound!" cried
Jerry.
The speaker who struck in, was Sydney Carton. He
had his hands behind him under the skirts of his
riding-coat, and he stood at Mr. Cruncher's elbow as
negligently as he might have stood at the Old Bailey
itself.
"Don't be alarmed, my dear Miss Pross. I arrived at
Mr. Lorry's, to his surprise, yesterday evening; we
agreed that I would not present myself elsewhere until
all was well, or unless I could be useful; I present
myself here, to beg a little talk with your brother. I
wish you had a better employed brother than Mr. Barsad. I
wish for your sake Mr. Barsad was not a Sheep of the
Prisons."
Sheep was a cant word of the time for a spy, under
the gaolers. The spy, who was pale, turned paler, and
asked him how he dared--
"I'll tell you," said Sydney. "I lighted on you,
Mr. Barsad, coming out of the prison of the Conciergerie
while I was contemplating the walls, an hour or more ago.
You have a face to be remembered, and I remember faces
well. Made curious by seeing you in that connection, and
having a reason, to which you are no stranger, for
associating you with the misfortunes of a friend now very
unfortunate, I walked in your direction. I walked into
the wine-shop here, close after you, and sat near you. I
had no difficulty in deducing from your unreserved
conversation, and the rumour openly going about among
your admirers, the nature of your calling. And gradually,
what I had done at random, seemed to shape itself into a
purpose, Mr. Barsad."
"What purpose?" the spy asked.
"It would be troublesome, and might be dangerous,
to explain in the street. Could you favour me, in
confidence, with some minutes of your company--at the
office of Tellson's Bank, for instance?"
"Under a threat?"
"Oh! Did I say that?"
"Then, why should I go there?"
"Really, Mr. Barsad, I can't say, if you
can't."
"Do you mean that you won't say, sir?" the spy
irresolutely asked.
"You apprehend me very clearly, Mr. Barsad. I
won't."
Carton's negligent recklessness of manner came
powerfully in aid of his quickness and skill, in such a
business as be had in his secret mind, and with such a
man as he had to do with. His practised eye saw it, and
made the most of it.
"Now, I told you so," said the spy, casting a
reproachful look at his sister; "if any trouble comes of
this, it's your doing."
"Come, come, Mr. Barsad!" exclaimed Sydney. "Don't
be ungrateful. But for my great respect for your sister,
I might not have led up so pleasantly to a little
proposal that I wish to make for our mutual satisfaction.
Do you go with me to the Bank?"
"I'll hear what you have got to say. Yes, I'll go
with you."
"I propose that we first conduct your sister safely
to the corner of her own street. Let me take your arm,
Miss Pross. This is not a good city, at this time, for
you to be out in, unprotected; and as your escort knows
Mr. Barsad, I will invite him to Mr. Lorry's with us. Are
we ready? Come then!"
Miss Pross recalled soon afterwards, and to the end
of her life remembered, that as she pressed her hands on
Sydney's arm and looked up in his face, imploring him to
do no hurt to Solomon, there was a braced purpose in the
arm and a kind of inspiration in the eyes, which not only
contradicted his light manner, but changed and raised the
man. She was too much occupied then with fears for the
brother who so little deserved her affection, and with
Sydney's friendly reassurances, adequately to heed what
she observed.
They left her at the corner of the street, and
Carton led the way to Mr. Lorry's, which was within a few
minutes' walk. John Barsad, or Solomon Pross, walked at
his side.
Mr. Lorry had just finished his dinner, and was
sitting before a cheery little log or two of
fire--perhaps looking into their blaze for the picture of
that younger elderly gentleman from Tellson's, who had
looked into the red coals at the Royal George at Dover,
now a good many years ago. He turned his head as they
entered, and showed the surprise with which he saw a
stranger.
"Miss Pross's brother, sir," said Sydney. "Mr.
Barsad."
"Barsad?" repeated the old gentleman, "Barsad? I
have an association with the name--and with the
face."
"I told you you had a remarkable face, Mr. Barsad,"
observed Carton, coolly. "Pray sit down."
As he took a chair himself, he supplied the link
that Mr. Lorry wanted, by saying to him with a frown,
"Witness at that trial." Mr. Lorry immediately
remembered, and regarded his new visitor with an
undisguised look of abhorrence.
"Mr. Barsad has been recognised by Miss Pross as
the affectionate brother you have heard of," said Sydney,
"and has acknowledged the relationship. I pass to worse
news. Darnay has been arrested again."
Struck with consternation, the old gentleman
exclaimed, "What do you tell me! I left him safe and free
within these two hours, and am about to return to
him!"
"Arrested for all that. When was it done, Mr.
Barsad?"
"Just now, if at all."
"Mr. Barsad is the best authority possible, sir,"
said Sydney, "and I have it from Mr. Barsad's
communication to a friend and brother Sheep over a bottle
of wine, that the arrest has taken place. He left the
messengers at the gate, and saw them admitted by the
porter. There is no earthly doubt that he is
retaken."
Mr. Lorry's business eye read in the speaker's face
that it was loss of time to dwell upon the point.
Confused, but sensible that something might depend on his
presence of mind, he commanded himself, and was silently
attentive.
"Now, I trust," said Sydney to him, "that the name
and influence of Doctor Manette may stand him in as good
stead to-morrow--you said he would be before the Tribunal
again to-morrow, Mr. Barsad?--"
"Yes; I believe so."
"--In as good stead to-morrow as to-day. But it may
not be so. I own to you, I am shaken, Mr. Lorry, by
Doctor Manette's not having had the power to prevent this
arrest."
"He may not have known of it beforehand," said Mr.
Lorry.
"But that very circumstance would be alarming, when
we remember how identified he is with his
son-in-law."
"That's true," Mr. Lorry acknowledged, with his
troubled hand at his chin, and his troubled eyes on
Carton.
"In short," said Sydney, "this is a desperate time,
when desperate games are played for desperate stakes. Let
the Doctor play the winning game; I will play the losing
one. No man's life here is worth purchase. Any one
carried home by the people to-day, may be condemned
tomorrow. Now, the stake I have resolved to play for, in
case of the worst, is a friend in the Conciergerie. And
the friend I purpose to myself to win, is Mr.
Barsad."
"You need have good cards, sir," said the
spy.
"I'll run them over. I'll see what I hold,--Mr.
Lorry, you know what a brute I am; I wish you'd give me a
little brandy."
It was put before him, and he drank off a
glassful--drank off another glassful--pushed the bottle
thoughtfully away.
"Mr. Barsad," he went on, in the tone of one who
really was looking over a hand at cards: "Sheep of the
prisons, emissary of Republican committees, now turnkey,
now prisoner, always spy and secret informer, so much the
more valuable here for being English that an Englishman
is less open to suspicion of subornation in those
characters than a Frenchman, represents himself to his
employers under a false name. That's a very good card.
Mr. Barsad, now in the employ of the republican French
government, was formerly in the employ of the
aristocratic English government, the enemy of France and
freedom. That's an excellent card. Inference clear as day
in this region of suspicion, that Mr. Barsad, still in
the pay of the aristocratic English government, is the
spy of Pitt, the treacherous foe of the Republic
crouching in its bosom, the English traitor and agent of
all mischief so much spoken of and so difficult to find.
That's a card not to be beaten. Have you followed my
hand, Mr. Barsad?"
"Not to understand your play," returned the spy,
somewhat uneasily.
"I play my Ace, Denunciation of Mr. Barsad to the
nearest Section Committee. Look over your hand, Mr.
Barsad, and see what you have. Don't hurry."
He drew the bottle near, poured out another
glassful of brandy, and drank it off. He saw that the spy
was fearful of his drinking himself into a fit state for
the immediate denunciation of him. Seeing it, he poured
out and drank another glassful.
"Look over your hand carefully, Mr. Barsad. Take
time."
It was a poorer hand than he suspected. Mr. Barsad
saw losing cards in it that Sydney Carton knew nothing
of. Thrown out of his honourable employment in England,
through too much unsuccessful hard swearing there--not
because he was not wanted there; our English reasons for
vaunting our superiority to secrecy and spies are of very
modern date--he knew that he had crossed the Channel, and
accepted service in France: first, as a tempter and an
eavesdropper among his own countrymen there: gradually,
as a tempter and an eavesdropper among the natives. He
knew that under the overthrown government he had been a
spy upon Saint Antoine and Defarge's wine-shop; had
received from the watchful police such heads of
information concerning Doctor Manette's imprisonment,
release, and history, as should serve him for an
introduction to familiar conversation with the Defarges;
and tried them on Madame Defarge, and had broken down
with them signally. He always remembered with fear and
trembling, that that terrible woman had knitted when he
talked with her, and had looked ominously at him as her
fingers moved. He had since seen her, in the Section of
Saint Antoine, over and over again produce her knitted
registers, and denounce people whose lives the guillotine
then surely swallowed up. He knew, as every one employed
as he was did, that he was never safe; that flight was
impossible; that he was tied fast under the shadow of the
axe; and that in spite of his utmost tergiversation and
treachery in furtherance of the reigning terror, a word
might bring it down upon him. Once denounced, and on such
grave grounds as had just now been suggested to his mind,
he foresaw that the dreadful woman of whose unrelenting
character he had seen many proofs, would produce against
him that fatal register, and would quash his last chance
of life. Besides that all secret men are men soon
terrified, here were surely cards enough of one black
suit, to justify the holder in growing rather livid as he
turned them over.
"You scarcely seem to like your hand," said Sydney,
with the greatest composure. "Do you play?"
"I think, sir," said the spy, in the meanest
manner, as he turned to Mr. Lorry, "I may appeal to a
gentleman of your years and benevolence, to put it to
this other gentleman, so much your junior, whether he can
under any circumstances reconcile it to his station to
play that Ace of which he has spoken. I admit that _I_ am
a spy, and that it is considered a discreditable
station--though it must be filled by somebody; but this
gentleman is no spy, and why should he so demean himself
as to make himself one?"
"I play my Ace, Mr. Barsad," said Carton, taking
the answer on himself, and looking at his watch, "without
any scruple, in a very few minutes."
"I should have hoped, gentlemen both," said the
spy, always striving to hook Mr. Lorry into the
discussion, "that your respect for my sister--"
"I could not better testify my respect for your
sister than by finally relieving her of her brother,"
said Sydney Carton.
"You think not, sir?"
"I have thoroughly made up my mind about
it."
The smooth manner of the spy, curiously in
dissonance with his ostentatiously rough dress, and
probably with his usual demeanour, received such a check
from the inscrutability of Carton,--who was a mystery to
wiser and honester men than he,--that it faltered here
and failed him. While he was at a loss, Carton said,
resuming his former air of contemplating cards:
"And indeed, now I think again, I have a strong
impression that I have another good card here, not yet
enumerated. That friend and fellow-Sheep, who spoke of
himself as pasturing in the country prisons; who was
he?"
"French. You don't know him," said the spy,
quickly.
"French, eh?" repeated Carton, musing, and not
appearing to notice him at all, though he echoed his
word. "Well; he may be."
"Is, I assure you," said the spy; "though it's not
important."
"Though it's not important," repeated Carton, in
the same mechanical way--"though it's not important--No,
it's not important. No. Yet I know the face."
"I think not. I am sure not. It can't be," said the
spy.
"It-can't-be," muttered Sydney Carton,
retrospectively, and idling his glass (which fortunately
was a small one) again. "Can't-be. Spoke good French. Yet
like a foreigner, I thought?"
"Provincial," said the spy.
"No. Foreign!" cried Carton, striking his open hand
on the table, as a light broke clearly on his mind. "Cly!
Disguised, but the same man. We had that man before us at
the Old Bailey."
"Now, there you are hasty, sir," said Barsad, with
a smile that gave his aquiline nose an extra inclination
to one side; "there you really give me an advantage over
you. Cly (who I will unreservedly admit, at this distance
of time, was a partner of mine) has been dead several
years. I attended him in his last illness. He was buried
in London, at the church of Saint Pancras-in-the-Fields.
His unpopularity with the blackguard multitude at the
moment prevented my following his remains, but I helped
to lay him in his coffin."
Here, Mr. Lorry became aware, from where he sat, of
a most remarkable goblin shadow on the wall. Tracing it
to its source, he discovered it to be caused by a sudden
extraordinary rising and stiffening of all the risen and
stiff hair on Mr. Cruncher's head.
"Let us be reasonable," said the spy, "and let us
be fair. To show you how mistaken you are, and what an
unfounded assumption yours is, I will lay before you a
certificate of Cly's burial, which I happened to have
carried in my pocket-book," with a hurried hand he
produced and opened it, "ever since. There it is. Oh,
look at it, look at it! You may take it in your hand;
it's no forgery."
Here, Mr. Lorry perceived the reflection on the
wall to elongate, and Mr. Cruncher rose and stepped
forward. His hair could not have been more violently on
end, if it had been that moment dressed by the Cow with
the crumpled horn in the house that Jack built.
Unseen by the spy, Mr. Cruncher stood at his side,
and touched him on the shoulder like a ghostly
bailiff.
"That there Roger Cly, master," said Mr. Cruncher,
with a taciturn and iron-bound visage. "So YOU put him in
his coffin?"
"I did."
"Who took him out of it?"
Barsad leaned back in his chair, and stammered,
"What do you mean?"
"I mean," said Mr. Cruncher, "that he warn't never
in it. No! Not he! I'll have my head took off, if he was
ever in it."
The spy looked round at the two gentlemen; they
both looked in unspeakable astonishment at Jerry.
"I tell you," said Jerry, "that you buried
paving-stones and earth in that there coffin. Don't go
and tell me that you buried Cly. It was a take in. Me and
two more knows it."
"How do you know it?"
"What's that to you? Ecod!" growled Mr. Cruncher,
"it's you I have got a old grudge again, is it, with your
shameful impositions upon tradesmen! I'd catch hold of
your throat and choke you for half a guinea."
Sydney Carton, who, with Mr. Lorry, had been lost
in amazement at this turn of the business, here requested
Mr. Cruncher to moderate and explain himself.
"At another time, sir," he returned, evasively,
"the present time is ill-conwenient for explainin'. What
I stand to, is, that he knows well wot that there Cly was
never in that there coffin. Let him say he was, in so
much as a word of one syllable, and I'll either catch
hold of his throat and choke him for half a guinea;" Mr.
Cruncher dwelt upon this as quite a liberal offer; "or
I'll out and announce him."
"Humph! I see one thing," said Carton. "I hold
another card, Mr. Barsad. Impossible, here in raging
Paris, with Suspicion filling the air, for you to outlive
denunciation, when you are in communication with another
aristocratic spy of the same antecedents as yourself,
who, moreover, has the mystery about him of having
feigned death and come to life again! A plot in the
prisons, of the foreigner against the Republic. A strong
card--a certain Guillotine card! Do you play?"
"No!" returned the spy. "I throw up. I confess that
we were so unpopular with the outrageous mob, that I only
got away from England at the risk of being ducked to
death, and that Cly was so ferreted up and down, that he
never would have got away at all but for that sham.
Though how this man knows it was a sham, is a wonder of
wonders to me."
"Never you trouble your head about this man,"
retorted the contentious Mr. Cruncher; "you'll have
trouble enough with giving your attention to that
gentleman. And look here! Once more!"-- Mr. Cruncher
could not be restrained from making rather an
ostentatious parade of his liberality--"I'd catch hold of
your throat and choke you for half a guinea."
The Sheep of the prisons turned from him to Sydney
Carton, and said, with more decision, "It has come to a
point. I go on duty soon, and can't overstay my time. You
told me you had a proposal; what is it? Now, it is of no
use asking too much of me. Ask me to do anything in my
office, putting my head in great extra danger, and I had
better trust my life to the chances of a refusal than the
chances of consent. In short, I should make that choice.
You talk of desperation. We are all desperate here.
Remember! I may denounce you if I think proper, and I can
swear my way through stone walls, and so can others. Now,
what do you want with me?"
"Not very much. You are a turnkey at the
Conciergerie?"
"I tell you once for all, there is no such thing as
an escape possible," said the spy, firmly.
"Why need you tell me what I have not asked? You
are a turnkey at the Conciergerie?"
"I am sometimes."
"You can be when you choose?"
"I can pass in and out when I choose."
Sydney Carton filled another glass with brandy,
poured it slowly out upon the hearth, and watched it as
it dropped. It being all spent, he said, rising:
"So far, we have spoken before these two, because
it was as well that the merits of the cards should not
rest solely between you and me. Come into the dark room
here, and let us have one final word alone."
IX
The Game Made
While Sydney Carton and the Sheep of the prisons
were in the adjoining dark room, speaking so low that not
a sound was heard, Mr. Lorry looked at Jerry in
considerable doubt and mistrust. That honest tradesman's
manner of receiving the look, did not inspire confidence;
he changed the leg on which he rested, as often as if he
had fifty of those limbs, and were trying them all; he
examined his finger-nails with a very questionable
closeness of attention; and whenever Mr. Lorry's eye
caught his, he was taken with that peculiar kind of short
cough requiring the hollow of a hand before it, which is
seldom, if ever, known to be an infirmity attendant on
perfect openness of character.
"Jerry," said Mr. Lorry. "Come here."
Mr. Cruncher came forward sideways, with one of his
shoulders in advance of him.
"What have you been, besides a messenger?"
After some cogitation, accompanied with an intent
look at his patron, Mr. Cruncher conceived the luminous
idea of replying, "Agicultooral character."
"My mind misgives me much," said Mr. Lorry, angrily
shaking a forefinger at him, "that you have used the
respectable and great house of Tellson's as a blind, and
that you have had an unlawful occupation of an infamous
description. If you have, don't expect me to befriend you
when you get back to England. If you have, don't expect
me to keep your secret. Tellson's shall not be imposed
upon."
"I hope, sir," pleaded the abashed Mr. Cruncher,
"that a gentleman like yourself wot I've had the honour
of odd jobbing till I'm grey at it, would think twice
about harming of me, even if it wos so--I don't say it
is, but even if it wos. And which it is to be took into
account that if it wos, it wouldn't, even then, be all o'
one side. There'd be two sides to it. There might be
medical doctors at the present hour, a picking up their
guineas where a honest tradesman don't pick up his
fardens--fardens! no, nor yet his half fardens-- half
fardens! no, nor yet his quarter--a banking away like
smoke at Tellson's, and a cocking their medical eyes at
that tradesman on the sly, a going in and going out to
their own carriages--ah! equally like smoke, if not more
so. Well, that 'ud be imposing, too, on Tellson's. For
you cannot sarse the goose and not the gander. And here's
Mrs. Cruncher, or leastways wos in the Old England times,
and would be to-morrow, if cause given, a floppin' again
the business to that degree as is ruinating--stark
ruinating! Whereas them medical doctors' wives don't
flop--catch 'em at it! Or, if they flop, their toppings
goes in favour of more patients, and how can you rightly
have one without t'other? Then, wot with undertakers, and
wot with parish clerks, and wot with sextons, and wot
with private watchmen (all awaricious and all in it), a
man wouldn't get much by it, even if it wos so. And wot
little a man did get, would never prosper with him, Mr.
Lorry. He'd never have no good of it; he'd want all along
to be out of the line, if he, could see his way out,
being once in-- even if it wos so."
"Ugh!" cried Mr. Lorry, rather relenting,
nevertheless, "I am shocked at the sight of you."
"Now, what I would humbly offer to you, sir,"
pursued Mr. Cruncher, "even if it wos so, which I don't
say it is--"
"Don't prevaricate," said Mr. Lorry.
"No, I will NOT, sir," returned Mr. Crunches as if
nothing were further from his thoughts or
practice--"which I don't say it is--wot I would humbly
offer to you, sir, would be this. Upon that there stool,
at that there Bar, sets that there boy of mine, brought
up and growed up to be a man, wot will errand you,
message you, general- light-job you, till your heels is
where your head is, if such should be your wishes. If it
wos so, which I still don't say it is (for I will not
prewaricate to you, sir), let that there boy keep his
father's place, and take care of his mother; don't blow
upon that boy's father--do not do it, sir--and let that
father go into the line of the reg'lar diggin', and make
amends for what he would have undug--if it wos so-by
diggin' of 'em in with a will, and with conwictions
respectin' the futur' keepin' of 'em safe. That, Mr.
Lorry," said Mr. Cruncher, wiping his forehead with his
arm, as an announcement that he had arrived at the
peroration of his discourse, "is wot I would respectfully
offer to you, sir. A man don't see all this here a goin'
on dreadful round him, in the way of Subjects without
heads, dear me, plentiful enough fur to bring the price
down to porterage and hardly that, without havin' his
serious thoughts of things. And these here would be mine,
if it wos so, entreatin' of you fur to bear in mind that
wot I said just now, I up and said in the good cause when
I might have kep' it back."
"That at least is true, said Mr. Lorry. "Say no
more now. It may be that I shall yet stand your friend,
if you deserve it, and repent in action--not in words. I
want no more words."
Mr. Cruncher knuckled his forehead, as Sydney
Carton and the spy returned from the dark room. "Adieu,
Mr. Barsad," said the former; "our arrangement thus made,
you have nothing to fear from me."
He sat down in a chair on the hearth, over against
Mr. Lorry. When they were alone, Mr. Lorry asked him what
he had done?
"Not much. If it should go ill with the prisoner, I
have ensured access to him, once."
Mr. Lorry's countenance fell.
"It is all I could do," said Carton. "To propose
too much, would be to put this man's head under the axe,
and, as he himself said, nothing worse could happen to
him if he were denounced. It was obviously the weakness
of the position. There is no help for it."
"But access to him," said Mr. Lorry, "if it should
go ill before the Tribunal, will not save him."
"I never said it would."
Mr. Lorry's eyes gradually sought the fire; his
sympathy with his darling, and the heavy disappointment
of his second arrest, gradually weakened them; he was an
old man now, overborne with anxiety of late, and his
tears fell.
"You are a good man and a true friend," said
Carton, in an altered voice. "Forgive me if I notice that
you are affected. I could not see my father weep, and sit
by, careless. And I could not respect your sorrow more,
if you were my father. You are free from that misfortune,
however."
Though he said the last words, with a slip into his
usual manner, there was a true feeling and respect both
in his tone and in his touch, that Mr. Lorry, who had
never seen the better side of him, was wholly unprepared
for. He gave him his band, and Carton gently pressed
it.
"To return to poor Darnay," said Carton. "Don't
tell Her of this interview, or this arrangement. It would
not enable Her to go to see him. She might think it was
contrived, in case of the worse, to convey to him the
means of anticipating the sentence."
Mr. Lorry had not thought of that, and he looked
quickly at Carton to see if it were in his mind. It
seemed to be; he returned the look, and evidently
understood it.
"She might think a thousand things," Carton said,
"and any of them would only add to her trouble. Don't
speak of me to her. As I said to you when I first came, I
had better not see her. I can put my hand out, to do any
little helpful work for her that my hand can find to do,
without that. You are going to her, I hope? She must be
very desolate to-night."
"I am going now, directly."
"I am glad of that. She has such a strong
attachment to you and reliance on you. How does she
look?"
"Anxious and unhappy, but very beautiful."
"Ah!"
It was a long, grieving sound, like a sigh--almost
like a sob. It attracted Mr. Lorry's eyes to Carton's
face, which was turned to the fire. A light, or a shade
(the old gentleman could not have said which), passed
from it as swiftly as a change will sweep over a
hill-side on a wild bright day, and he lifted his foot to
put back one of the little flaming logs, which was
tumbling forward. He wore the white riding-coat and
top-boots, then in vogue, and the light of the fire
touching their light surfaces made him look very pale,
with his long brown hair, all untrimmed, hanging loose
about him. His indifference to fire was sufficiently
remarkable to elicit a word of remonstrance from Mr.
Lorry; his boot was still upon the hot embers of the
flaming log, when it had broken under the weight of Ms
foot.
"I forgot it," he said.
Mr. Lorry's eyes were again attracted to his face.
Taking note of the wasted air which clouded the naturally
handsome features, and having the expression of
prisoners' faces fresh in his mind, he was strongly
reminded of that expression.
"And your duties here have drawn to an end, sir?"
said Carton, turning to him.
"Yes. As I was telling you last night when Lucie
came in so unexpectedly, I have at length done all that I
can do here. I hoped to have left them in perfect safety,
and then to have quitted Paris. I have my Leave to Pass.
I was ready to go."
They were both silent.
"Yours is a long life to look back upon, sir?" said
Carton, wistfully.
"I am in my seventy-eighth year."
"You have been useful all your life; steadily and
constantly occupied; trusted, respected, and looked up
to?"
"I have been a man of business, ever since I have
been a man. indeed, I may say that I was a man of
business when a boy."
"See what a place you fill at seventy-eight. How
many people will miss you when you leave it
empty!"
"A solitary old bachelor," answered Mr. Lorry,
shaking his head. "There is nobody to weep for
me."
"How can you say that? Wouldn't She weep for you?
Wouldn't her child?"
"Yes, yes, thank God. I didn't quite mean what I
said."
"It IS a thing to thank God for; is it not?"
"Surely, surely."
"If you could say, with truth, to your own solitary
heart, to-night, 'I have secured to myself the love and
attachment, the gratitude or respect, of no human
creature; I have won myself a tender place in no regard;
I have done nothing good or serviceable to be remembered
by!' your seventy-eight years would be seventy-eight
heavy curses; would they not?"
"You say truly, Mr. Carton; I think they would
be."
Sydney turned his eyes again upon the fire, and,
after a silence of a few moments, said:
"I should like to ask you:--Does your childhood
seem far off? Do the days when you sat at your mother's
knee, seem days of very long ago?"
Responding to his softened manner, Mr. Lorry
answered:
"Twenty years back, yes; at this time of my life,
no. For, as I draw closer and closer to the end, I travel
in the circle, nearer and nearer to the beginning. It
seems to be one of the kind smoothings and preparings of
the way. My heart is touched now, by many remembrances
that had long fallen asleep, of my pretty young mother
(and I so old!), and by many associations of the days
when what we call the World was not so real with me, and
my faults were not confirmed in me."
"I understand the feeling!" exclaimed Carton, with
a bright flush. "And you are the better for it?"
"I hope so."
Carton terminated the conversation here, by rising
to help him on with his outer coat; "But you," said Mr.
Lorry, reverting to the theme, "you are young."
"Yes," said Carton. "I am not old, but my young way
was never the way to age. Enough of me."
"And of me, I am sure," said Mr. Lorry. "Are you
going out?"
"I'll walk with you to her gate. You know my
vagabond and restless habits. If I should prowl about the
streets a long time, don't be uneasy; I shall reappear in
the morning. You go to the Court to-morrow?"
"Yes, unhappily."
"I shall be there, but only as one of the crowd. My
Spy will find a place for me. Take my arm, sir."
Mr. Lorry did so, and they went down-stairs and out
in the streets. A few minutes brought them to Mr. Lorry's
destination. Carton left him there; but lingered at a
little distance, and turned back to the gate again when
it was shut, and touched it. He had heard of her going to
the prison every day. "She came out here," he said,
looking about him, "turned this way, must have trod on
these stones often. Let me follow in her steps."
It was ten o'clock at night when he stood before
the prison of La Force, where she had stood hundreds of
times. A little wood-sawyer, having closed his shop, was
smoking his pipe at his shop-door.
"Good night, citizen," said Sydney Carton, pausing
in going by; for, the man eyed him inquisitively.
"Good night, citizen."
"How goes the Republic?"
"You mean the Guillotine. Not ill. Sixty-three
to-day. We shall mount to a hundred soon. Samson and his
men complain sometimes, of being exhausted. Ha, ha, ha!
He is so droll, that Samson. Such a Barber!"
"Do you often go to see him--"
"Shave? Always. Every day. What a barber! You have
seen him at work?"
"Never."
"Go and see him when he has a good batch. Figure
this to yourself, citizen; he shaved the sixty-three
to-day, in less than two pipes! Less than two pipes. Word
of honour!"
As the grinning little man held out the pipe he was
smoking, to explain how he timed the executioner, Carton
was so sensible of a rising desire to strike the life out
of him, that he turned away.
"But you are not English," said the wood-sawyer,
"though you wear English dress?"
"Yes," said Carton, pausing again, and answering
over his shoulder.
"You speak like a Frenchman."
"I am an old student here."
"Aha, a perfect Frenchman! Good night,
Englishman."
"Good night, citizen."
"But go and see that droll dog," the little man
persisted, calling after him. "And take a pipe with
you!"
Sydney had not gone far out of sight, when he
stopped in the middle of the street under a glimmering
lamp, and wrote with his pencil on a scrap of paper.
Then, traversing with the decided step of one who
remembered the way well, several dark and dirty
streets--much dirtier than usual, for the best public
thoroughfares remained uncleansed in those times of
terror--he stopped at a chemist's shop, which the owner
was closing with his own hands. A small, dim, crooked
shop, kept in a tortuous, up-hill thoroughfare, by a
small, dim, crooked man.
Giving this citizen, too, good night, as he
confronted him at his counter, he laid the scrap of paper
before him. "Whew!" the chemist whistled softly, as he
read it. "Hi! hi! hi!"
Sydney Carton took no heed, and the chemist
said:
"For you, citizen?"
"For me."
"You will be careful to keep them separate,
citizen? You know the consequences of mixing
them?"
"Perfectly."
Certain small packets were made and given to him.
He put them, one by one, in the breast of his inner coat,
counted out the money for them, and deliberately left the
shop. "There is nothing more to do," said he, glancing
upward at the moon, "until to-morrow. I can't
sleep."
It was not a reckless manner, the manner in which
he said these words aloud under the fast-sailing clouds,
nor was it more expressive of negligence than defiance.
It was the settled manner of a tired man, who had
wandered and struggled and got lost, but who at length
struck into his road and saw its end.
Long ago, when he had been famous among his
earliest competitors as a youth of great promise, be had
followed his father to the grave. His mother had died,
years before. These solemn words, which had been read at
his father's grave, arose in his mind as he went down the
dark streets, among the heavy shadows, with the moon and
the clouds sailing on high above him. "I am the
resurrection and the life, saith the Lord: he that
believeth in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live:
and whosoever liveth and believeth in me, shall never
die."
In a city dominated by the axe, alone at night,
with natural sorrow rising in him for the sixty-three who
had been that day put to death, and for to-morrow's
victims then awaiting their doom in the prisons, and
still of to-morrow's and to-morrow's, the chain of
association that brought the words home, like a rusty old
ship's anchor from the deep, might have been easily
found. He did not seek it, but repeated them and went
on.
With a solemn interest in the lighted windows where
the people were going to rest, forgetful through a few
calm hours of the horrors surrounding them; in the towers
of the churches, where no prayers were said, for the
popular revulsion had even travelled that length of
self-destruction from years of priestly impostors,
plunderers, and profligates; in the distant
burial-places, reserved, as they wrote upon the gates,
for Eternal Sleep; in the abounding gaols; and in the
streets along which the sixties rolled to a death which
had become so common and material, that no sorrowful
story of a haunting Spirit ever arose among the people
out of all the working of the Guillotine; with a solemn
interest in the whole life and death of the city settling
down to its short nightly pause in fury; Sydney Carton
crossed the Seine again for the lighter streets.
Few coaches were abroad, for riders in coaches were
liable to be suspected, and gentility hid its head in red
nightcaps, and put on heavy shoes, and trudged. But, the
theatres were all well filled, and the people poured
cheerfully out as he passed, and went chatting home. At
one of the theatre doors, there was a little girl with a
mother, looking for a way across the street through the
mud. He carried the child over, and before, the timid arm
was loosed from his neck asked her for a kiss.
"I am the resurrection and the life, saith the
Lord: he that believeth in me, though he were dead, yet
shall he live: and whosoever liveth and believeth in me,
shall never die."
Now, that the streets were quiet, and the night
wore on, the words were in the echoes of his feet, and
were in the air. Perfectly calm and steady, he sometimes
repeated them to himself as he walked; but, he heard them
always.
The night wore out, and, as he stood upon the
bridge listening to the water as it splashed the
river-walls of the Island of Paris, where the picturesque
confusion of houses and cathedral shone bright in the
light of the moon, the day came coldly, looking like a
dead face out of the sky. Then, the night, with the moon
and the stars, turned pale and died, and for a little
while it seemed as if Creation were delivered over to
Death's dominion.
But, the glorious sun, rising, seemed to strike
those words, that burden of the night, straight and warm
to his heart in its long bright rays. And looking along
them, with reverently shaded eyes, a bridge of light
appeared to span the air between him and the sun, while
the river sparkled under it.
The strong tide, so swift, so deep, and certain,
was like a congenial friend, in the morning stillness. He
walked by the stream, far from the houses, and in the
light and warmth of the sun fell asleep on the bank. When
he awoke and was afoot again, he lingered there yet a
little longer, watching an eddy that turned and turned
purposeless, until the stream absorbed it, and carried it
on to the sea.--"Like me."
A trading-boat, with a sail of the softened colour
of a dead leaf, then glided into his view, floated by
him, and died away. As its silent track in the water
disappeared, the prayer that had broken up out of his
heart for a merciful consideration of all his poor
blindnesses and errors, ended in the words, "I am the
resurrection and the life."
Mr. Lorry was already out when he got back, and it
was easy to surmise where the good old man was gone.
Sydney Carton drank nothing but a tittle coffee, ate some
bread, and, having washed and changed to refresh himself,
went out to the place of trial.
The court was all astir and a-buzz, when the black
sheep--whom many fell away from in dread--pressed him
into an obscure corner among the crowd. Mr. Lorry was
there, and Doctor Manette was there. She was there,
sitting beside her father.
When her husband was brought in, she turned a look
upon him, so sustaining, so encouraging, so full of
admiring love and pitying tenderness, yet so courageous
for his sake, that it called the healthy blood into his
face, brightened his glance, and animated his heart. If
there had been any eyes to notice the influence of her
look, on Sydney Carton, it would have been seen to be the
same influence exactly.
Before that unjust Tribunal, there was little or no
order of procedure, ensuring to any accused person any
reasonable hearing. There could have been no such
Revolution, if all laws, forms, and ceremonies, had not
first been so monstrously abused, that the suicidal
vengeance of the Revolution was to scatter them all to
the winds.
Every eye was turned to the jury. The same
determined patriots and good republicans as yesterday and
the day before, and to-morrow and the day after. Eager
and prominent among them, one man with a craving face,
and his fingers perpetually hovering about his lips,
whose appearance gave great satisfaction to the
spectators. A life- thirsting, cannibal-looking,
bloody-minded juryman, the Jacques Three of St. Antoine.
The whole jury, as a jury of dogs empannelled to try the
deer.
Every eye then turned to the five judges and the
public prosecutor. No favourable leaning in that quarter
to-day. A fell, uncompromising, murderous
business-meaning there. Every eye then sought some other
eye in the crowd, and gleamed at it approvingly; and
heads nodded at one another, before bending forward with
a strained attention.
Charles Evremonde, called Darnay. Released
yesterday. Reaccused and retaken yesterday. Indictment
delivered to him last night. Suspected and Denounced
enemy of the Republic, Aristocrat, one of a family of
tyrants, one of a race proscribed, for that they had used
their abolished privileges to the infamous oppression of
the people. Charles Evremonde, called Darnay, in right of
such proscription, absolutely Dead in Law.
To this effect, in as few or fewer words, the
Public Prosecutor.
The President asked, was the Accused openly
denounced or secretly?
"Openly, President."
"By whom?"
"Three voices. Ernest Defarge, wine-vendor of St.
Antoine."
"Good."
"Therese Defarge, his wife."
"Good."
"Alexandre Manette, physician."
A great uproar took place in the court, and in the
midst of it, Doctor Manette was seen, pale and trembling,
standing where he had been seated.
"President, I indignantly protest to you that this
is a forgery and a fraud. You know the accused to be the
husband of my daughter. My daughter, and those dear to
her, are far dearer to me than my life. Who and where is
the false conspirator who says that I denounce the
husband of my child!"
"Citizen Manette, be tranquil. To fail in
submission to the authority of the Tribunal would be to
put yourself out of Law. As to what is dearer to you than
life, nothing can be so dear to a good citizen as the
Republic."
Loud acclamations hailed this rebuke. The President
rang his bell, and with warmth resumed.
"If the Republic should demand of you the sacrifice
of your child herself, you would have no duty but to
sacrifice her. Listen to what is to follow. In the
meanwhile, be silent!"
Frantic acclamations were again raised. Doctor
Manette sat down, with his eyes looking around, and his
lips trembling; his daughter drew closer to him. The
craving man on the jury rubbed his hands together, and
restored the usual hand to his mouth.
Defarge was produced, when the court was quiet
enough to admit of his being heard, and rapidly expounded
the story of the imprisonment, and of his having been a
mere boy in the Doctor's service, and of the release, and
of the state of the prisoner when released and delivered
to him. This short examination followed, for the court
was quick with its work.
"You did good service at the taking of the
Bastille, citizen?"
"I believe so."
Here, an excited woman screeched from the crowd:
"You were one of the best patriots there. Why not say so?
You were a cannoneer that day there, and you were among
the first to enter the accursed fortress when it fell.
Patriots, I speak the truth!"
It was The Vengeance who, amidst the warm
commendations of the audience, thus assisted the
proceedings. The President rang his bell; but, The
Vengeance, warming with encouragement, shrieked, "I defy
that bell!" wherein she was likewise much
commended.
"Inform the Tribunal of what you did that day
within the Bastille, citizen."
"I knew," said Defarge, looking down at his wife,
who stood at the bottom of the steps on which he was
raised, looking steadily up at him; "I knew that this
prisoner, of whom I speak, had been confined in a cell
known as One Hundred and Five, North Tower. I knew it
from himself. He knew himself by no other name than One
Hundred and Five, North Tower, when he made shoes under
my care. As I serve my gun that day, I resolve, when the
place shall fall, to examine that cell. It falls. I mount
to the cell, with a fellow-citizen who is one of the
Jury, directed by a gaoler. I examine it, very closely.
In a hole in the chimney, where a stone has been worked
out and replaced, I find a written paper. This is that
written paper. I have made it my business to examine some
specimens of the writing of Doctor Manette. This is the
writing of Doctor Manette. I confide this paper, in the
writing of Doctor Manette, to the hands of the
President."
"Let it be read."
In a dead silence and stillness--the prisoner under
trial looking lovingly at his wife, his wife only looking
from him to look with solicitude at her father, Doctor
Manette keeping his eyes fixed on the reader, Madame
Defarge never taking hers from the prisoner, Defarge
never taking his from his feasting wife, and all the
other eyes there intent upon the Doctor, who saw none of
them--the paper was read, as follows.
X
The Substance of the Shadow
"I, Alexandre Manette, unfortunate physician,
native of Beauvais, and afterwards resident in Paris,
write this melancholy paper in my doleful cell in the
Bastille, during the last month of the year, 1767. I
write it at stolen intervals, under every difficulty. I
design to secrete it in the wall of the chimney, where I
have slowly and laboriously made a place of concealment
for it. Some pitying hand may find it there, when I and
my sorrows are dust.
"These words are formed by the rusty iron point
with which I write with difficulty in scrapings of soot
and charcoal from the chimney, mixed with blood, in the
last month of the tenth year of my captivity. Hope has
quite departed from my breast. I know from terrible
warnings I have noted in myself that my reason will not
long remain unimpaired, but I solemnly declare that I am
at this time in the possession of my right mind--that my
memory is exact and circumstantial--and that I write the
truth as I shall answer for these my last recorded words,
whether they be ever read by men or not, at the Eternal
Judgment-seat.
"One cloudy moonlight night, in the third week of
December (I think the twenty-second of the month) in the
year 1757, I was walking on a retired part of the quay by
the Seine for the refreshment of the frosty air, at an
hour's distance from my place of residence in the Street
of the School of Medicine, when a carriage came along
behind me, driven very fast. As I stood aside to let that
carriage pass, apprehensive that it might otherwise run
me down, a head was put out at the window, and a voice
called to the driver to stop.
"The carriage stopped as soon as the driver could
rein in his horses, and the same voice called to me by my
name. I answered. The carriage was then so far in advance
of me that two gentlemen had time to open the door and
alight before I came up with it.
I observed that they were both wrapped in cloaks,
and appeared to conceal themselves. As they stood side by
side near the carriage door, I also observed that they
both looked of about my own age, or rather younger, and
that they were greatly alike, in stature, manner, voice,
and (as far as I could see) face too.
"`You are Doctor Manette?' said one.
"I am."
"`Doctor Manette, formerly of Beauvais,' said the
other; `the young physician, originally an expert
surgeon, who within the last year or two has made a
rising reputation in Paris?'
"`Gentlemen,' I returned, `I am that Doctor Manette
of whom you speak so graciously.'
"`We have been to your residence,' said the first,
`and not being so fortunate as to find you there, and
being informed that you were probably walking in this
direction, we followed, in the hope of overtaking you.
Will you please to enter the carriage?'
"The manner of both was imperious, and they both
moved, as these words were spoken, so as to place me
between themselves and the carriage door. They were
armed. I was not.
"`Gentlemen,' said I, `pardon me; but I usually
inquire who does me the honour to seek my assistance, and
what is the nature of the case to which I am
summoned.'
"The reply to this was made by him who had spoken
second. 'Doctor, your clients are people of condition. As
to the nature of the case, our confidence in your skill
assures us that you will ascertain it for yourself better
than we can describe it. Enough. Will you please to enter
the carriage?'
"I could do nothing but comply, and I entered it in
silence. They both entered after me--the last springing
in, after putting up the steps. The carriage turned
about, and drove on at its former speed.
"I repeat this conversation exactly as it occurred.
I have no doubt that it is, word for word, the same. I
describe everything exactly as it took place,
constraining my mind not to wander from the task. Where I
make the broken marks that follow here, I leave off for
the time, and put my paper in its hiding-place.
* * * *
"The carriage left the streets behind, passed the
North Barrier, and emerged upon the country road. At
two-thirds of a league from the Barrier--I did not
estimate the distance at that time, but afterwards when I
traversed it--it struck out of the main avenue, and
presently stopped at a solitary house, We all three
alighted, and walked, by a damp soft footpath in a garden
where a neglected fountain had overflowed, to the door of
the house. It was not opened immediately, in answer to
the ringing of the bell, and one of my two conductors
struck the man who opened it, with his heavy riding
glove, across the face.
"There was nothing in this action to attract my
particular attention, for I had seen common people struck
more commonly than dogs. But, the other of the two, being
angry likewise, struck the man in like manner with his
arm; the look and bearing of the brothers were then so
exactly alike, that I then first perceived them to be
twin brothers.
"From the time of our alighting at the outer gate
(which we found locked, and which one of the brothers had
opened to admit us, and had relocked), I had heard cries
proceeding from an upper chamber. I was conducted to this
chamber straight, the cries growing louder as we ascended
the stairs, and I found a patient in a high fever of the
brain, lying on a bed.
"The patient was a woman of great beauty, and
young; assuredly not much past twenty. Her hair was torn
and ragged, and her arms were bound to her sides with
sashes and handkerchiefs. I noticed that these bonds were
all portions of a gentleman's dress. On one of them,
which was a fringed scarf for a dress of ceremony, I saw
the armorial bearings of a Noble, and the letter
E.
"I saw this, within the first minute of my
contemplation of the patient; for, in her restless
strivings she had turned over on her face on the edge of
the bed, had drawn the end of the scarf into her mouth,
and was in danger of suffocation. My first act was to put
out my hand to relieve her breathing; and in moving the
scarf aside, the embroidery in the corner caught my
sight.
"I turned her gently over, placed my hands upon her
breast to calm her and keep her down, and looked into her
face. Her eyes were dilated and wild, and she constantly
uttered piercing shrieks, and repeated the words, `My
husband, my father, and my brother!' and then counted up
to twelve, and said, `Hush!' For an instant, and no more,
she would pause to listen, and then the piercing shrieks
would begin again, and she would repeat the cry, `My
husband, my father, and my brother!' and would count up
to twelve, and say, `Hush!' There was no variation in the
order, or the manner. There was no cessation, but the
regular moment's pause, in the utterance of these
sounds.
"`How long,' I asked, `has this lasted?'
"To distinguish the brothers, I will call them the
elder and the younger; by the elder, I mean him who
exercised the most authority. It was the elder who
replied, `Since about this hour last night.'
"`She has a husband, a father, and a
brother?'
"`A brother.'
"`I do not address her brother?'
"He answered with great contempt, `No.'
"`She has some recent association with the number
twelve?'
"The younger brother impatiently rejoined, `With
twelve o'clock?'
"`See, gentlemen,' said I, still keeping my hands
upon her breast, 'how useless I am, as you have brought
me! If I had known what I was coming to see, I could have
come provided. As it is, time must be lost. There are no
medicines to be obtained in this lonely place.'
"The elder brother looked to the younger, who said
haughtily, `There is a case of medicines here;' and
brought it from a closet, and put it on the table.
* * * *
"I opened some of the bottles, smelt them, and put
the stoppers to my lips. If I had wanted to use anything
save narcotic medicines that were poisons in themselves,
I would not have administered any of those.
"`Do you doubt them?' asked the younger
brother.
"`You see, monsieur, I am going to use them,' I
replied, and said no more.
"I made the patient swallow, with great difficulty,
and after many efforts, the dose that I desired to give.
As I intended to repeat it after a while, and as it was
necessary to watch its influence, I then sat down by the
side of the bed. There was a timid and suppressed woman
in attendance (wife of the man down-stairs), who had
retreated into a corner. The house was damp and decayed,
indifferently furnished--evidently, recently occupied and
temporarily used. Some thick old hangings had been nailed
up before the windows, to deaden the sound of the
shrieks. They continued to be uttered in their regular
succession, with the cry, `My husband, my father, and my
brother!' the counting up to twelve, and `Hush!' The
frenzy was so violent, that I had not unfastened the
bandages restraining the arms; but, I had looked to them,
to see that they were not painful. The only spark of
encouragement in the case, was, that my hand upon the
sufferer's breast had this much soothing influence, that
for minutes at a time it tranquillised the figure. It had
no effect upon the cries; no pendulum could be more
regular.
"For the reason that my hand had this effect (I
assume), I had sat by the side of the bed for half an
hour, with the two brothers looking on, before the elder
said:
"`There is another patient.'
"I was startled, and asked, `Is it a pressing
case?'
"`You had better see,' he carelessly answered; and
took up a light.
* * * *
"The other patient lay in a back room across a
second staircase, which was a species of loft over a
stable. There was a low plastered ceiling to a part of
it; the rest was open, to the ridge of the tiled roof,
and there were beams across. Hay and straw were stored in
that portion of the place, fagots for firing, and a heap
of apples in sand. I had to pass through that part, to
get at the other. My memory is circumstantial and
unshaken. I try it with these details, and I see them
all, in this my cell in the Bastille, near the close of
the tenth year of my captivity, as I saw them all that
night.
"On some hay on the ground, with a cushion thrown
under his head, lay a handsome peasant boy--a boy of not
more than seventeen at the most. He lay on his back, with
his teeth set, his right hand clenched on his breast, and
his glaring eyes looking straight upward. I could not see
where his wound was, as I kneeled on one knee over him;
but, I could see that he was dying of a wound from a
sharp point.
"`I am a doctor, my poor fellow,' said I. `Let me
examine it.'
"`I do not want it examined,' he answered; `let it
be.'
"It was under his hand, and I soothed him to let me
move his hand away. The wound was a sword-thrust,
received from twenty to twenty- four hours before, but no
skill could have saved him if it had been looked to
without delay. He was then dying fast. As I turned my
eyes to the elder brother, I saw him looking down at this
handsome boy whose life was ebbing out, as if he were a
wounded bird, or hare, or rabbit; not at all as if he
were a fellow-creature.
"`How has this been done, monsieur?' said I.
"`A crazed young common dog! A serf! Forced my
brother to draw upon him, and has fallen by my brother's
sword--like a gentleman.'
"There was no touch of pity, sorrow, or kindred
humanity, in this answer. The speaker seemed to
acknowledge that it was inconvenient to have that
different order of creature dying there, and that it
would have been better if he had died in the usual
obscure routine of his vermin kind. He was quite
incapable of any compassionate feeling about the boy, or
about his fate.
"The boy's eyes had slowly moved to him as he had
spoken, and they now slowly moved to me.
"`Doctor, they are very proud, these Nobles; but we
common dogs are proud too, sometimes. They plunder us,
outrage us, beat us, kill us; but we have a little pride
left, sometimes. She--have you seen her, Doctor?'
"The shrieks and the cries were audible there,
though subdued by the distance. He referred to them, as
if she were lying in our presence.
"I said, `I have seen her.'
"`She is my sister, Doctor. They have had their
shameful rights, these Nobles, in the modesty and virtue
of our sisters, many years, but we have had good girls
among us. I know it, and have heard my father say so. She
was a good girl. She was betrothed to a good young man,
too: a tenant of his. We were all tenants of his--that
man's who stands there. The other is his brother, the
worst of a bad race.'
"It was with the greatest difficulty that the boy
gathered bodily force to speak; but, his spirit spoke
with a dreadful emphasis.
"`We were so robbed by that man who stands there,
as an we common dogs are by those superior Beings--taxed
by him without mercy, obliged to work for him without
pay, obliged to grind our corn at his mill, obliged to
feed scores of his tame birds on our wretched crops, and
forbidden for our lives to keep a single tame bird of our
own, pillaged and plundered to that degree that when we
chanced to have a bit of meat, we ate it in fear, with
the door barred and the shutters closed, that his people
should not see it and take it from us--I say, we were so
robbed, and hunted, and were made so poor, that our
father told us it was a dreadful thing to bring a child
into the world, and that what we should most pray for,
was, that our women might be barren and our miserable
race die out!'
"I had never before seen the sense of being
oppressed, bursting forth like a fire. I had supposed
that it must be latent in the people somewhere; but, I
had never seen it break out, until I saw it in the dying
boy.
"`Nevertheless, Doctor, my sister married. He was
ailing at that time, poor fellow, and she married her
lover, that she might tend and comfort him in our
cottage--our dog-hut, as that man would call it. She had
not been married many weeks, when that man's brother saw
her and admired her, and asked that man to lend her to
him--for what are husbands among us! He was willing
enough, but my sister was good and virtuous, and hated
his brother with a hatred as strong as mine. What did the
two then, to persuade her husband to use his influence
with her, to make her willing?'
"The boy's eyes, which had been fixed on mine,
slowly turned to the looker-on, and I saw in the two
faces that all he said was true. The two opposing kinds
of pride confronting one another, I can see, even in this
Bastille; the gentleman's, all negligent indifference;
the peasants, all trodden-down sentiment, and passionate
revenge.
"`You know, Doctor, that it is among the Rights of
these Nobles to harness us common dogs to carts, and
drive us. They so harnessed him and drove him. You know
that it is among their Rights to keep us in their grounds
all night, quieting the frogs, in order that their noble
sleep may not be disturbed. They kept him out in the
unwholesome mists at night, and ordered him back into his
harness in the day. But he was not persuaded. No! Taken
out of harness one day at noon, to feed--if he could find
food--he sobbed twelve times, once for every stroke of
the bell, and died on her bosom.'
"Nothing human could have held life in the boy but
his determination to tell all his wrong. He forced back
the gathering shadows of death, as he forced his clenched
right hand to remain clenched, and to cover his
wound.
"`Then, with that man's permission and even with
his aid, his brother took her away; in spite of what I
know she must have told his brother--and what that is,
will not be long unknown to you, Doctor, if it is
now--his brother took her away--for his pleasure and
diversion, for a little while. I saw her pass me on the
road. When I took the tidings home, our father's heart
burst; he never spoke one of the words that fined it. I
took my young sister (for I have another) to a place
beyond the reach of this man, and where, at least, she
will never be HIS vassal. Then, I tracked the brother
here, and last night climbed in--a common dog, but sword
in hand.--Where is the loft window? It was somewhere
here?'
"The room was darkening to his sight; the world was
narrowing around him. I glanced about me, and saw that
the hay and straw were trampled over the floor, as if
there had been a struggle.
"`She heard me, and ran in. I told her not to come
near us till he was dead. He came in and first tossed me
some pieces of money; then struck at me with a whip. But
I, though a common dog, so struck at him as to make him
draw. Let him break into as many pieces as he will, the
sword that he stained with my common blood; he drew to
defend himself--thrust at me with all his skill for his
life.'
"My glance had fallen, but a few moments before, on
the fragments of a broken sword, lying among the hay.
That weapon was a gentleman's. In another place, lay an
old sword that seemed to have been a soldier's.
"`Now, lift me up, Doctor; lift me up. Where is
he?'
"`He is not here,' I said, supporting the boy, and
thinking that he referred to the brother.
"`He! Proud as these nobles are, he is afraid to
see me. Where is the man who was here? turn my face to
him.'
"I did so, raising the boy's head against my knee.
But, invested for the moment with extraordinary power, he
raised himself completely: obliging me to rise too, or I
could not have still supported him.
"`Marquis,' said the boy, turned to him with his
eyes opened wide, and his right hand raised, `in the days
when all these things are to be answered for, I summon
you and yours, to the last of your bad race, to answer
for them. I mark this cross of blood upon you, as a sign
that I do it. In the days when all these things are to be
answered for, I summon your brother, the worst of the bad
race, to answer for them separately. I mark this cross of
blood upon him, as a sign that I do it.'
"Twice, he put his hand to the wound in his breast,
and with his forefinger drew a cross in the air. He stood
for an instant with the finger yet raised, and as it
dropped, he dropped with it, and I laid him down
dead.
* * * *
"When I returned to the bedside of the young woman,
I found her raving in precisely the same order of
continuity. I knew that this might last for many hours,
and that it would probably end in the silence of the
grave.
"I repeated the medicines I had given her, and I
sat at the side of the bed until the night was far
advanced. She never abated the piercing quality of her
shrieks, never stumbled in the distinctness or the order
of her words. They were always `My husband, my father,
and my brother! One, two, three, four, five, six, seven,
eight, nine, ten, eleven, twelve. Hush!'
"This lasted twenty-six hours from the time when I
first saw her. I had come and gone twice, and was again
sitting by her, when she began to falter. I did what
little could be done to assist that opportunity, and
by-and-bye she sank into a lethargy, and lay like the
dead.
"It was as if the wind and rain had lulled at last,
after a long and fearful storm. I released her arms, and
called the woman to assist me to compose her figure and
the dress she had tom. It was then that I knew her
condition to be that of one in whom the first
expectations of being a mother have arisen; and it was
then that I lost the little hope I had had of her.
"`Is she dead?' asked the Marquis, whom I will
still describe as the elder brother, coming booted into
the room from his horse.
"`Not dead,' said I; `but like to die.'
"`What strength there is in these common bodies!'
he said, looking down at her with some curiosity.
"`There is prodigious strength,' I answered him,
`in sorrow and despair.'
"He first laughed at my words, and then frowned at
them. He moved a chair with his foot near to mine,
ordered the woman away, and said in a subdued
voice,
"`Doctor, finding my brother in this difficulty
with these hinds, I recommended that your aid should be
invited. Your reputation is high, and, as a young man
with your fortune to make, you are probably mindful of
your interest. The things that you see here, are things
to be seen, and not spoken of.'
"I listened to the patient's breathing, and avoided
answering.
"`Do you honour me with your attention,
Doctor?'
"`Monsieur,' said I, `in my profession, the
communications of patients are always received in
confidence.' I was guarded in my answer, for I was
troubled in my mind with what I had heard and
seen.
"Her breathing was so difficult to trace, that I
carefully tried the pulse and the heart. There was life,
and no more. Looking round as I resumed my seat, I found
both the brothers intent upon me.
* * * *
"I write with so much difficulty, the cold is so
severe, I am so fearful of being detected and consigned
to an underground cell and total darkness, that I must
abridge this narrative. There is no confusion or failure
in my memory; it can recall, and could detail, every word
that was ever spoken between me and those
brothers.
"She lingered for a week. Towards the last, I could
understand some few syllables that she said to me, by
placing my ear close to her lips. She asked me where she
was, and I told her; who I was, and I told her. It was in
vain that I asked her for her family name. She faintly
shook her head upon the pillow, and kept her secret, as
the boy had done.
"I had no opportunity of asking her any question,
until I had told the brothers she was sinking fast, and
could not live another day. Until then, though no one was
ever presented to her consciousness save the woman and
myself, one or other of them had always jealously sat
behind the curtain at the head of the bed when I was
there. But when it came to that, they seemed careless
what communication I might hold with her; as if--the
thought passed through my mind--I were dying too.
"I always observed that their pride bitterly
resented the younger brother's (as I call him) having
crossed swords with a peasant, and that peasant a boy.
The only consideration that appeared to affect the mind
of either of them was the consideration that this was
highly degrading to the family, and was ridiculous. As
often as I caught the younger brother's eyes, their
expression reminded me that he disliked me deeply, for
knowing what I knew from the boy. He was smoother and
more polite to me than the elder; but I saw this. I also
saw that I was an incumbrance in the mind of the elder,
too.
"My patient died, two hours before midnight--at a
time, by my watch, answering almost to the minute when I
had first seen her. I was alone with her, when her
forlorn young head drooped gently on one side, and all
her earthly wrongs and sorrows ended.
"The brothers were waiting in a room down-stairs,
impatient to ride away. I had heard them, alone at the
bedside, striking their boots with their riding-whips,
and loitering up and down.
"`At last she is dead?' said the elder, when I went
in.
"'She is dead,' said I.
"`I congratulate you, my brother,'were his words as
he turned round.
"He had before offered me money, which I had
postponed taking. He now gave me a rouleau of gold. I
took it from his hand, but laid it on the table. I had
considered the question, and had resolved to accept
nothing.
"`Pray excuse me,' said I. `Under the
circumstances, no.'
"They exchanged looks, but bent their heads to me
as I bent mine to them, and we parted without another
word on either side.
* * * *
"I am weary, weary, weary-worn down by misery. I
cannot read what I have written with this gaunt
hand.
"Early in the morning, the rouleau of gold was left
at my door in a little box, with my name on the outside.
From the first, I had anxiously considered what I ought
to do. I decided, that day, to write privately to the
Minister, stating the nature of the two cases to which I
had been summoned, and the place to which I had gone: in
effect, stating all the circumstances. I knew what Court
influence was, and what the immunities of the Nobles
were, and I expected that the matter would never be heard
of; but, I wished to relieve my own mind. I had kept the
matter a profound secret, even from my wife; and this,
too, I resolved to state in my letter. I had no
apprehension whatever of my real danger; but I was
conscious that there might be danger for others, if
others were compromised by possessing the knowledge that
I possessed.
"I was much engaged that day, and could not
complete my letter that night. I rose long before my
usual time next morning to finish it. It was the last day
of the year. The letter was lying before me just
completed, when I was told that a lady waited, who wished
to see me.
* * * *
"I am growing more and more unequal to the task I
have set myself. It is so cold, so dark, my senses are so
benumbed, and the gloom upon me is so dreadful.
"The lady was young, engaging, and handsome, but
not marked for long life. She was in great agitation. She
presented herself to me as the wife of the Marquis St.
Evremonde. I connected the title by which the boy had
addressed the elder brother, with the initial letter
embroidered on the scarf, and had no difficulty in
arriving at the conclusion that I had seen that nobleman
very lately.
"My memory is still accurate, but I cannot write
the words of our conversation. I suspect that I am
watched more closely than I was, and I know not at what
times I may be watched. She had in part suspected, and in
part discovered, the main facts of the cruel story, of
her husband's share in it, and my being resorted to. She
did not know that the girl was dead. Her hope had been,
she said in great distress, to show her, in secret, a
woman's sympathy. Her hope had been to avert the wrath of
Heaven from a House that had long been hateful to the
suffering many.
"She had reasons for believing that there was a
young sister living, and her greatest desire was, to help
that sister. I could tell her nothing but that there was
such a sister; beyond that, I knew nothing. Her
inducement to come to me, relying on my confidence, had
been the hope that I could tell her the name and place of
abode. Whereas, to this wretched hour I am ignorant of
both.
* * * *
"These scraps of paper fail me. One was taken from
me, with a warning, yesterday. I must finish my record
to-day.
"She was a good, compassionate lady, and not happy
in her marriage. How could she be! The brother distrusted
and disliked her, and his influence was all opposed to
her; she stood in dread of him, and in dread of her
husband too. When I handed her down to the door, there
was a child, a pretty boy from two to three years old, in
her carriage.
"`For his sake, Doctor,' she said, pointing to him
in tears, `I would do all I can to make what poor amends
I can. He will never prosper in his inheritance
otherwise. I have a presentiment that if no other
innocent atonement is made for this, it will one day be
required of him. What I have left to call my own--it is
little beyond the worth of a few jewels--I will make it
the first charge of his life to bestow, with the
compassion and lamenting of his dead mother, on this
injured family, if the sister can be discovered.'
"She kissed the boy, and said, caressing him, `It
is for thine own dear sake. Thou wilt be faithful, little
Charles?' The child answered her bravely, `Yes!' I kissed
her hand, and she took him in her arms, and went away
caressing him. I never saw her more.
"As she had mentioned her husband's name in the
faith that I knew it, I added no mention of it to my
letter. I sealed my letter, and, not trusting it out of
my own hands, delivered it myself that day.
"That night, the last night of the year, towards
nine o'clock, a man in a black dress rang at my gate,
demanded to see me, and softly followed my servant,
Ernest Defarge, a youth, up-stairs. When my servant came
into the room where I sat with my wife--O my wife,
beloved of my heart! My fair young English wife!--we saw
the man, who was supposed to be at the gate, standing
silent behind him.
"An urgent case in the Rue St. Honore, he said. It
would not detain me, he had a coach in waiting.
"It brought me here, it brought me to my grave.
When I was clear of the house, a black muffler was drawn
tightly over my mouth from behind, and my arms were
pinioned. The two brothers crossed the road from a dark
corner, and identified me with a single gesture. The
Marquis took from his pocket the letter I had written,
showed it me, burnt it in the light of a lantern that was
held, and extinguished the ashes with his foot. Not a
word was spoken. I was brought here, I was brought to my
living grave.
"If it had pleased GOD to put it in the hard heart
of either of the brothers, in all these frightful years,
to grant me any tidings of my dearest wife--so much as to
let me know by a word whether alive or dead--I might have
thought that He had not quite abandoned them. But, now I
believe that the mark of the red cross is fatal to them,
and that they have no part in His mercies. And them and
their descendants, to the last of their race, I,
Alexandre Manette, unhappy prisoner, do this last night
of the year 1767, in my unbearable agony, denounce to the
times when all these things shall be answered for. I
denounce them to Heaven and to earth."
A terrible sound arose when the reading of this
document was done. A sound of craving and eagerness that
had nothing articulate in it but blood. The narrative
called up the most revengeful passions of the time, and
there was not a head in the nation but must have dropped
before it.
Little need, in presence of that tribunal and that
auditory, to show how the Defarges had not made the paper
public, with the other captured Bastille memorials borne
in procession, and had kept it, biding their time. Little
need to show that this detested family name had long been
anathematised by Saint Antoine, and was wrought into the
fatal register. The man never trod ground whose virtues
and services would have sustained him in that place that
day, against such denunciation.
And all the worse for the doomed man, that the
denouncer was a well-known citizen, his own attached
friend, the father of his wife. One of the frenzied
aspirations of the populace was, for imitations of the
questionable public virtues of antiquity, and for
sacrifices and self-immolations on the people's altar.
Therefore when the President said (else had his own head
quivered on his shoulders), that the good physician of
the Republic would deserve better still of the Republic
by rooting out an obnoxious family of Aristocrats, and
would doubtless feel a sacred glow and joy in making his
daughter a widow and her child an orphan, there was wild
excitement, patriotic fervour, not a touch of human
sympathy.
"Much influence around him, has that Doctor?"
murmured Madame Defarge, smiling to The Vengeance. "Save
him now, my Doctor, save him!"
At every juryman's vote, there was a roar. Another
and another. Roar and roar.
Unanimously voted. At heart and by descent an
Aristocrat, an enemy of the Republic, a notorious
oppressor of the People. Back to the Conciergerie, and
Death within four-and-twenty hours!
XI
Dusk
The wretched wife of the innocent man thus doomed
to die, fell under the sentence, as if she had been
mortally stricken. But, she uttered no sound; and so
strong was the voice within her, representing that it was
she of all the world who must uphold him in his misery
and not augment it, that it quickly raised her, even from
that shock.
The Judges having to take part in a public
demonstration out of doors, the Tribunal adjourned. The
quick noise and movement of the court's emptying itself
by many passages had not ceased, when Lucie stood
stretching out her arms towards her husband, with nothing
in her face but love and consolation.
"If I might touch him! If I might embrace him once!
O, good citizens, if you would have so much compassion
for us!"
There was but a gaoler left, along with two of the
four men who had taken him last night, and Barsad. The
people had all poured out to the show in the streets.
Barsad proposed to the rest, "Let her embrace him then;
it is but a moment." It was silently acquiesced in, and
they passed her over the seats in the hall to a raised
place, where he, by leaning over the dock, could fold her
in his arms.
"Farewell, dear darling of my soul. My parting
blessing on my love. We shall meet again, where the weary
are at rest!"
They were her husband's words, as he held her to
his bosom.
"I can bear it, dear Charles. I am supported from
above: don't suffer for me. A parting blessing for our
chad."
"I send it to her by you. I kiss her by you. I say
farewell to her by you."
"My husband. No! A moment!" He was tearing himself
apart from her. "We shall not be separated long. I feel
that this will break my heart by-and-bye; but I will do
my duty while I can, and when I leave her, God will raise
up friends for her, as He did for me."
Her father had followed her, and would have fallen
on his knees to both of them, but that Darnay put out a
hand and seized him, crying:
"No, no! What have you done, what have you done,
that you should kneel to us! We know now, what a struggle
you made of old. We know, now what you underwent when you
suspected my descent, and when you knew it. We know now,
the natural antipathy you strove against, and conquered,
for her dear sake. We thank you with all our hearts, and
all our love and duty. Heaven be with you!"
Her father's only answer was to draw his hands
through his white hair, and wring them with a shriek of
anguish.
"It could not be otherwise," said the prisoner.
"All things have worked together as they have fallen out.
it was the always-vain endeavour to discharge my poor
mother's trust that first brought my fatal presence near
you. Good could never come of such evil, a happier end
was not in nature to so unhappy a beginning. Be
comforted, and forgive me. Heaven bless you!"
As he was drawn away, his wife released him, and
stood looking after him with her hands touching one
another in the attitude of prayer, and with a radiant
look upon her face, in which there was even a comforting
smile. As he went out at the prisoners' door, she turned,
laid her head lovingly on her father's breast, tried to
speak to him, and fell at his feet.
Then, issuing from the obscure corner from which he
had never moved, Sydney Carton came and took her up. Only
her father and Mr. Lorry were with her. His arm trembled
as it raised her, and supported her head. Yet, there was
an air about him that was not all of pity--that had a
flush of pride in it.
"Shall I take her to a coach? I shall never feel
her weight."
He carried her lightly to the door, and laid her
tenderly down in a coach. Her father and their old friend
got into it, and he took his seat beside the
driver.
When they arrived at the gateway where he had
paused in the dark not many hours before, to picture to
himself on which of the rough stones of the street her
feet had trodden, he lifted her again, and carried her up
the staircase to their rooms. There, he laid her down on
a couch, where her child and Miss Pross wept over
her.
"Don't recall her to herself," he said, softly, to
the latter, "she is better so. Don't revive her to
consciousness, while she only faints."
"Oh, Carton, Carton, dear Carton!" cried little
Lucie, springing up and throwing her arms passionately
round him, in a burst of grief. "Now that you have come,
I think you will do something to help mamma, something to
save papa! O, look at her, dear Carton! Can you, of all
the people who love her, bear to see her so?"
He bent over the child, and laid her blooming cheek
against his face. He put her gently from him, and looked
at her unconscious mother.
"Before I go," he said, and paused--"I may kiss
her?"
It was remembered afterwards that when he bent down
and touched her face with his lips, he murmured some
words. The child, who was nearest to him, told them
afterwards, and told her grandchildren when she was a
handsome old lady, that she heard him say, "A life you
love."
When he had gone out into the next room, he turned
suddenly on Mr. Lorry and her father, who were following,
and said to the latter:
"You had great influence but yesterday, Doctor
Manette; let it at least be tried. These judges, and all
the men in power, are very friendly to you, and very
recognisant of your services; are they not?"
"Nothing connected with Charles was concealed from
me. I had the strongest assurances that I should save
him; and I did." He returned the answer in great trouble,
and very slowly.
"Try them again. The hours between this and
to-morrow afternoon are few and short, but try."
"I intend to try. I will not rest a moment."
"That's well. I have known such energy as yours do
great things before now--though never," he added, with a
smile and a sigh together, "such great things as this.
But try! Of little worth as life is when we misuse it, it
is worth that effort. It would cost nothing to lay down
if it were not."
"I will go," said Doctor Manette, "to the
Prosecutor and the President straight, and I will go to
others whom it is better not to name. I will write too,
and--But stay! There is a Celebration in the streets, and
no one will be accessible until dark."
"That's true. Well! It is a forlorn hope at the
best, and not much the forlorner for being delayed till
dark. I should like to know how you speed; though, mind!
I expect nothing! When are you likely to have seen these
dread powers, Doctor Manette?"
"Immediately after dark, I should hope. Within an
hour or two from this."
"It will be dark soon after four. Let us stretch
the hour or two. If I go to Mr. Lorry's at nine, shall I
hear what you have done, either from our friend or from
yourself?"
"Yes."
"May you prosper!"
Mr. Lorry followed Sydney to the outer door, and,
touching him on the shoulder as he was going away, caused
him to turn.
"I have no hope," said Mr. Lorry, in a low and
sorrowful whisper.
"Nor have I."
"If any one of these men, or all of these men, were
disposed to spare him--which is a large supposition; for
what is his life, or any man's to them!--I doubt if they
durst spare him after the demonstration in the
court."
"And so do I. I heard the fall of the axe in that
sound."
Mr. Lorry leaned his arm upon the door-post, and
bowed his face upon it.
"Don't despond," said Carton, very gently; "don't
grieve. I encouraged Doctor Manette in this idea, because
I felt that it might one day be consolatory to her.
Otherwise, she might think `his life was want only thrown
away or wasted,' and that might trouble her."
"Yes, yes, yes," returned Mr. Lorry, drying his
eyes, "you are right. But he will perish; there is no
real hope."
"Yes. He will perish: there is no real hope,"
echoed Carton.
And walked with a settled step, down-stairs.
XII
Darkness
Sydney Carton paused in the street, not quite
decided where to go. "At Tellson's banking-house at
nine," he said, with a musing face. "Shall I do well, in
the mean time, to show myself? I think so. It is best
that these people should know there is such a man as I
here; it is a sound precaution, and may be a necessary
preparation. But care, care, care! Let me think it
out!"
Checking his steps which had begun to tend towards
an object, he took a turn or two in the already darkening
street, and traced the thought in his mind to its
possible consequences. His first impression was
confirmed. "It is best," he said, finally resolved, "that
these people should know there is such a man as I here."
And he turned his face towards Saint Antoine.
Defarge had described himself, that day, as the
keeper of a wine-shop in the Saint Antoine suburb. It was
not difficult for one who knew the city well, to find his
house without asking any question. Having ascertained its
situation, Carton came out of those closer streets again,
and dined at a place of refreshment and fell sound asleep
after dinner. For the first time in many years, he had no
strong drink. Since last night he had taken nothing but a
little light thin wine, and last night he had dropped the
brandy slowly down on Mr. Lorry's hearth like a man who
had done with it.
It was as late as seven o'clock when he awoke
refreshed, and went out into the streets again. As he
passed along towards Saint Antoine, he stopped at a
shop-window where there was a mirror, and slightly
altered the disordered arrangement of his loose cravat,
and his coat- collar, and his wild hair. This done, he
went on direct to Defarge's, and went in.
There happened to be no customer in the shop but
Jacques Three, of the restless fingers and the croaking
voice. This man, whom he had seen upon the Jury, stood
drinking at the little counter, in conversation with the
Defarges, man and wife. The Vengeance assisted in the
conversation, like a regular member of the
establishment.
As Carton walked in, took his seat and asked (in
very indifferent French) for a small measure of wine,
Madame Defarge cast a careless glance at him, and then a
keener, and then a keener, and then advanced to him
herself, and asked him what it was he had ordered.
He repeated what he had already said.
"English?" asked Madame Defarge, inquisitively
raising her dark eyebrows.
After looking at her, as if the sound of even a
single French word were slow to express itself to him, he
answered, in his former strong foreign accent. "Yes,
madame, yes. I am English!"
Madame Defarge returned to her counter to get the
wine, and, as he took up a Jacobin journal and feigned to
pore over it puzzling out its meaning, he heard her say,
"I swear to you, like Evremonde!"
Defarge brought him the wine, and gave him Good
Evening.
"How?"
"Good evening."
"Oh! Good evening, citizen," filling his glass.
"Ah! and good wine. I drink to the Republic."
Defarge went back to the counter, and said,
"Certainly, a little like." Madame sternly retorted, "I
tell you a good deal like." Jacques Three pacifically
remarked, "He is so much in your mind, see you, madame."
The amiable Vengeance added, with a laugh, "Yes, my
faith! And you are looking forward with so much pleasure
to seeing him once more to-morrow!"
Carton followed the lines and words of his paper,
with a slow forefinger, and with a studious and absorbed
face. They were all leaning their arms on the counter
close together, speaking low. After a silence of a few
moments, during which they all looked towards him without
disturbing his outward attention from the Jacobin editor,
they resumed their conversation.
"It is true what madame says," observed Jacques
Three. "Why stop? There is great force in that. Why
stop?"
"Well, well," reasoned Defarge, "but one must stop
somewhere. After all, the question is still
where?"
"At extermination," said madame.
"Magnificent!" croaked Jacques Three. The
Vengeance, also, highly approved.
"Extermination is good doctrine, my wife," said
Defarge, rather troubled; "in general, I say nothing
against it. But this Doctor has suffered much; you have
seen him to-day; you have observed his face when the
paper was read."
"I have observed his face!" repeated madame,
contemptuously and angrily. "Yes. I have observed his
face. I have observed his face to be not the face of a
true friend of the Republic. Let him take care of his
face!"
"And you have observed, my wife," said Defarge, in
a deprecatory manner, "the anguish of his daughter, which
must be a dreadful anguish to him!"
"I have observed his daughter," repeated madame;
"yes, I have observed his daughter, more times than one.
I have observed her to-day, and I have observed her other
days. I have observed her in the court, and I have
observed her in the street by the prison. Let me but lift
my finger--!" She seemed to raise it (the listener's eyes
were always on his paper), and to let it fall with a
rattle on the ledge before her, as if the axe had
dropped.
"The citizeness is superb!" croaked the
Juryman.
"She is an Angel!" said The Vengeance, and embraced
her.
"As to thee," pursued madame, implacably,
addressing her husband, "if it depended on thee--which,
happily, it does not--thou wouldst rescue this man even
now."
"No!" protested Defarge. "Not if to lift this glass
would do it! But I would leave the matter there. I say,
stop there."
"See you then, Jacques," said Madame Defarge,
wrathfully; "and see you, too, my little Vengeance; see
you both! Listen! For other crimes as tyrants and
oppressors, I have this race a long time on my register,
doomed to destruction and extermination. Ask my husband,
is that so."
"It is so," assented Defarge, without being
asked.
"In the beginning of the great days, when the
Bastille falls, he finds this paper of to-day, and he
brings it home, and in the middle of the night when this
place is clear and shut, we read it, here on this spot,
by the light of this lamp. Ask him, is that so."
"It is so," assented Defarge.
"That night, I tell him, when the paper is read
through, and the lamp is burnt out, and the day is
gleaming in above those shutters and between those iron
bars, that I have now a secret to communicate. Ask him,
is that so."
"It is so," assented Defarge again.
"I communicate to him that secret. I smite this
bosom with these two hands as I smite it now, and I tell
him, `Defarge, I was brought up among the fishermen of
the sea-shore, and that peasant family so injured by the
two Evremonde brothers, as that Bastille paper describes,
is my family. Defarge, that sister of the mortally
wounded boy upon the ground was my sister, that husband
was my sister's husband, that unborn child was their
child, that brother was my brother, that father was my
father, those dead are my dead, and that summons to
answer for those things descends to me!' Ask him, is that
so."
"It is so," assented Defarge once more.
"Then tell Wind and Fire where to stop," returned
madame; "but don't tell me."
Both her hearers derived a horrible enjoyment from
the deadly nature of her wrath--the listener could feel
how white she was, without seeing her--and both highly
commended it. Defarge, a weak minority, interposed a few
words for the memory of the compassionate wife of the
Marquis; but only elicited from his own wife a repetition
of her last reply. "Tell the Wind and the Fire where to
stop; not me!"
Customers entered, and the group was broken up. The
English customer paid for what he had had, perplexedly
counted his change, and asked, as a stranger, to be
directed towards the National Palace. Madame Defarge took
him to the door, and put her arm on his, in pointing out
the road. The English customer was not without his
reflections then, that it might be a good deed to seize
that arm, lift it, and strike under it sharp and
deep.
But, he went his way, and was soon swallowed up in
the shadow of the prison wan. At the appointed hour, he
emerged from it to present himself in Mr. Lorry's room
again, where he found the old gentleman walking to and
fro in restless anxiety. He said he had been with Lucie
until just now, and had only left her for a few minutes,
to come and keep his appointment. Her father had not been
seen, since he quitted the banking-house towards four
o'clock. She had some faint hopes that his mediation
might save Charles, but they were very slight. He had
been more than five hours gone: where could he be?
Mr. Lorry waited until ten; but, Doctor Manette not
returning, and he being unwilling to leave Lucie any
longer, it was arranged that he should go back to her,
and come to the banking-house again at midnight. In the
meanwhile, Carton would wait alone by the fire for the
Doctor.
He waited and waited, and the clock struck twelve;
but Doctor Manette did not come back. Mr. Lorry returned,
and found no tidings of him, and brought none. Where
could he be?
They were discussing this question, and were almost
building up some weak structure of hope on his prolonged
absence, when they heard him on the stairs. The instant
he entered the room, it was plain that all was
lost.
Whether he had really been to any one, or whether
be had been all that time traversing the streets, was
never known. As he stood staring at them, they asked him
no question, for his face told them everything.
"I cannot find it," said he, "and I must have it.
Where is it?"
His head and throat were bare, and, as he spoke
with a helpless look straying all around, he took his
coat off, and let it drop on the floor.
"Where is my bench? I have been looking everywhere
for my bench, and I can't find it. What have they done
with my work? Time presses: I must finish those
shoes."
They looked at one another, and their hearts died
within them.
"Come, come!" said he, in a whimpering miserable
way; "let me get to work. Give me my work."
Receiving no answer, he tore his hair, and beat his
feet upon the ground, like a distracted child.
"Don't torture a poor forlorn wretch," he implored
them, with a dreadful cry; "but give me my work! What is
to become of us, if those shoes are not done
to-night?"
Lost, utterly lost!
It was so clearly beyond hope to reason with him,
or try to restore him, that--as if by agreement--they
each put a hand upon his shoulder, and soothed him to sit
down before the fire, with a promise that he should have
his work presently. He sank into the chair, and brooded
over the embers, and shed tears. As if all that had
happened since the garret time were a momentary fancy, or
a dream, Mr. Lorry saw him shrink into the exact figure
that Defarge had had in keeping.
Affected, and impressed with terror as they both
were, by this spectacle of ruin, it was not a time to
yield to such emotions. His lonely daughter, bereft of
her final hope and reliance, appealed to them both too
strongly. Again, as if by agreement, they looked at one
another with one meaning in their faces. Carton was the
first to speak:
"The last chance is gone: it was not much. Yes; he
had better be taken to her. But, before you go, will you,
for a moment, steadily attend to me? Don't ask me why I
make the stipulations I am going to make, and exact the
promise I am going to exact; I have a reason-- a good
one."
"I do not doubt it," answered Mr. Lorry. "Say
on."
The figure in the chair between them, was all the
time monotonously rocking itself to and fro, and moaning.
They spoke in such a tone as they would have used if they
had been watching by a sick-bed in the night.
Carton stooped to pick up the coat, which lay
almost entangling his feet. As he did so, a small case in
which the Doctor was accustomed to carry the lists of his
day's duties, fen lightly on the floor. Carton took it
up, and there was a folded paper in it. "We should look
at this!" he said. Mr. Lorry nodded his consent. He
opened it, and exclaimed, "Thank GOD!"
"What is it?" asked Mr. Lorry, eagerly.
"A moment! Let me speak of it in its place. First,"
he put his hand in his coat, and took another paper from
it, "that is the certificate which enables me to pass out
of this city. Look at it. You see-- Sydney Carton, an
Englishman?"
Mr. Lorry held it open in his hand, gazing in his
earnest face.
"Keep it for me until to-morrow. I shall see him
to-morrow, you remember, and I had better not take it
into the prison."
"Why not?"
"I don't know; I prefer not to do so. Now, take
this paper that Doctor Manette has carried about him. It
is a similar certificate, enabling him and his daughter
and her child, at any time, to pass the barrier and the
frontier! You see?"
"Yes!"
"Perhaps he obtained it as his last and utmost
precaution against evil, yesterday. When is it dated? But
no matter; don't stay to look; put it up carefully with
mine and your own. Now, observe! I never doubted until
within this hour or two, that he had, or could have such
a paper. It is good, until recalled. But it may be soon
recalled, and, I have reason to think, will be."
"They are not in danger?"
"They are in great danger. They are in danger of
denunciation by Madame Defarge. I know it from her own
lips. I have overheard words of that woman's, to-night,
which have presented their danger to me in strong
colours. I have lost no time, and since then, I have seen
the spy. He confirms me. He knows that a wood-sawyer,
living by the prison wall, is under the control of the
Defarges, and has been rehearsed by Madame Defarge as to
his having seen Her"--he never mentioned Lucie's
name--"making signs and signals to prisoners. It is easy
to foresee that the pretence will be the common one, a
prison plot, and that it will involve her life--and
perhaps her child's--and perhaps her father's--for both
have been seen with her at that place. Don't look so
horrified. You will save them all."
"Heaven grant I may, Carton! But how?"
"I am going to tell you how. It will depend on you,
and it could depend on no better man. This new
denunciation will certainly not take place until after
to-morrow; probably not until two or three days
afterwards; more probably a week afterwards. You know it
is a capital crime, to mourn for, or sympathise with, a
victim of the Guillotine. She and her father would
unquestionably be guilty of this crime, and this woman
(the inveteracy of whose pursuit cannot be described)
would wait to add that strength to her case, and make
herself doubly sure. You follow me?"
"So attentively, and with so much confidence in
what you say, that for the moment I lose sight," touching
the back of the Doctor's chair, even of this
distress."
"You have money, and can buy the means of
travelling to the seacoast as quickly as the journey can
be made. Your preparations have been completed for some
days, to return to England. Early to-morrow have your
horses ready, so that they may be in starting trim at two
o'clock in the afternoon."
"It shall be done!"
His manner was so fervent and inspiring, that Mr.
Lorry caught the flame, and was as quick as youth.
"You are a noble heart. Did I say we could depend
upon no better man? Tell her, to-night, what you know of
her danger as involving her child and her father. Dwell
upon that, for she would lay her own fair head beside her
husband's cheerfully." He faltered for an instant; then
went on as before. "For the sake of her child and her
father, press upon her the necessity of leaving Paris,
with them and you, at that hour. Tell her that it was her
husband's last arrangement. Tell her that more depends
upon it than she dare believe, or hope. You think that
her father, even in this sad state, will submit himself
to her; do you not?"
"I am sure of it."
"I thought so. Quietly and steadily have all these
arrangements made in the courtyard here, even to the
taking of your own seat in the carriage. The moment I
come to you, take me in, and drive away."
"I understand that I wait for you under all
circumstances?"
"You have my certificate in your hand with the
rest, you know, and will reserve my place. Wait for
nothing but to have my place occupied, and then for
England!"
"Why, then," said Mr. Lorry, grasping his eager but
so firm and steady hand, "it does not all depend on one
old man, but I shall have a young and ardent man at my
side."
"By the help of Heaven you shall! Promise me
solemnly that nothing will influence you to alter the
course on which we now stand pledged to one
another."
"Nothing, Carton."
"Remember these words to-morrow: change the course,
or delay in it-- for any reason--and no life can possibly
be saved, and many lives must inevitably be
sacrificed."
"I will remember them. I hope to do my part
faithfully."
"And I hope to do mine. Now, good bye!"
Though he said it with a grave smile of
earnestness, and though he even put the old man's hand to
his lips, he did not part from him then. He helped him so
far to arouse the rocking figure before the dying embers,
as to get a cloak and hat put upon it, and to tempt it
forth to find where the bench and work were hidden that
it still moaningly besought to have. He walked on the
other side of it and protected it to the courtyard of the
house where the afflicted heart--so happy in the
memorable time when he had revealed his own desolate
heart to it--outwatched the awful night. He entered the
courtyard and remained there for a few moments alone,
looking up at the light in the window of her room. Before
he went away, he breathed a blessing towards it, and a
Farewell.
XIII
Fifty-two
In the black prison of the Conciergerie, the doomed
of the day awaited their fate. They were in number as the
weeks of the year. Fifty-two were to roll that afternoon
on the life-tide of the city to the boundless everlasting
sea. Before their cells were quit of them, new occupants
were appointed; before their blood ran into the blood
spilled yesterday, the blood that was to mingle with
theirs to-morrow was already set apart.
Two score and twelve were told off. From the
farmer-general of seventy, whose riches could not buy his
life, to the seamstress of twenty, whose poverty and
obscurity could not save her. Physical diseases,
engendered in the vices and neglects of men, will seize
on victims of all degrees; and the frightful moral
disorder, born of unspeakable suffering, intolerable
oppression, and heartless indifference, smote equally
without distinction.
Charles Darnay, alone in a cell, had sustained
himself with no flattering delusion since he came to it
from the Tribunal. In every line of the narrative he had
heard, he had heard his condemnation. He had fully
comprehended that no personal influence could possibly
save him, that he was virtually sentenced by the
millions, and that units could avail him nothing.
Nevertheless, it was not easy, with the face of his
beloved wife fresh before him, to compose his mind to
what it must bear. His hold on life was strong, and it
was very, very hard, to loosen; by gradual efforts and
degrees unclosed a little here, it clenched the tighter
there; and when he brought his strength to bear on that
hand and it yielded, this was closed again. There was a
hurry, too, in all his thoughts, a turbulent and heated
working of his heart, that contended against resignation.
If, for a moment, he did feel resigned, then his wife and
child who had to live after him, seemed to protest and to
make it a selfish thing.
But, all this was at first. Before long, the
consideration that there was no disgrace in the fate he
must meet, and that numbers went the same road
wrongfully, and trod it firmly every day, sprang up to
stimulate him. Next followed the thought that much of the
future peace of mind enjoyable by the dear ones, depended
on his quiet fortitude. So, by degrees he calmed into the
better state, when he could raise his thoughts much
higher, and draw comfort down.
Before it had set in dark on the night of his
condemnation, he had travelled thus far on his last way.
Being allowed to purchase the means of writing, and a
light, he sat down to write until such time as the prison
lamps should be extinguished.
He wrote a long letter to Lucie, showing her that
he had known nothing of her father's imprisonment, until
he had heard of it from herself, and that he had been as
ignorant as she of his father's and uncle's
responsibility for that misery, until the paper had been
read. He had already explained to her that his
concealment from herself of the name he had relinquished,
was the one condition--fully intelligible now--that her
father had attached to their betrothal, and was the one
promise he had still exacted on the morning of their
marriage. He entreated her, for her father's sake, never
to seek to know whether her father had become oblivious
of the existence of the paper, or had had it recalled to
him (for the moment, or for good), by the story of the
Tower, on that old Sunday under the dear old plane-tree
in the garden. If he had preserved any definite
remembrance of it, there could be no doubt that he had
supposed it destroyed with the Bastille, when he had
found no mention of it among the relics of prisoners
which the populace had discovered there, and which had
been described to all the world. He besought her--though
he added that he knew it was needless--to console her
father, by impressing him through every tender means she
could think of, with the truth that he had done nothing
for which he could justly reproach himself, but had
uniformly forgotten himself for their joint sakes. Next
to her preservation of his own last grateful love and
blessing, and her overcoming of her sorrow, to devote
herself to their dear child, he adjured her, as they
would meet in Heaven, to comfort her father.
To her father himself, he wrote in the same strain;
but, he told her father that he expressly confided his
wife and child to his care. And he told him this, very
strongly, with the hope of rousing him from any
despondency or dangerous retrospect towards which he
foresaw he might be tending.
To Mr. Lorry, he commended them all, and explained
his worldly affairs. That done, with many added sentences
of grateful friendship and warm attachment, all was done.
He never thought of Carton. His mind was so full of the
others, that he never once thought of him.
He had time to finish these letters before the
lights were put out. When he lay down on his straw bed,
he thought he had done with this world.
But, it beckoned him back in his sleep, and showed
itself in shining forms. Free and happy, back in the old
house in Soho (though it had nothing in it like the real
house), unaccountably released and light of heart, he was
with Lucie again, and she told him it was all a dream,
and he had never gone away. A pause of forgetfulness, and
then he had even suffered, and had come back to her, dead
and at peace, and yet there was no difference in him.
Another pause of oblivion, and he awoke in the sombre
morning, unconscious where he was or what had happened,
until it flashed upon his mind, "this is the day of my
death!"
Thus, had he come through the hours, to the day
when the fifty-two heads were to fall. And now, while he
was composed, and hoped that he could meet the end with
quiet heroism, a new action began in his waking thoughts,
which was very difficult to master.
He had never seen the instrument that was to
terminate his life. How high it was from the ground, how
many steps it had, where he would be stood, bow he would
be touched, whether the touching hands would be dyed red,
which way his face would be turned, whether he would be
the first, or might be the last: these and many similar
questions, in nowise directed by his will, obtruded
themselves over and over again, countless times. Neither
were they connected with fear: he was conscious of no
fear. Rather, they originated in a strange besetting
desire to know what to do when the time came; a desire
gigantically disproportionate to the few swift moments to
which it referred; a wondering that was more like the
wondering of some other spirit within his, than his
own.
The hours went on as he walked to and fro, and the
clocks struck the numbers he would never hear again. Nine
gone for ever, ten gone for ever, eleven gone for ever,
twelve coming on to pass away. After a hard contest with
that eccentric action of thought which had last perplexed
him, he had got the better of it. He walked up and down,
softly repeating their names to himself. The worst of the
strife was over. He could walk up and down, free from
distracting fancies, praying for himself and for
them.
Twelve gone for ever.
He had been apprised that the final hour was Three,
and be knew he would be summoned some time earlier,
inasmuch as the tumbrils jolted heavily and slowly
through the streets. Therefore, he resolved to keep Two
before his mind, as the hour, and so to strengthen
himself in the interval that he might be able, after that
time, to strengthen others.
Walking regularly to and fro with his arms folded
on his breast, a very different man from the prisoner,
who had walked to and fro at La Force, he heard One
struck away from him, without surprise. The hour had
measured like most other hours. Devoutly thankful to
Heaven for his recovered self-possession, he thought,
"There is but another now," and turned to walk
again.
Footsteps in the stone passage outside the door. He
stopped.
The key was put in the lock, and turned. Before the
door was opened, or as it opened, a man said in a low
voice, in English: "He has never seen me here; I have
kept out of his way. Go you in alone; I wait near. Lose
no time!"
The door was quickly opened and closed, and there
stood before him face to face, quiet, intent upon him,
with the light of a smile on his features, and a
cautionary finger on his lip, Sydney Carton.
There was something so bright and remarkable in his
look, that, for the first moment, the prisoner misdoubted
him to be an apparition of his own imagining. But, he
spoke, and it was his voice; he took the prisoner's hand,
and it was his real grasp.
"Of all the people upon earth, you least expected
to see me?" be said.
"I could not believe it to be you. I can scarcely
believe it now. You are not"--the apprehension came
suddenly into his mind--"a prisoner?"
"No. I am accidentally possessed of a power over
one of the keepers here, and in virtue of it I stand
before you. I come from her-- your wife, dear
Darnay."
The prisoner wrung his hand.
"I bring you a request from her."
"What is it?"
"A most earnest, pressing, and emphatic entreaty,
addressed to you in the most pathetic tones of the voice
so dear to you, that you well remember."
The prisoner turned his face partly aside.
"You have no time to ask me why I bring it, or what
it means; I have no time to tell you. You must comply
with it--take off those boots you wear, and draw on these
of mine."
There was a chair against the wall of the cell,
behind the prisoner. Carton, pressing forward, had
already, with the speed of lightning, got him down into
it, and stood over him, barefoot.
"Draw on these boots of mine. Put your hands to
them; put your will to them. Quick!"
"Carton, there is no escaping from this place; it
never can be done. You will only die with me. It is
madness."
"It would be madness if I asked you to escape; but
do I? When I ask you to pass out at that door, tell me it
is madness and remain here. Change that cravat for this
of mine, that coat for this of mine. While you do it, let
me take this ribbon from your hair, and shake out your
hair like this of mine!"
With wonderful quickness, and with a strength both
of will and action, that appeared quite supernatural, he
forced all these changes upon him. The prisoner was like
a young child in his hands.
"Carton! Dear Carton! It is madness. It cannot be
accomplished, it never can be done, it has been
attempted, and has always failed. I implore you not to
add your death to the bitterness of mine."
"Do I ask you, my dear Darnay, to pass the door?
When I ask that, refuse. There are pen and ink and paper
on this table. Is your hand steady enough to
write?"
"It was when you came in."
"Steady it again, and write what I shall dictate.
Quick, friend, quick!"
Pressing his hand to his bewildered head, Darnay
sat down at the table. Carton, with his right hand in his
breast, stood close beside him.
"Write exactly as I speak."
"To whom do I address it?"
"To no one." Carton still had his hand in his
breast.
"Do I date it?"
"No."
The prisoner looked up, at each question. Carton,
standing over him with his hand in his breast, looked
down.
"`If you remember,'" said Carton, dictating, "`the
words that passed between us, long ago, you will readily
comprehend this when you see it. You do remember them, I
know. It is not in your nature to forget them.'"
He was drawing his hand from his breast; the
prisoner chancing to look up in his hurried wonder as he
wrote, the hand stopped, closing upon something.
"Have you written `forget them'?" Carton
asked.
"I have. Is that a weapon in your hand?"
"No; I am not armed."
"What is it in your hand?"
"You shall know directly. Write on; there are but a
few words more." He dictated again. "`I am thankful that
the time has come, when I can prove them. That I do so is
no subject for regret or grief.'" As he said these words
with his eyes fixed on the writer, his hand slowly and
softly moved down close to the writer's face.
The pen dropped from Darnay's fingers on the table,
and he looked about him vacantly.
"What vapour is that?" he asked.
"Vapour?"
"Something that crossed me?"
"I am conscious of nothing; there can be nothing
here. Take up the pen and finish. Hurry, hurry!"
As if his memory were impaired, or his faculties
disordered, the prisoner made an effort to rally his
attention. As he looked at Carton with clouded eyes and
with an altered manner of breathing, Carton--his hand
again in his breast--looked steadily at him.
"Hurry, hurry!"
The prisoner bent over the paper, once more.
"`If it had been otherwise;'" Carton's hand was
again watchfully and softly stealing down; "`I never
should have used the longer opportunity. If it had been
otherwise;'" the hand was at the prisoner's face; "`I
should but have had so much the more to answer for. If it
had been otherwise--'" Carton looked at the pen and saw
it was trailing off into unintelligible signs.
Carton's hand moved back to his breast no more. The
prisoner sprang up with a reproachful look, but Carton's
hand was close and firm at his nostrils, and Carton's
left arm caught him round the waist. For a few seconds he
faintly struggled with the man who had come to lay down
his life for him; but, within a minute or so, he was
stretched insensible on the ground.
Quickly, but with hands as true to the purpose as
his heart was, Carton dressed himself in the clothes the
prisoner bad laid aside, combed back his hair, and tied
it with the ribbon the prisoner had worn. Then, he softly
called, "Enter there! Come in!" and the Spy presented
himself.
"You see?" said Carton, looking up, as he kneeled
on one knee beside the insensible figure, putting the
paper in the breast: "is your hazard very great?"
"Mr. Carton," the Spy answered, with a timid snap
of his fingers, "my hazard is not THAT, in the thick of
business here, if you are true to the whole of your
bargain."
"Don't fear me. I will be true to the
death."
"You must be, Mr. Carton, if the tale of fifty-two
is to be right. Being made right by you in that dress, I
shall have no fear."
"Have no fear! I shall soon be out of the way of
harming you, and the rest will soon be far from here,
please God! Now, get assistance and take me to the
coach."
"You?" said the Spy nervously.
"Him, man, with whom I have exchanged. You go out
at the gate by which you brought me in?"
"Of course."
"I was weak and faint when you brought me in, and I
am fainter now you take me out. The parting interview has
overpowered me. Such a thing has happened here, often,
and too often. Your life is in your own hands. Quick!
Call assistance!"
"You swear not to betray me?" said the trembling
Spy, as he paused for a last moment.
"Man, man!" returned Carton, stamping his foot;
"have I sworn by no solemn vow already, to go through
with this, that you waste the precious moments now? Take
him yourself to the courtyard you know of, place him
yourself in the carriage, show him yourself to Mr. Lorry,
tell him yourself to give him no restorative but air, and
to remember my words of last night, and his promise of
last night, and drive away!"
The Spy withdrew, and Carton seated himself at the
table, resting his forehead on his hands. The Spy
returned immediately, with two men.
"How, then?" said one of them, contemplating the
fallen figure. "So afflicted to find that his friend has
drawn a prize in the lottery of Sainte
Guillotine?"
"A good patriot," said the other, "could hardly
have been more afflicted if the Aristocrat had drawn a
blank."
They raised the unconscious figure, placed it on a
litter they had brought to the door, and bent to carry it
away.
"The time is short, Evremonde," said the Spy, in a
warning voice.
"I know it well," answered Carton. "Be careful of
my friend, I entreat you, and leave me."
"Come, then, my children," said Barsad. "Lift him,
and come away!"
The door closed, and Carton was left alone.
Straining his powers of listening to the utmost, he
listened for any sound that might denote suspicion or
alarm. There was none. Keys turned, doors clashed,
footsteps passed along distant passages: no cry was
raised, or hurry made, that seemed unusual. Breathing
more freely in a little while, he sat down at the table,
and listened again until the clock struck Two.
Sounds that he was not afraid of, for he divined
their meaning, then began to be audible. Several doors
were opened in succession, and finally his own. A gaoler,
with a list in his hand, looked in, merely saying,
"Follow me, Evremonde!" and he followed into a large dark
room, at a distance. It was a dark winter day, and what
with the shadows within, and what with the shadows
without, he could but dimly discern the others who were
brought there to have their arms bound. Some were
standing; some seated. Some were lamenting, and in
restless motion; but, these were few. The great majority
were silent and still, looking fixedly at the
ground.
As he stood by the wall in a dim corner, while some
of the fifty-two were brought in after him, one man
stopped in passing, to embrace him, as having a knowledge
of him. It thrilled him with a great dread of discovery;
but the man went on. A very few moments after that, a
young woman, with a slight girlish form, a sweet spare
face in which there was no vestige of colour, and large
widely opened patient eyes, rose from the seat where he
had observed her sitting, and came to speak to
him.
"Citizen Evremonde," she said, touching him with
her cold hand. "I am a poor little seamstress, who was
with you in La Force."
He murmured for answer: "True. I forget what you
were accused of?"
"Plots. Though the just Heaven knows that I am
innocent of any. Is it likely? Who would think of
plotting with a poor little weak creature like
me?"
The forlorn smile with which she said it, so
touched him, that tears started from his eyes.
"I am not afraid to die, Citizen Evremonde, but I
have done nothing. I am not unwilling to die, if the
Republic which is to do so much good to us poor, will
profit by my death; but I do not know how that can be,
Citizen Evremonde. Such a poor weak little
creature!"
As the last thing on earth that his heart was to
warm and soften to, it warmed and softened to this
pitiable girl.
"I heard you were released, Citizen Evremonde. I
hoped it was true?"
"It was. But, I was again taken and
condemned."
"If I may ride with you, Citizen Evremonde, will
you let me hold your hand? I am not afraid, but I am
little and weak, and it will give me more
courage."
As the patient eyes were lifted to his face, he saw
a sudden doubt in them, and then astonishment. He pressed
the work-worn, hunger-worn young fingers, and touched his
lips.
"Are you dying for him?" she whispered.
"And his wife and child. Hush! Yes."
"O you will let me hold your brave hand,
stranger?"
"Hush! Yes, my poor sister; to the last."
The same shadows that are falling on the prison,
are falling, in that same hour of the early afternoon, on
the Barrier with the crowd about it, when a coach going
out of Paris drives up to be examined.
"Who goes here? Whom have we within?
Papers!"
The papers are handed out, and read.
"Alexandre Manette. Physician. French. Which is
he?"
This is he; this helpless, inarticulately
murmuring, wandering old man pointed out.
"Apparently the Citizen-Doctor is not in his right
mind? The Revolution-fever will have been too much for
him?"
Greatly too much for him.
"Hah! Many suffer with it. Lucie. His daughter.
French. Which is she?"
This is she.
"Apparently it must be. Lucie, the wife of
Evremonde; is it not?"
It is.
"Hah! Evremonde has an assignation elsewhere.
Lucie, her child. English. This is she?"
She and no other.
"Kiss me, child of Evremonde. Now, thou hast kissed
a good Republican; something new in thy family; remember
it! Sydney Carton. Advocate. English. Which is
he?"
He lies here, in this corner of the carriage. He,
too, is pointed out.
"Apparently the English advocate is in a
swoon?"
It is hoped he will recover in the fresher air. It
is represented that he is not in strong health, and has
separated sadly from a friend who is under the
displeasure of the Republic.
"Is that all? It is not a great deal, that! Many
are under the displeasure of the Republic, and must look
out at the little window. Jarvis Lorry. Banker. English.
Which is he?"
"I am he. Necessarily, being the last."
It is Jarvis Lorry who has replied to all the
previous questions. It is Jarvis Lorry who has alighted
and stands with his hand on the coach door, replying to a
group of officials. They leisurely walk round the
carriage and leisurely mount the box, to look at what
little luggage it carries on the roof; the country-people
hanging about, press nearer to the coach doors and
greedily stare in; a little child, carried by its mother,
has its short arm held out for it, that it may touch the
wife of an aristocrat who has gone to the
Guillotine.
"Behold your papers, Jarvis Lorry,
countersigned."
"One can depart, citizen?"
"One can depart. Forward, my postilions! A good
journey!"
"I salute you, citizens.--And the first danger
passed!"
These are again the words of Jarvis Lorry, as he
clasps his hands, and looks upward. There is terror in
the carriage, there is weeping, there is the heavy
breathing of the insensible traveller.
"Are we not going too slowly? Can they not be
induced to go faster?" asks Lucie, clinging to the old
man.
"It would seem like flight, my darling. I must not
urge them too much; it would rouse suspicion."
"Look back, look back, and see if we are
pursued!"
"The road is clear, my dearest. So far, we are not
pursued."
Houses in twos and threes pass by us, solitary
farms, ruinous buildings, dye-works, tanneries, and the
like, open country, avenues of leafless trees. The hard
uneven pavement is under us, the soft deep mud is on
either side. Sometimes, we strike into the skirting mud,
to avoid the stones that clatter us and shake us;
sometimes, we stick in ruts and sloughs there. The agony
of our impatience is then so great, that in our wild
alarm and hurry we are for getting out and
running--hiding--doing anything but stopping.
Out of the open country, in again among ruinous
buildings, solitary farms, dye-works, tanneries, and the
like, cottages in twos and threes, avenues of leafless
trees. Have these men deceived us, and taken us back by
another road? Is not this the same place twice over?
Thank Heaven, no. A village. Look back, look back, and
see if we are pursued! Hush! the posting-house.
Leisurely, our four horses are taken out;
leisurely, the coach stands in the little street, bereft
of horses, and with no likelihood upon it of ever moving
again; leisurely, the new horses come into visible
existence, one by one; leisurely, the new postilions
follow, sucking and plaiting the lashes of their whips;
leisurely, the old postilions count their money, make
wrong additions, and arrive at dissatisfied results. All
the time, our overfraught hearts are beating at a rate
that would far outstrip the fastest gallop of the fastest
horses ever foaled.
At length the new postilions are in their saddles,
and the old are left behind. We are through the village,
up the hill, and down the hill, and on the low watery
grounds. Suddenly, the postilions exchange speech with
animated gesticulation, and the horses are pulled up,
almost on their haunches. We are pursued?
"Ho! Within the carriage there. Speak then!"
"What is it?" asks Mr. Lorry, looking out at
window.
"How many did they say?"
"I do not understand you."
"--At the last post. How many to the Guillotine
to-day?"
"Fifty-two."
"I said so! A brave number! My fellow-citizen here
would have it forty-two; ten more heads are worth having.
The Guillotine goes handsomely. I love it. Hi forward.
Whoop!"
The night comes on dark. He moves more; he is
beginning to revive, and to speak intelligibly; he thinks
they are still together; he asks him, by his name, what
he has in his hand. O pity us, kind Heaven, and help us!
Look out, look out, and see if we are pursued.
The wind is rushing after us, and the clouds are
flying after us, and the moon is plunging after us, and
the whole wild night is in pursuit of us; but, so far, we
are pursued by nothing else.
XIV
The Knitting Done
In that same juncture of time when the Fifty-Two
awaited their fate Madame Defarge held darkly ominous
council with The Vengeance and Jacques Three of the
Revolutionary Jury. Not in the wine-shop did Madame
Defarge confer with these ministers, but in the shed of
the wood-sawyer, erst a mender of roads. The sawyer
himself did not participate in the conference, but abided
at a little distance, like an outer satellite who was not
to speak until required, or to offer an opinion until
invited.
"But our Defarge," said Jacques Three, "is
undoubtedly a good Republican? Eh?"
"There is no better," the voluble Vengeance
protested in her shrill notes, "in France."
"Peace, little Vengeance," said Madame Defarge,
laying her hand with a slight frown on her lieutenant's
lips, "hear me speak. My husband, fellow-citizen, is a
good Republican and a bold man; he has deserved well of
the Republic, and possesses its confidence. But my
husband has his weaknesses, and he is so weak as to
relent towards this Doctor."
"It is a great pity," croaked Jacques Three,
dubiously shaking his head, with his cruel fingers at his
hungry mouth; "it is not quite like a good citizen; it is
a thing to regret."
"See you," said madame, "I care nothing for this
Doctor, I. He may wear his head or lose it, for any
interest I have in him; it is all one to me. But, the
Evremonde people are to be exterminated, and the wife and
child must follow the husband and father."
"She has a fine head for it," croaked Jacques
Three. "I have seen blue eyes and golden hair there, and
they looked charming when Samson held them up." Ogre that
he was, he spoke like an epicure.
Madame Defarge cast down her eyes, and reflected a
little.
"The child also," observed Jacques Three, with a
meditative enjoyment of his words, "has golden hair and
blue eyes. And we seldom have a child there. It is a
pretty sight!"
"In a word," said Madame Defarge, coming out of her
short abstraction, "I cannot trust my husband in this
matter. Not only do I feel, since last night, that I dare
not confide to him the details of my projects; but also I
feel that if I delay, there is danger of his giving
warning, and then they might escape."
"That must never be," croaked Jacques Three; "no
one must escape. We have not half enough as it is. We
ought to have six score a day."
"In a word," Madame Defarge went on, "my husband
has not my reason for pursuing this family to
annihilation, and I have not his reason for regarding
this Doctor with any sensibility. I must act for myself,
therefore. Come hither, little citizen."
The wood-sawyer, who held her in the respect, and
himself in the submission, of mortal fear, advanced with
his hand to his red cap.
"Touching those signals, little citizen," said
Madame Defarge, sternly, "that she made to the prisoners;
you are ready to bear witness to them this very
day?"
"Ay, ay, why not!" cried the sawyer. "Every day, in
all weathers, from two to four, always signalling,
sometimes with the little one, sometimes without. I know
what I know. I have seen with my eyes."
He made all manner of gestures while he spoke, as
if in incidental imitation of some few of the great
diversity of signals that he had never seen.
"Clearly plots," said Jacques Three.
"Transparently!"
"There is no doubt of the Jury?" inquired Madame
Defarge, letting her eyes turn to him with a gloomy
smile.
"Rely upon the patriotic Jury, dear citizeness. I
answer for my fellow-Jurymen."
"Now, let me see," said Madame Defarge, pondering
again. "Yet once more! Can I spare this Doctor to my
husband? I have no feeling either way. Can I spare
him?"
"He would count as one head," observed Jacques
Three, in a low voice. "We really have not heads enough;
it would be a pity, I think."
"He was signalling with her when I saw her," argued
Madame Defarge; "I cannot speak of one without the other;
and I must not be silent, and trust the case wholly to
him, this little citizen here. For, I am not a bad
witness."
The Vengeance and Jacques Three vied with each
other in their fervent protestations that she was the
most admirable and marvellous of witnesses. The little
citizen, not to be outdone, declared her to be a
celestial witness.
"He must take his chance," said Madame Defarge.
"No, I cannot spare him! You are engaged at three
o'clock; you are going to see the batch of to-day
executed.--You?"
The question was addressed to the wood-sawyer, who
hurriedly replied in the affirmative: seizing the
occasion to add that he was the most ardent of
Republicans, and that he would be in effect the most
desolate of Republicans, if anything prevented him from
enjoying the pleasure of smoking his afternoon pipe in
the contemplation of the droll national barber. He was so
very demonstrative herein, that he might have been
suspected (perhaps was, by the dark eyes that looked
contemptuously at him out of Madame Defarge's head) of
having his small individual fears for his own personal
safety, every hour in the day.
"I," said madame, "am equally engaged at the same
place. After it is over-say at eight to-night--come you
to me, in Saint Antoine, and we will give information
against these people at my Section."
The wood-sawyer said he would be proud and
flattered to attend the citizeness. The citizeness
looking at him, he became embarrassed, evaded her glance
as a small dog would have done, retreated among his wood,
and hid his confusion over the handle of his saw.
Madame Defarge beckoned the Juryman and The
Vengeance a little nearer to the door, and there
expounded her further views to them thus:
"She will now be at home, awaiting the moment of
his death. She will be mourning and grieving. She will be
in a state of mind to impeach the justice of the
Republic. She will be full of sympathy with its enemies.
I will go to her."
"What an admirable woman; what an adorable woman!"
exclaimed Jacques Three, rapturously. "Ah, my cherished!"
cried The Vengeance; and embraced her.
"Take you my knitting," said Madame Defarge,
placing it in her lieutenant's hands, "and have it ready
for me in my usual seat. Keep me my usual chair. Go you
there, straight, for there will probably be a greater
concourse than usual, to-day."
"I willingly obey the orders of my Chief," said The
Vengeance with alacrity, and kissing her cheek. "You will
not be late?"
"I shall be there before the commencement."
"And before the tumbrils arrive. Be sure you are
there, my soul," said The Vengeance, calling after her,
for she had already turned into the street, "before the
tumbrils arrive!"
Madame Defarge slightly waved her hand, to imply
that she heard, and might be relied upon to arrive in
good time, and so went through the mud, and round the
corner of the prison wall. The Vengeance and the Juryman,
looking after her as she walked away, were highly
appreciative of her fine figure, and her superb moral
endowments.
There were many women at that time, upon whom the
time laid a dreadfully disfiguring hand; but, there was
not one among them more to be dreaded than this ruthless
woman, now taking her way along the streets. Of a strong
and fearless character, of shrewd sense and readiness, of
great determination, of that kind of beauty which not
only seems to impart to its possessor firmness and
animosity, but to strike into others an instinctive
recognition of those qualities; the troubled time would
have heaved her up, under any circumstances. But, imbued
from her childhood with a brooding sense of wrong, and an
inveterate hatred of a class, opportunity had developed
her into a tigress. She was absolutely without pity. If
she had ever had the virtue in her, it had quite gone out
of her.
It was nothing to her, that an innocent man was to
die for the sins of his forefathers; she saw, not him,
but them. It was nothing to her, that his wife was to be
made a widow and his daughter an orphan; that was
insufficient punishment, because they were her natural
enemies and her prey, and as such had no right to live.
To appeal to her, was made hopeless by her having no
sense of pity, even for herself. If she had been laid low
in the streets, in any of the many encounters in which
she had been engaged, she would not have pitied herself;
nor, if she had been ordered to the axe to-morrow, would
she have gone to it with any softer feeling than a fierce
desire to change places with the man who sent here
there.
Such a heart Madame Defarge carried under her rough
robe. Carelessly worn, it was a becoming robe enough, in
a certain weird way, and her dark hair looked rich under
her coarse red cap. Lying hidden in her bosom, was a
loaded pistol. Lying hidden at her waist, was a sharpened
dagger. Thus accoutred, and walking with the confident
tread of such a character, and with the supple freedom of
a woman who had habitually walked in her girlhood,
bare-foot and bare-legged, on the brown sea-sand, Madame
Defarge took her way along the streets.
Now, when the journey of the travelling coach, at
that very moment waiting for the completion of its load,
had been planned out last night, the difficulty of taking
Miss Pross in it had much engaged Mr. Lorry's attention.
It was not merely desirable to avoid overloading the
coach, but it was of the highest importance that the time
occupied in examining it and its passengers, should be
reduced to the utmost; since their escape might depend on
the saving of only a few seconds here and there. Finally,
he had proposed, after anxious
consideration, that Miss Pross and Jerry, who were
at liberty to leave the city, should leave it at three
o'clock in the lightest- wheeled conveyance known to that
period. Unencumbered with luggage, they would soon
overtake the coach, and, passing it and preceding it on
the road, would order its horses in advance, and greatly
facilitate its progress during the precious hours of the
night, when delay was the most to be dreaded.
Seeing in this arrangement the hope of rendering
real service in that pressing emergency, Miss Pross
hailed it with joy. She and Jerry had beheld the coach
start, had known who it was that Solomon brought, had
passed some ten minutes in tortures of suspense, and were
now concluding their arrangements to follow the coach,
even as Madame Defarge, taking her way through the
streets, now drew nearer and nearer to the else-deserted
lodging in which they held their consultation.
"Now what do you think, Mr. Cruncher," said Miss
Pross, whose agitation was so great that she could hardly
speak, or stand, or move, or live: "what do you think of
our not starting from this courtyard? Another carriage
having already gone from here to-day, it might awaken
suspicion."
"My opinion, miss," returned Mr. Cruncher, "is as
you're right. Likewise wot I'll stand by you, right or
wrong."
"I am so distracted with fear and hope for our
precious creatures," said Miss Pross, wildly crying,
"that I am incapable of forming any plan. Are YOU capable
of forming any plan, my dear good Mr. Cruncher?"
"Respectin' a future spear o' life, miss," returned
Mr. Cruncher, "I hope so. Respectin' any present use o'
this here blessed old head o' mind, I think not. Would
you do me the favour, miss, to take notice o' two
promises and wows wot it is my wishes fur to record in
this here crisis?"
"Oh, for gracious sake!" cried Miss Pross, still
wildly crying, "record them at once, and get them out of
the way, like an excellent man."
"First," said Mr. Cruncher, who was all in a
tremble, and who spoke with an ashy and solemn visage,
"them poor things well out o' this, never no more will I
do it, never no more!"
"I am quite sure, Mr. Cruncher," returned Miss
Pross, "that you never will do it again, whatever it is,
and I beg you not to think it necessary to mention more
particularly what it is."
"No, miss," returned Jerry, "it shall not be named
to you. Second: them poor things well out o' this, and
never no more will I interfere with Mrs. Cruncher's
flopping, never no more!"
"Whatever housekeeping arrangement that may be,"
said Miss Pross, striving to dry her eyes and compose
herself, "I have no doubt it is best that Mrs. Cruncher
should have it entirely under her own superintendence.--O
my poor darlings!"
"I go so far as to say, miss, moreover," proceeded
Mr. Cruncher, with a most alarming tendency to hold forth
as from a pulpit--"and let my words be took down and took
to Mrs. Cruncher through yourself--that wot my opinions
respectin' flopping has undergone a change, and that wot
I only hope with all my heart as Mrs. Cruncher may be a
flopping at the present time."
"There, there, there! I hope she is, my dear man,"
cried the distracted Miss Pross, "and I hope she finds it
answering her expectations."
"Forbid it," proceeded Mr. Cruncher, with
additional solemnity, additional slowness, and additional
tendency to hold forth and hold out, "as anything wot I
have ever said or done should be wisited on my earnest
wishes for them poor creeturs now! Forbid it as we
shouldn't all flop (if it was anyways conwenient) to get
'em out o' this here dismal risk! Forbid it, miss! Wot I
say, for-BID it!" This was Mr. Cruncher's conclusion
after a protracted but vain endeavour to find a better
one.
And still Madame Defarge, pursuing her way along
the streets, came nearer and nearer.
"If we ever get back to our native land," said Miss
Pross, "you may rely upon my telling Mrs. Cruncher as
much as I may be able to remember and understand of what
you have so impressively said; and at all events you may
be sure that I shall bear witness to your being
thoroughly in earnest at this dreadful time. Now, pray
let us think! My esteemed Mr. Cruncher, let us
think!"
Still, Madame Defarge, pursuing her way along the
streets, came nearer and nearer.
"If you were to go before," said Miss Pross, "and
stop the vehicle and horses from coming here, and were to
wait somewhere for me; wouldn't that be best?"
Mr. Cruncher thought it might be best.
"Where could you wait for me?" asked Miss
Pross.
Mr. Cruncher was so bewildered that he could think
of no locality but Temple Bar. Alas! Temple Bar was
hundreds of miles away, and Madame Defarge was drawing
very near indeed.
"By the cathedral door," said Miss Pross. "Would it
be much out of the way, to take me in, near the great
cathedral door between the two towers?"
"No, miss," answered Mr. Cruncher.
"Then, like the best of men," said Miss Pross, "go
to the posting- house straight, and make that
change."
"I am doubtful," said Mr. Cruncher, hesitating and
shaking his head, "about leaving of you, you see. We
don't know what may happen."
"Heaven knows we don't," returned Miss Pross, "but
have no fear for me. Take me in at the cathedral, at
Three o'Clock, or as near it as you can, and I am sure it
will be better than our going from here. I feel certain
of it. There! Bless you, Mr. Cruncher! Think-not of me,
but of the lives that may depend on both of us!"
This exordium, and Miss Pross's two hands in quite
agonised entreaty clasping his, decided Mr. Cruncher.
With an encouraging nod or two, he immediately went out
to alter the arrangements, and left her by herself to
follow as she had proposed.
The having originated a precaution which was
already in course of execution, was a great relief to
Miss Pross. The necessity of composing her appearance so
that it should attract no special notice in the streets,
was another relief. She looked at her watch, and it was
twenty minutes past two. She had no time to lose, but
must get ready at once.
Afraid, in her extreme perturbation, of the
loneliness of the deserted rooms, and of half-imagined
faces peeping from behind every open door in them, Miss
Pross got a basin of cold water and began laving her
eyes, which were swollen and red. Haunted by her feverish
apprehensions, she could not bear to have her sight
obscured for a minute at a time by the dripping water,
but constantly paused and looked round to see that there
was no one watching her. In one of those pauses she
recoiled and cried out, for she saw a figure standing in
the room.
The basin fell to the ground broken, and the water
flowed to the feet of Madame Defarge. By strange stem
ways, and through much staining blood, those feet had
come to meet that water.
Madame Defarge looked coldly at her, and said, "The
wife of Evremonde; where is she?"
It flashed upon Miss Pross's mind that the doors
were all standing open, and would suggest the flight. Her
first act was to shut them. There were four in the room,
and she shut them all. She then placed herself before the
door of the chamber which Lucie had occupied.
Madame Defarge's dark eyes followed her through
this rapid movement, and rested on her when it was
finished. Miss Pross had nothing beautiful about her;
years had not tamed the wildness, or softened the
grimness, of her appearance; but, she too was a
determined woman in her different way, and she measured
Madame Defarge with her eyes, every inch.
"You might, from your appearance, be the wife of
Lucifer," said Miss Pross, in her breathing.
"Nevertheless, you shall not get the better of me. I am
an Englishwoman."
Madame Defarge looked at her scornfully, but still
with something of Miss Pross's own perception that they
two were at bay. She saw a tight, hard, wiry woman before
her, as Mr. Lorry had seen in the same figure a woman
with a strong hand, in the years gone by. She knew full
well that Miss Pross was the family's devoted friend;
Miss Pross knew full well that Madame Defarge was the
family's malevolent enemy.
"On my way yonder," said Madame Defarge, with a
slight movement of her hand towards the fatal spot,
"where they reserve my chair and my knitting for me, I am
come to make my compliments to her in passing. I wish to
see her."
"I know that your intentions are evil," said Miss
Pross, "and you may depend upon it, I'll hold my own
against them."
Each spoke in her own language; neither understood
the other's words; both were very watchful, and intent to
deduce from look and manner, what the unintelligible
words meant.
"It will do her no good to keep herself concealed
from me at this moment," said Madame Defarge. "Good
patriots will know what that means. Let me see her. Go
tell her that I wish to see her. Do you hear?"
"If those eyes of yours were bed-winches," returned
Miss Pross, "and I was an English four-poster, they
shouldn't loose a splinter of me. No, you wicked foreign
woman; I am your match."
Madame Defarge was not likely to follow these
idiomatic remarks in detail; but, she so far understood
them as to perceive that she was set at naught.
"Woman imbecile and pig-like!" said Madame Defarge,
frowning. "I take no answer from you. I demand to see
her. Either tell her that I demand to see her, or stand
out of the way of the door and let me go to her!" This,
with an angry explanatory wave of her right arm.
"I little thought," said Miss Pross, "that I should
ever want to understand your nonsensical language; but I
would give all I have, except the clothes I wear, to know
whether you suspect the truth, or any part of it."
Neither of them for a single moment released the
other's eyes. Madame Defarge had not moved from the spot
where she stood when Miss Pross first became aware of
her; but, she now advanced one step.
"I am a Briton," said Miss Pross, "I am desperate.
I don't care an English Twopence for myself. I know that
the longer I keep you here, the greater hope there is for
my Ladybird. I'll not leave a handful of that dark hair
upon your head, if you lay a finger on me!"
Thus Miss Pross, with a shake of her head and a
flash of her eyes between every rapid sentence, and every
rapid sentence a whole breath. Thus Miss Pross, who had
never struck a blow in her life.
But, her courage was of that emotional nature that
it brought the irrepressible tears into her eyes. This
was a courage that Madame Defarge so little comprehended
as to mistake for weakness. "Ha, ha!" she laughed, "you
poor wretch! What are you worth! I address myself to that
Doctor." Then she raised her voice and called out,
"Citizen Doctor! Wife of Evremonde! Child of Evremonde!
Any person but this miserable fool, answer the Citizeness
Defarge!"
Perhaps the following silence, perhaps some latent
disclosure in the expression of Miss Pross's face,
perhaps a sudden misgiving apart from either suggestion,
whispered to Madame Defarge that they were gone. Three of
the doors she opened swiftly, and looked in.
"Those rooms are all in disorder, there has been
hurried packing, there are odds and ends upon the ground.
There is no one in that room behind you! Let me
look."
"Never!" said Miss Pross, who understood the
request as perfectly as Madame Defarge understood the
answer.
"If they are not in that room, they are gone, and
can be pursued and brought back," said Madame Defarge to
herself.
"As long as you don't know whether they are in that
room or not, you are uncertain what to do," said Miss
Pross to herself; "and you shall not know that, if I can
prevent your knowing it; and know that, or not know that,
you shall not leave here while I can hold you."
"I have been in the streets from the first, nothing
has stopped me, I will tear you to pieces, but I will
have you from that door," said Madame Defarge.
"We are alone at the top of a high house in a
solitary courtyard, we are not likely to be heard, and I
pray for bodily strength to keep you here, while every
minute you are here is worth a hundred thousand guineas
to my darling," said Miss Pross.
Madame Defarge made at the door. Miss Pross, on the
instinct of the moment, seized her round the waist in
both her arms, and held her tight. It was in vain for
Madame Defarge to struggle and to strike; Miss Pross,
with the vigorous tenacity of love, always so much
stronger than hate, clasped her tight, and even lifted
her from the floor in the struggle that they had. The two
hands of Madame Defarge buffeted and tore her face; but,
Miss Pross, with her head down, held her round the waist,
and clung to her with more than the hold of a drowning
woman.
Soon, Madame Defarge's hands ceased to strike, and
felt at her encircled waist. "It is under my arm," said
Miss Pross, in smothered tones, "you shall not draw it. I
am stronger than you, I bless Heaven for it. I hold you
till one or other of us faints or dies!"
Madame Defarge's hands were at her bosom. Miss
Pross looked up, saw what it was, struck at it, struck
out a flash and a crash, and stood alone--blinded with
smoke.
All this was in a second. As the smoke cleared,
leaving an awful stillness, it passed out on the air,
like the soul of the furious woman whose body lay
lifeless on the ground.
In the first fright and horror of her situation,
Miss Pross passed the body as far from it as she could,
and ran down the stairs to call for fruitless help.
Happily, she bethought herself of the consequences of
what she did, in time to check herself and go back. It
was dreadful to go in at the door again; but, she did go
in, and even went near it, to get the bonnet and other
things that she must wear. These she put on, out on the
staircase, first shutting and locking the door and taking
away the key. She then sat down on the stairs a few
moments to breathe and to cry, and then got up and
hurried away.
By good fortune she had a veil on her bonnet, or
she could hardly have gone along the streets without
being stopped. By good fortune, too, she was naturally so
peculiar in appearance as not to show disfigurement like
any other woman. She needed both advantages, for the
marks of griping fingers were deep in her face, and her
hair was torn, and her dress (hastily composed with
unsteady hands) was clutched and dragged a hundred
ways.
In crossing the bridge, she dropped the door key in
the river. Arriving at the cathedral some few minutes
before her escort, and waiting there, she thought, what
if the key were already taken in a net, what if it were
identified, what if the door were opened and the remains
discovered, what if she were stopped at the gate, sent to
prison, and charged with murder! In the midst of these
fluttering thoughts, the escort appeared, took her in,
and took her away.
"Is there any noise in the streets?" she asked
him.
"The usual noises," Mr. Cruncher replied; and
looked surprised by the question and by her
aspect.
"I don't hear you," said Miss Pross. "What do you
say?"
It was in vain for Mr. Cruncher to repeat what he
said; Miss Pross could not hear him. "So I'll nod my
head," thought Mr. Cruncher, amazed, "at all events
she'll see that." And she did.
"Is there any noise in the streets now?" asked Miss
Pross again, presently.
Again Mr. Cruncher nodded his head.
"I don't hear it."
"Gone deaf in an hour?" said Mr. Cruncher,
ruminating, with his mind much disturbed; "wot's come to
her?"
"I feel," said Miss Pross, "as if there had been a
flash and a crash, and that crash was the last thing I
should ever hear in this life."
"Blest if she ain't in a queer condition!" said Mr.
Cruncher, more and more disturbed. "Wot can she have been
a takin', to keep her courage up? Hark! There's the roll
of them dreadful carts! You can hear that, miss?"
"I can hear," said Miss Pross, seeing that he spoke
to her, "nothing. O, my good man, there was first a great
crash, and then a great stillness, and that stillness
seems to be fixed and unchangeable, never to be broken
any more as long as my life lasts."
"If she don't hear the roll of those dreadful
carts, now very nigh their journey's end," said Mr.
Cruncher, glancing over his shoulder, "it's my opinion
that indeed she never will hear anything else in this
world."
And indeed she never did.
XV
The Footsteps Die Out For Ever
Along the Paris streets, the death-carts rumble,
hollow and harsh. Six tumbrils carry the day's wine to La
Guillotine. All the devouring and insatiate Monsters
imagined since imagination could record itself, are fused
in the one realisation, Guillotine. And yet there is not
in France, with its rich variety of soil and climate, a
blade, a leaf, a root, a sprig, a peppercorn, which will
grow to maturity under conditions more certain than those
that have produced this horror. Crush humanity out of
shape once more, under similar hammers, and it will twist
itself into the same tortured forms. Sow the same seed of
rapacious license and oppression over again, and it will
surely yield the same fruit according to its kind.
Six tumbrils roll along the streets. Change these
back again to what they were, thou powerful enchanter,
Time, and they shall be seen to be the carriages of
absolute monarchs, the equipages of feudal nobles, the
toilettes of flaring Jezebels, the churches that are not
my father's house but dens of thieves, the huts of
millions of starving peasants! No; the great magician who
majestically works out the appointed order of the
Creator, never reverses his transformations. "If thou be
changed into this shape by the will of God," say the
seers to the enchanted, in the wise Arabian stories,
"then remain so! But, if thou wear this form through mere
passing conjuration, then resume thy former aspect!"
Changeless and hopeless, the tumbrils roll along.
As the sombre wheels of the six carts go round,
they seem to plough up a long crooked furrow among the
populace in the streets. Ridges of faces are thrown to
this side and to that, and the ploughs go steadily
onward. So used are the regular inhabitants of the houses
to the spectacle, that in many windows there are no
people, and in some the occupation of the hands is not so
much as suspended, while the eyes survey the faces in the
tumbrils. Here and there, the inmate has visitors to see
the sight; then he points his finger, with something of
the complacency of a curator or authorised exponent, to
this cart and to this, and seems to tell who sat here
yesterday, and who there the day before.
Of the riders in the tumbrils, some observe these
things, and all things on their last roadside, with an
impassive stare; others, with a lingering interest in the
ways of life and men. Some, seated with drooping heads,
are sunk in silent despair; again, there are some so
heedful of their looks that they cast upon the multitude
such glances as they have seen in theatres, and in
pictures. Several close their eyes, and think, or try to
get their straying thoughts together. Only one, and he a
miserable creature, of a crazed aspect, is so shattered
and made drunk by horror, that he sings, and tries to
dance. Not one of the whole number appeals by look or
gesture, to the pity of the people.
There is a guard of sundry horsemen riding abreast
of the tumbrils, and faces are often turned up to some of
them, and they are asked some question. It would seem to
be always the same question, for, it is always followed
by a press of people towards the third cart. The horsemen
abreast of that cart, frequently point out one man in it
with their swords. The leading curiosity is, to know
which is he; he stands at the back of the tumbril with
his head bent down, to converse with a mere girl who sits
on the side of the cart, and holds his hand. He has no
curiosity or care for the scene about him, and always
speaks to the girl. Here and there in the long street of
St. Honore, cries are raised against him. If they move
him at all, it is only to a quiet smile, as he shakes his
hair a little more loosely about his face. He cannot
easily touch his face, his arms being bound.
On the steps of a church, awaiting the coming-up of
the tumbrils, stands the Spy and prison-sheep. He looks
into the first of them: not there. He looks into the
second: not there. He already asks himself, "Has he
sacrificed me?" when his face clears, as he looks into
the third.
"Which is Evremonde?" says a man behind him.
"That. At the back there."
"With his hand in the girl's?"
"Yes."
The man cries, "Down, Evremonde! To the Guillotine
all aristocrats! Down, Evremonde!"
"Hush, hush!" the Spy entreats him, timidly.
"And why not, citizen?"
"He is going to pay the forfeit: it will be paid in
five minutes more. Let him be at peace."
But the man continuing to exclaim, "Down,
Evremonde!" the face of Evremonde is for a moment turned
towards him. Evremonde then sees the Spy, and looks
attentively at him, and goes his way.
The clocks are on the stroke of three, and the
furrow ploughed among the populace is turning round, to
come on into the place of execution, and end. The ridges
thrown to this side and to that, now crumble in and close
behind the last plough as it passes on, for all are
following to the Guillotine. In front of it, seated in
chairs, as in a garden of public diversion, are a number
of women, busily knitting. On one of the fore-most
chairs, stands The Vengeance, looking about for her
friend.
"Therese!" she cries, in her shrill tones. "Who has
seen her? Therese Defarge!"
"She never missed before," says a knitting-woman of
the sisterhood.
"No; nor will she miss now," cries The Vengeance,
petulantly. "Therese."
"Louder," the woman recommends.
Ay! Louder, Vengeance, much louder, and still she
will scarcely hear thee. Louder yet, Vengeance, with a
little oath or so added, and yet it will hardly bring
her. Send other women up and down to seek her, lingering
somewhere; and yet, although the messengers have done
dread deeds, it is questionable whether of their own
wills they will go far enough to find her!
"Bad Fortune!" cries The Vengeance, stamping her
foot in the chair, "and here are the tumbrils! And
Evremonde will be despatched in a wink, and she not here!
See her knitting in my hand, and her empty chair ready
for her. I cry with vexation and disappointment!"
As The Vengeance descends from her elevation to do
it, the tumbrils begin to discharge their loads. The
ministers of Sainte Guillotine are robed and ready.
Crash!--A head is held up, and the knitting- women who
scarcely lifted their eyes to look at it a moment ago
when it could think and speak, count One.
The second tumbril empties and moves on; the third
comes up. Crash! --And the knitting-women, never
faltering or pausing in their Work, count Two.
The supposed Evremonde descends, and the seamstress
is lifted out next after him. He has not relinquished her
patient hand in getting out, but still holds it as he
promised. He gently places her with her back to the
crashing engine that constantly whirrs up and falls, and
she looks into his face and thanks him.
"But for you, dear stranger, I should not be so
composed, for I am naturally a poor little thing, faint
of heart; nor should I have been able to raise my
thoughts to Him who was put to death, that we might have
hope and comfort here to-day. I think you were sent to me
by Heaven."
"Or you to me," says Sydney Carton. "Keep your eyes
upon me, dear child, and mind no other object."
"I mind nothing while I hold your hand. I shall
mind nothing when I let it go, if they are rapid."
"They will be rapid. Fear not!"
The two stand in the fast-thinning throng of
victims, but they speak as if they were alone. Eye to
eye, voice to voice, hand to hand, heart to heart, these
two children of the Universal Mother, else so wide apart
and differing, have come together on the dark highway, to
repair home together, and to rest in her bosom.
"Brave and generous friend, will you let me ask you
one last question? I am very ignorant, and it troubles
me--just a little."
"Tell me what it is."
"I have a cousin, an only relative and an orphan,
like myself, whom I love very dearly. She is five years
younger than I, and she lives in a farmer's house in the
south country. Poverty parted us, and she knows nothing
of my fate--for I cannot write--and if I could, how
should I tell her! It is better as it is."
"Yes, yes: better as it is."
"What I have been thinking as we came along, and
what I am still thinking now, as I look into your kind
strong face which gives me so much support, is this:--If
the Republic really does good to the poor, and they come
to be less hungry, and in all ways to suffer less, she
may live a long time: she may even live to be
old."
"What then, my gentle sister?"
"Do you think:" the uncomplaining eyes in which
there is so much endurance, fill with tears, and the lips
part a little more and tremble: "that it will seem long
to me, while I wait for her in the better land where I
trust both you and I will be mercifully
sheltered?"
"It cannot be, my child; there is no Time there,
and no trouble there."
"You comfort me so much! I am so ignorant. Am I to
kiss you now? Is the moment come?"
"Yes."
She kisses his lips; he kisses hers; they solemnly
bless each other. The spare hand does not tremble as he
releases it; nothing worse than a sweet, bright constancy
is in the patient face. She goes next before him--is
gone; the knitting-women count Twenty-Two.
"I am the Resurrection and the Life, saith the
Lord: he that believeth in me, though he were dead, yet
shall he live: and whosoever liveth and believeth in me
shall never die."
The murmuring of many voices, the upturning of many
faces, the pressing on of many footsteps in the outskirts
of the crowd, so that it swells forward in a mass, like
one great heave of water, all flashes away.
Twenty-Three.
They said of him, about the city that night, that
it was the peacefullest man's face ever beheld there.
Many added that he looked sublime and prophetic.
One of the most remarkable sufferers by the same
axe--a woman-had asked at the foot of the same scaffold,
not long before, to be allowed to write down the thoughts
that were inspiring her. If he had given any utterance to
his, and they were prophetic, they would have been
these:
"I see Barsad, and Cly, Defarge, The Vengeance, the
Juryman, the Judge, long ranks of the new oppressors who
have risen on the destruction of the old, perishing by
this retributive instrument, before it shall cease out of
its present use. I see a beautiful city and a brilliant
people rising from this abyss, and, in their struggles to
be truly free, in their triumphs and defeats, through
long years to come, I see the evil of this time and of
the previous time of which this is the natural birth,
gradually making expiation for itself and wearing
out.
"I see the lives for which I lay down my life,
peaceful, useful, prosperous and happy, in that England
which I shall see no more. I see Her with a child upon
her bosom, who bears my name. I see her father, aged and
bent, but otherwise restored, and faithful to all men in
his healing office, and at peace. I see the good old man,
so long their friend, in ten years' time enriching them
with all he has, and passing tranquilly to his
reward.
"I see that I hold a sanctuary in their hearts, and
in the hearts of their descendants, generations hence. I
see her, an old woman, weeping for me on the anniversary
of this day. I see her and her husband, their course
done, lying side by side in their last earthly bed, and I
know that each was not more honoured and held sacred in
the other's soul, than I was in the souls of both.
"I see that child who lay upon her bosom and who
bore my name, a man winning his way up in that path of
life which once was mine. I see him winning it so well,
that my name is made illustrious there by the light of
his. I see the blots I threw upon it, faded away. I see
him, fore-most of just judges and honoured men, bringing
a boy of my name, with a forehead that I know and golden
hair, to this place-- then fair to look upon, with not a
trace of this day's disfigurement --and I hear him tell
the child my story, with a tender and a faltering
voice.
"It is a far, far better thing that I do, than I
have ever done; it is a far, far better rest that I go to
than I have ever known."
End of Project Gutenberg's Etext of A Tale of Two
Cities